home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1993-08-30 | 577.4 KB | 14,428 lines |
- **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
-
- **Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
-
- *These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
-
- Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
- further information is included below. We need your donations.
-
-
- August, 1993 [Etext #76] Originally a July release of Wiretap.
-
- The entire book as originally published by the Internet Wiretap
- follows this header. Only the headers have been changed, later
- Project Gutenberg will release an edition with the hyphenations
- removed for easier searching, and with two spaces between every
- sentence and paragraph for easier reading. [hfinn11.txt] Your
- assistance with the preparation of this edition would help this
- effort a great deal.
-
- This Etext has been copyright cleared by Project Gutenberg with
- the cooperation of Internet Wiretap and Tom Dell who should get
- all the credit for this edition, and who are an inspiration for
- the entire Etext community.
-
- We have managed to clear a couple more Wiretap Etexts, and hope
- to present one a month to you for the next several months. The
- hopes are that eventually we may be able to cut a year off 2001
- and to hopefully take a shot at getting the 10,000th Etext made
- and distributed before 2001.
-
-
- The Project Gutenberg Etext of Huckleberry Finn by Twain/Clemens
- ******This file should be named hfinn10.txt or hfinn10.zip*****
-
- Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, hfinn11.txt
- VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, hfinn10a.txt
-
-
- Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
- We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
- fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
- to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
- searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
- projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
- per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce 2
- million dollars per hour this year we will have to do four text
- files per month: thus upping our productivity from one million.
- The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
- Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
- This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
- which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
- of the year 2001.
-
- We need your donations more than ever!
-
- All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
- tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
- Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
- to IBC, too)
-
- For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
- Project Gutenberg
- P. O. Box 2782
- Champaign, IL 61825
-
- When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive Director:
- hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
-
- We would prefer to send you this information by email
- (Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
- ******
- If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
- FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
- [Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
-
- ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
- login: anonymous
- password: your@login
- cd etext/etext91
- or cd etext92
- or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
- or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
- dir [to see files]
- get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
- GET 0INDEX.GUT
- for a list of books
- and
- GET NEW GUT for general information
- and
- MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
- **Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
- (Three Pages)
-
-
- ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
- Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
- They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
- your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
- someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
- fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
- disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
- you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
- *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
- By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
- this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
- a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
- sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
- you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
- medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
- ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
- This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
- tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
- Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
- Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
- things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
- on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
- distribute it in the United States without permission and
- without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
- below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
- under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
- To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
- efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
- works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
- medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
- things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
- intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
- disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
- codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
- LIMTED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
- But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
- [1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
- etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
- legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
- UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
- INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
- OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
- POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
-
- If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
- receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
- you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
- time to the person you received it from. If you received it
- on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
- such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
- copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
- choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
- receive it electronically.
-
- THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
- TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
- PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
- Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
- the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
- above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
- may have other legal rights.
-
- INDEMNITY
- You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
- officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
- and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
- indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
- [1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
- or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
-
- DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
- You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
- disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
- "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
- or:
-
- [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
- requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
- etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
- if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
- binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
- including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
- cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
- *EITHER*:
-
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
- does *not* contain characters other than those
- intended by the author of the work, although tilde
- (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
- be used to convey punctuation intended by the
- author, and additional characters may be used to
- indicate hypertext links; OR
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
- no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
- form by the program that displays the etext (as is
- the case, for instance, with most word processors);
- OR
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
- no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
- etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
- or other equivalent proprietary form).
-
- [2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
- [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
- net profits you derive calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
- don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
- payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
- Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
- date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
- your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
-
- WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
- The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
- scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
- free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
- you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
- Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
-
- This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
- Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
- *END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
-
-
-
-
-
- The INTERNET WIRETAP First Electronic Edition of
-
- THE ADVENTURES OF HUCKLEBERRY FINN
- (Tom Sawyer's Comrade)
- BY
- MARK TWAIN
- (Samuel L. Clemens)
-
- Electronic Edition by <dell@wiretap.spies.com>
- Released to the public July 1993
-
-
- NOTICE
-
- PERSONS attempting to find a motive in this narra-
- tive will be prosecuted; persons attempting to find a
- moral in it will be banished; persons attempting to
- find a plot in it will be shot.
-
- BY ORDER OF THE AUTHOR,
- Per G.G., Chief of Ordnance.
-
-
- EXPLANATORY
-
- IN this book a number of dialects are used, to wit:
- the Missouri negro dialect; the extremest form of the
- backwoods Southwestern dialect; the ordinary "Pike
- County" dialect; and four modified varieties of this
- last. The shadings have not been done in a hap-
- hazard fashion, or by guesswork; but painstakingly,
- and with the trustworthy guidance and support of
- personal familiarity with these several forms of speech.
-
- I make this explanation for the reason that without
- it many readers would suppose that all these characters
- were trying to talk alike and not succeeding.
-
- THE AUTHOR.
-
-
-
- HUCKLEBERRY FINN
-
- Scene: The Mississippi Valley
- Time: Forty to fifty years ago
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
- YOU don't know about me without you have read a
- book by the name of The Adventures of Tom
- Sawyer; but that ain't no matter. That book was
- made by Mr. Mark Twain, and he told the truth,
- mainly. There was things which he stretched, but
- mainly he told the truth. That is nothing. I never
- seen anybody but lied one time or another, without it
- was Aunt Polly, or the widow, or maybe Mary. Aunt
- Polly -- Tom's Aunt Polly, she is -- and Mary, and
- the Widow Douglas is all told about in that book,
- which is mostly a true book, with some stretchers, as
- I said before.
-
- Now the way that the book winds up is this: Tom
- and me found the money that the robbers hid in the
- cave, and it made us rich. We got six thousand dollars
- apiece -- all gold. It was an awful sight of money
- when it was piled up. Well, Judge Thatcher he took
- it and put it out at interest, and it fetched us a dollar
- a day apiece all the year round -- more than a body
- could tell what to do with. The Widow Douglas she
- took me for her son, and allowed she would sivilize
- me; but it was rough living in the house all the time,
- considering how dismal regular and decent the widow
- was in all her ways; and so when I couldn't stand it
- no longer I lit out. I got into my old rags and my
- sugar-hogshead again, and was free and satisfied. But
- Tom Sawyer he hunted me up and said he was going
- to start a band of robbers, and I might join if I would
- go back to the widow and be respectable. So I went
- back.
-
- The widow she cried over me, and called me a poor
- lost lamb, and she called me a lot of other names,
- too, but she never meant no harm by it. She put me
- in them new clothes again, and I couldn't do nothing
- but sweat and sweat, and feel all cramped up. Well,
- then, the old thing commenced again. The widow
- rung a bell for supper, and you had to come to time.
- When you got to the table you couldn't go right to
- eating, but you had to wait for the widow to tuck
- down her head and grumble a little over the victuals,
- though there warn't really anything the matter with
- them, -- that is, nothing only everything was cooked
- by itself. In a barrel of odds and ends it is different;
- things get mixed up, and the juice kind of swaps
- around, and the things go better.
-
- After supper she got out her book and learned me
- about Moses and the Bulrushers, and I was in a sweat
- to find out all about him; but by and by she let it out
- that Moses had been dead a considerable long time; so
- then I didn't care no more about him, because I don't
- take no stock in dead people.
-
- Pretty soon I wanted to smoke, and asked the widow
- to let me. But she wouldn't. She said it was a mean
- practice and wasn't clean, and I must try to not do it
- any more. That is just the way with some people.
- They get down on a thing when they don't know
- nothing about it. Here she was a-bothering about
- Moses, which was no kin to her, and no use to any-
- body, being gone, you see, yet finding a power of
- fault with me for doing a thing that had some good in
- it. And she took snuff, too; of course that was all
- right, because she done it herself.
-
- Her sister, Miss Watson, a tolerable slim old maid,
- with goggles on, had just come to live with her, and
- took a set at me now with a spelling-book. She
- worked me middling hard for about an hour, and then
- the widow made her ease up. I couldn't stood it
- much longer. Then for an hour it was deadly dull,
- and I was fidgety. Miss Watson would say, "Don't
- put your feet up there, Huckleberry;" and "Don't
- scrunch up like that, Huckleberry -- set up straight;"
- and pretty soon she would say, "Don't gap and stretch
- like that, Huckleberry -- why don't you try to be-
- have?" Then she told me all about the bad place,
- and I said I wished I was there. She got mad then,
- but I didn't mean no harm. All I wanted was to go
- somewheres; all I wanted was a change, I warn't
- particular. She said it was wicked to say what I said;
- said she wouldn't say it for the whole world; she was
- going to live so as to go to the good place. Well, I
- couldn't see no advantage in going where she was
- going, so I made up my mind I wouldn't try for it.
- But I never said so, because it would only make
- trouble, and wouldn't do no good.
-
- Now she had got a start, and she went on and told
- me all about the good place. She said all a body
- would have to do there was to go around all day long
- with a harp and sing, forever and ever. So I didn't
- think much of it. But I never said so. I asked her if
- she reckoned Tom Sawyer would go there, and she
- said not by a considerable sight. I was glad about
- that, because I wanted him and me to be together.
-
- Miss Watson she kept pecking at me, and it got
- tiresome and lonesome. By and by they fetched the
- niggers in and had prayers, and then everybody was
- off to bed. I went up to my room with a piece of
- candle, and put it on the table. Then I set down in a
- chair by the window and tried to think of something
- cheerful, but it warn't no use. I felt so lonesome I
- most wished I was dead. The stars were shining, and
- the leaves rustled in the woods ever so mournful; and
- I heard an owl, away off, who-whooing about some-
- body that was dead, and a whippowill and a dog cry-
- ing about somebody that was going to die; and the
- wind was trying to whisper something to me, and I
- couldn't make out what it was, and so it made the cold
- shivers run over me. Then away out in the woods I
- heard that kind of a sound that a ghost makes when it
- wants to tell about something that's on its mind and
- can't make itself understood, and so can't rest easy in
- its grave, and has to go about that way every night
- grieving. I got so down-hearted and scared I did wish
- I had some company. Pretty soon a spider went
- crawling up my shoulder, and I flipped it off and it lit
- in the candle; and before I could budge it was all
- shriveled up. I didn't need anybody to tell me that
- that was an awful bad sign and would fetch me some
- bad luck, so I was scared and most shook the clothes
- off of me. I got up and turned around in my tracks
- three times and crossed my breast every time; and
- then I tied up a little lock of my hair with a thread to
- keep witches away. But I hadn't no confidence.
- You do that when you've lost a horseshoe that you've
- found, instead of nailing it up over the door, but I
- hadn't ever heard anybody say it was any way to keep
- off bad luck when you'd killed a spider.
-
- I set down again, a-shaking all over, and got out my
- pipe for a smoke; for the house was all as still as
- death now, and so the widow wouldn't know. Well,
- after a long time I heard the clock away off in the
- town go boom -- boom -- boom -- twelve licks; and
- all still again -- stiller than ever. Pretty soon I heard
- a twig snap down in the dark amongst the trees --
- something was a stirring. I set still and listened.
- Directly I could just barely hear a "me-yow! me-
- yow!" down there. That was good! Says I, "me-
- yow! me-yow!" as soft as I could, and then I put
- out the light and scrambled out of the window on to
- the shed. Then I slipped down to the ground and
- crawled in among the trees, and, sure enough, there
- was Tom Sawyer waiting for me.
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
- WE went tiptoeing along a path amongst the trees
- back towards the end of the widow's garden,
- stooping down so as the branches wouldn't scrape our
- heads. When we was passing by the kitchen I fell
- over a root and made a noise. We scrouched down
- and laid still. Miss Watson's big nigger, named Jim,
- was setting in the kitchen door; we could see him
- pretty clear, because there was a light behind him.
- He got up and stretched his neck out about a minute,
- listening. Then he says:
-
- "Who dah?"
-
- He listened some more; then he come tiptoeing
- down and stood right between us; we could a touched
- him, nearly. Well, likely it was minutes and minutes
- that there warn't a sound, and we all there so close
- together. There was a place on my ankle that got to
- itching, but I dasn't scratch it; and then my ear begun
- to itch; and next my back, right between my shoul-
- ders. Seemed like I'd die if I couldn't scratch. Well,
- I've noticed that thing plenty times since. If you are
- with the quality, or at a funeral, or trying to go to
- sleep when you ain't sleepy -- if you are anywheres
- where it won't do for you to scratch, why you will itch
- all over in upwards of a thousand places. Pretty soon
- Jim says:
-
- "Say, who is you? Whar is you? Dog my cats
- ef I didn' hear sumf'n. Well, I know what I's gwyne
- to do: I's gwyne to set down here and listen tell I
- hears it agin."
-
- So he set down on the ground betwixt me and Tom.
- He leaned his back up against a tree, and stretched his
- legs out till one of them most touched one of mine.
- My nose begun to itch. It itched till the tears come
- into my eyes. But I dasn't scratch. Then it begun
- to itch on the inside. Next I got to itching under-
- neath. I didn't know how I was going to set still.
- This miserableness went on as much as six or seven
- minutes; but it seemed a sight longer than that. I
- was itching in eleven different places now. I reckoned
- I couldn't stand it more'n a minute longer, but I set
- my teeth hard and got ready to try. Just then Jim
- begun to breathe heavy; next he begun to snore --
- and then I was pretty soon comfortable again.
-
- Tom he made a sign to me -- kind of a little noise
- with his mouth -- and we went creeping away on our
- hands and knees. When we was ten foot off Tom
- whispered to me, and wanted to tie Jim to the tree for
- fun. But I said no; he might wake and make a dis-
- turbance, and then they'd find out I warn't in. Then
- Tom said he hadn't got candles enough, and he would
- slip in the kitchen and get some more. I didn't want
- him to try. I said Jim might wake up and come.
- But Tom wanted to resk it; so we slid in there and got
- three candles, and Tom laid five cents on the table for
- pay. Then we got out, and I was in a sweat to get
- away; but nothing would do Tom but he must crawl
- to where Jim was, on his hands and knees, and play
- something on him. I waited, and it seemed a good
- while, everything was so still and lonesome.
-
- As soon as Tom was back we cut along the path,
- around the garden fence, and by and by fetched up on
- the steep top of the hill the other side of the house.
- Tom said he slipped Jim's hat off of his head and hung
- it on a limb right over him, and Jim stirred a little, but
- he didn't wake. Afterwards Jim said the witches be-
- witched him and put him in a trance, and rode him all
- over the State, and then set him under the trees again,
- and hung his hat on a limb to show who done it. And
- next time Jim told it he said they rode him down to
- New Orleans; and, after that, every time he told it he
- spread it more and more, till by and by he said they
- rode him all over the world, and tired him most to
- death, and his back was all over saddle-boils. Jim
- was monstrous proud about it, and he got so he
- wouldn't hardly notice the other niggers. Niggers
- would come miles to hear Jim tell about it, and he was
- more looked up to than any nigger in that country.
- Strange niggers would stand with their mouths open
- and look him all over, same as if he was a wonder.
- Niggers is always talking about witches in the dark by
- the kitchen fire; but whenever one was talking and
- letting on to know all about such things, Jim would
- happen in and say, "Hm! What you know 'bout
- witches?" and that nigger was corked up and had to
- take a back seat. Jim always kept that five-center
- piece round his neck with a string, and said it was a
- charm the devil give to him with his own hands, and
- told him he could cure anybody with it and fetch
- witches whenever he wanted to just by saying some-
- thing to it; but he never told what it was he said to it.
- Niggers would come from all around there and give
- Jim anything they had, just for a sight of that five-
- center piece; but they wouldn't touch it, because the
- devil had had his hands on it. Jim was most ruined
- for a servant, because he got stuck up on account of
- having seen the devil and been rode by witches.
-
- Well, when Tom and me got to the edge of the hill-
- top we looked away down into the village and could
- see three or four lights twinkling, where there was sick
- folks, maybe; and the stars over us was sparkling ever
- so fine; and down by the village was the river, a whole
- mile broad, and awful still and grand. We went down
- the hill and found Jo Harper and Ben Rogers, and
- two or three more of the boys, hid in the old tanyard.
- So we unhitched a skiff and pulled down the river two
- mile and a half, to the big scar on the hillside, and
- went ashore.
-
- We went to a clump of bushes, and Tom made
- everybody swear to keep the secret, and then showed
- them a hole in the hill, right in the thickest part of the
- bushes. Then we lit the candles, and crawled in on
- our hands and knees. We went about two hundred
- yards, and then the cave opened up. Tom poked
- about amongst the passages, and pretty soon ducked
- under a wall where you wouldn't a noticed that there
- was a hole. We went along a narrow place and got
- into a kind of room, all damp and sweaty and cold,
- and there we stopped. Tom says:
-
- "Now, we'll start this band of robbers and call it
- Tom Sawyer's Gang. Everybody that wants to join
- has got to take an oath, and write his name in blood."
-
- Everybody was willing. So Tom got out a sheet of
- paper that he had wrote the oath on, and read it. It
- swore every boy to stick to the band, and never tell
- any of the secrets; and if anybody done anything to
- any boy in the band, whichever boy was ordered to
- kill that person and his family must do it, and he
- mustn't eat and he mustn't sleep till he had killed them
- and hacked a cross in their breasts, which was the sign
- of the band. And nobody that didn't belong to the
- band could use that mark, and if he did he must be
- sued; and if he done it again he must be killed. And
- if anybody that belonged to the band told the secrets,
- he must have his throat cut, and then have his carcass
- burnt up and the ashes scattered all around, and his
- name blotted off of the list with blood and never men-
- tioned again by the gang, but have a curse put on it
- and be forgot forever.
-
- Everybody said it was a real beautiful oath, and
- asked Tom if he got it out of his own head. He said,
- some of it, but the rest was out of pirate-books and
- robber-books, and every gang that was high-toned
- had it.
-
- Some thought it would be good to kill the FAMILIES
- of boys that told the secrets. Tom said it was a good
- idea, so he took a pencil and wrote it in. Then Ben
- Rogers says:
-
- "Here's Huck Finn, he hain't got no family; what
- you going to do 'bout him?"
-
- "Well, hain't he got a father?" says Tom Sawyer.
-
- "Yes, he's got a father, but you can't never find
- him these days. He used to lay drunk with the hogs
- in the tanyard, but he hain't been seen in these parts
- for a year or more."
-
- They talked it over, and they was going to rule me
- out, because they said every boy must have a family
- or somebody to kill, or else it wouldn't be fair and
- square for the others. Well, nobody could think of
- anything to do -- everybody was stumped, and set
- still. I was most ready to cry; but all at once I
- thought of a way, and so I offered them Miss Watson
- -- they could kill her. Everybody said:
-
- "Oh, she'll do. That's all right. Huck can come
- in."
-
- Then they all stuck a pin in their fingers to get
- blood to sign with, and I made my mark on the paper.
-
- "Now," says Ben Rogers, "what's the line of busi-
- ness of this Gang?"
-
- "Nothing only robbery and murder," Tom said.
-
- "But who are we going to rob? -- houses, or cattle,
- or --"
-
- "Stuff! stealing cattle and such things ain't rob-
- bery; it's burglary," says Tom Sawyer. "We ain't
- burglars. That ain't no sort of style. We are high-
- waymen. We stop stages and carriages on the road,
- with masks on, and kill the people and take their
- watches and money."
-
- "Must we always kill the people?"
-
- "Oh, certainly. It's best. Some authorities think
- different, but mostly it's considered best to kill them --
- except some that you bring to the cave here, and keep
- them till they're ransomed."
-
- "Ransomed? What's that?"
-
- "I don't know. But that's what they do. I've
- seen it in books; and so of course that's what we've
- got to do."
-
- "But how can we do it if we don't know what it is?"
-
- "Why, blame it all, we've GOT to do it. Don't I tell
- you it's in the books? Do you want to go to doing
- different from what's in the books, and get things all
- muddled up?"
-
- "Oh, that's all very fine to SAY, Tom Sawyer, but
- how in the nation are these fellows going to be ran-
- somed if we don't know how to do it to them? -- that's
- the thing I want to get at. Now, what do you reckon
- it is?"
-
- "Well, I don't know. But per'aps if we keep them
- till they're ransomed, it means that we keep them till
- they're dead. "
-
- "Now, that's something LIKE. That'll answer.
- Why couldn't you said that before? We'll keep them
- till they're ransomed to death; and a bothersome lot
- they'll be, too -- eating up everything, and always
- trying to get loose."
-
- "How you talk, Ben Rogers. How can they get
- loose when there's a guard over them, ready to shoot
- them down if they move a peg?"
-
- "A guard! Well, that IS good. So somebody's
- got to set up all night and never get any sleep, just so
- as to watch them. I think that's foolishness. Why
- can't a body take a club and ransom them as soon as
- they get here?"
-
- "Because it ain't in the books so -- that's why.
- Now, Ben Rogers, do you want to do things regular,
- or don't you? -- that's the idea. Don't you reckon
- that the people that made the books knows what's the
- correct thing to do? Do you reckon YOU can learn
- 'em anything? Not by a good deal. No, sir, we'll
- just go on and ransom them in the regular way."
-
- "All right. I don't mind; but I say it's a fool
- way, anyhow. Say, do we kill the women, too?"
-
- "Well, Ben Rogers, if I was as ignorant as you I
- wouldn't let on. Kill the women? No; nobody ever
- saw anything in the books like that. You fetch them
- to the cave, and you're always as polite as pie to them;
- and by and by they fall in love with you, and never
- want to go home any more."
-
- "Well, if that's the way I'm agreed, but I don't
- take no stock in it. Mighty soon we'll have the cave
- so cluttered up with women, and fellows waiting to be
- ransomed, that there won't be no place for the rob-
- bers. But go ahead, I ain't got nothing to say."
-
- Little Tommy Barnes was asleep now, and when
- they waked him up he was scared, and cried, and said
- he wanted to go home to his ma, and didn't want to
- be a robber any more.
-
- So they all made fun of him, and called him cry-
- baby, and that made him mad, and he said he would
- go straight and tell all the secrets. But Tom give him
- five cents to keep quiet, and said we would all go home
- and meet next week, and rob somebody and kill some
- people.
-
- Ben Rogers said he couldn't get out much, only
- Sundays, and so he wanted to begin next Sunday; but
- all the boys said it would be wicked to do it on Sunday,
- and that settled the thing. They agreed to get to-
- gether and fix a day as soon as they could, and then
- we elected Tom Sawyer first captain and Jo Harper
- second captain of the Gang, and so started home.
-
- I clumb up the shed and crept into my window just
- before day was breaking. My new clothes was all
- greased up and clayey, and I was dog-tired.
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
- WELL, I got a good going-over in the morning
- from old Miss Watson on account of my
- clothes; but the widow she didn't scold, but only
- cleaned off the grease and clay, and looked so sorry
- that I thought I would behave awhile if I could. Then
- Miss Watson she took me in the closet and prayed, but
- nothing come of it. She told me to pray every day,
- and whatever I asked for I would get it. But it warn't
- so. I tried it. Once I got a fish-line, but no hooks.
- It warn't any good to me without hooks. I tried for
- the hooks three or four times, but somehow I couldn't
- make it work. By and by, one day, I asked Miss
- Watson to try for me, but she said I was a fool. She
- never told me why, and I couldn't make it out no way.
-
- I set down one time back in the woods, and had a
- long think about it. I says to myself, if a body can
- get anything they pray for, why don't Deacon Winn
- get back the money he lost on pork? Why can't the
- widow get back her silver snuffbox that was stole?
- Why can't Miss Watson fat up? No, says I to my
- self, there ain't nothing in it. I went and told the
- widow about it, and she said the thing a body could
- get by praying for it was "spiritual gifts." This was
- too many for me, but she told me what she meant -- I
- must help other people, and do everything I could for
- other people, and look out for them all the time, and
- never think about myself. This was including Miss
- Watson, as I took it. I went out in the woods and
- turned it over in my mind a long time, but I couldn't
- see no advantage about it -- except for the other peo-
- ple; so at last I reckoned I wouldn't worry about it
- any more, but just let it go. Sometimes the widow
- would take me one side and talk about Providence in a
- way to make a body's mouth water; but maybe next
- day Miss Watson would take hold and knock it all
- down again. I judged I could see that there was two
- Providences, and a poor chap would stand considerable
- show with the widow's Providence, but if Miss Wat-
- son's got him there warn't no help for him any more.
- I thought it all out, and reckoned I would belong to
- the widow's if he wanted me, though I couldn't make
- out how he was a-going to be any better off then than
- what he was before, seeing I was so ignorant, and so
- kind of low-down and ornery.
-
- Pap he hadn't been seen for more than a year, and
- that was comfortable for me; I didn't want to see him
- no more. He used to always whale me when he was
- sober and could get his hands on me; though I used
- to take to the woods most of the time when he was
- around. Well, about this time he was found in the
- river drownded, about twelve mile above town, so
- people said. They judged it was him, anyway; said
- this drownded man was just his size, and was ragged,
- and had uncommon long hair, which was all like pap;
- but they couldn't make nothing out of the face, be-
- cause it had been in the water so long it warn't much
- like a face at all. They said he was floating on his
- back in the water. They took him and buried him on
- the bank. But I warn't comfortable long, because I
- happened to think of something. I knowed mighty
- well that a drownded man don't float on his back, but
- on his face. So I knowed, then, that this warn't pap,
- but a woman dressed up in a man's clothes. So I was
- uncomfortable again. I judged the old man would
- turn up again by and by, though I wished he wouldn't.
-
- We played robber now and then about a month, and
- then I resigned. All the boys did. We hadn't robbed
- nobody, hadn't killed any people, but only just pre-
- tended. We used to hop out of the woods and go
- charging down on hog-drivers and women in carts
- taking garden stuff to market, but we never hived any
- of them. Tom Sawyer called the hogs "ingots," and
- he called the turnips and stuff "julery," and we would
- go to the cave and powwow over what we had done,
- and how many people we had killed and marked. But
- I couldn't see no profit in it. One time Tom sent a
- boy to run about town with a blazing stick, which he
- called a slogan (which was the sign for the Gang to
- get together), and then he said he had got secret news
- by his spies that next day a whole parcel of Spanish
- merchants and rich A-rabs was going to camp in Cave
- Hollow with two hundred elephants, and six hundred
- camels, and over a thousand "sumter" mules, all
- loaded down with di'monds, and they didn't have only
- a guard of four hundred soldiers, and so we would lay
- in ambuscade, as he called it, and kill the lot and
- scoop the things. He said we must slick up our swords
- and guns, and get ready. He never could go after
- even a turnip-cart but he must have the swords and
- guns all scoured up for it, though they was only lath
- and broomsticks, and you might scour at them till you
- rotted, and then they warn't worth a mouthful of ashes
- more than what they was before. I didn't believe we
- could lick such a crowd of Spaniards and A-rabs, but
- I wanted to see the camels and elephants, so I was on
- hand next day, Saturday, in the ambuscade; and when
- we got the word we rushed out of the woods and down
- the hill. But there warn't no Spaniards and A-rabs,
- and there warn't no camels nor no elephants. It
- warn't anything but a Sunday-school picnic, and only
- a primer-class at that. We busted it up, and chased
- the children up the hollow; but we never got anything
- but some doughnuts and jam, though Ben Rogers got
- a rag doll, and Jo Harper got a hymn-book and a
- tract; and then the teacher charged in, and made us
- drop everything and cut. I didn't see no di'monds,
- and I told Tom Sawyer so. He said there was loads
- of them there, anyway; and he said there was A-rabs
- there, too, and elephants and things. I said, why
- couldn't we see them, then? He said if I warn't so
- ignorant, but had read a book called Don Quixote, I
- would know without asking. He said it was all done
- by enchantment. He said there was hundreds of
- soldiers there, and elephants and treasure, and so on,
- but we had enemies which he called magicians; and
- they had turned the whole thing into an infant Sunday-
- school, just out of spite. I said, all right; then the
- thing for us to do was to go for the magicians. Tom
- Sawyer said I was a numskull.
-
- "Why," said he, "a magician could call up a lot
- of genies, and they would hash you up like nothing
- before you could say Jack Robinson. They are as tall
- as a tree and as big around as a church."
-
- "Well," I says, "s'pose we got some genies to
- help US -- can't we lick the other crowd then?"
-
- "How you going to get them?"
-
- "I don't know. How do THEY get them?"
-
- "Why, they rub an old tin lamp or an iron ring,
- and then the genies come tearing in, with the thunder
- and lightning a-ripping around and the smoke a-rolling,
- and everything they're told to do they up and do it.
- They don't think nothing of pulling a shot-tower up
- by the roots, and belting a Sunday-school superinten-
- dent over the head with it -- or any other man."
-
- "Who makes them tear around so?"
-
- "Why, whoever rubs the lamp or the ring. They
- belong to whoever rubs the lamp or the ring, and
- they've got to do whatever he says. If he tells them
- to build a palace forty miles long out of di'monds, and
- fill it full of chewing-gum, or whatever you want, and
- fetch an emperor's daughter from China for you to
- marry, they've got to do it -- and they've got to do it
- before sun-up next morning, too. And more: they've
- got to waltz that palace around over the country
- wherever you want it, you understand."
-
- "Well," says I, "I think they are a pack of flat-
- heads for not keeping the palace themselves 'stead of
- fooling them away like that. And what's more -- if I
- was one of them I would see a man in Jericho before I
- would drop my business and come to him for the rub-
- bing of an old tin lamp."
-
- "How you talk, Huck Finn. Why, you'd HAVE to
- come when he rubbed it, whether you wanted to or
- not."
-
- "What! and I as high as a tree and as big as a
- church? All right, then; I WOULD come; but I lay
- I'd make that man climb the highest tree there was in
- the country."
-
- "Shucks, it ain't no use to talk to you, Huck Finn.
- You don't seem to know anything, somehow -- perfect
- saphead."
-
- I thought all this over for two or three days, and
- then I reckoned I would see if there was anything in it.
- I got an old tin lamp and an iron ring, and went out in
- the woods and rubbed and rubbed till I sweat like an
- Injun, calculating to build a palace and sell it; but it
- warn't no use, none of the genies come. So then I
- judged that all that stuff was only just one of Tom
- Sawyer's lies. I reckoned he believed in the A-rabs
- and the elephants, but as for me I think different. It
- had all the marks of a Sunday-school.
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
- WELL, three or four months run along, and it was
- well into the winter now. I had been to school
- most all the time and could spell and read and write
- just a little, and could say the multiplication table up
- to six times seven is thirty-five, and I don't reckon I
- could ever get any further than that if I was to live
- forever. I don't take no stock in mathematics, any-
- way.
-
- At first I hated the school, but by and by I got so I
- could stand it. Whenever I got uncommon tired I
- played hookey, and the hiding I got next day done me
- good and cheered me up. So the longer I went to
- school the easier it got to be. I was getting sort of
- used to the widow's ways, too, and they warn't so
- raspy on me. Living in a house and sleeping in a bed
- pulled on me pretty tight mostly, but before the cold
- weather I used to slide out and sleep in the woods
- sometimes, and so that was a rest to me. I liked the
- old ways best, but I was getting so I liked the new
- ones, too, a little bit. The widow said I was coming
- along slow but sure, and doing very satisfactory. She
- said she warn't ashamed of me.
-
- One morning I happened to turn over the salt-cellar
- at breakfast. I reached for some of it as quick as I
- could to throw over my left shoulder and keep off the
- bad luck, but Miss Watson was in ahead of me, and
- crossed me off. She says, "Take your hands away,
- Huckleberry; what a mess you are always making!"
- The widow put in a good word for me, but that warn't
- going to keep off the bad luck, I knowed that well
- enough. I started out, after breakfast, feeling worried
- and shaky, and wondering where it was going to fall
- on me, and what it was going to be. There is ways to
- keep off some kinds of bad luck, but this wasn't one
- of them kind; so I never tried to do anything, but just
- poked along low-spirited and on the watch-out.
-
- I went down to the front garden and clumb over the
- stile where you go through the high board fence.
- There was an inch of new snow on the ground, and I
- seen somebody's tracks. They had come up from the
- quarry and stood around the stile a while, and then
- went on around the garden fence. It was funny they
- hadn't come in, after standing around so. I couldn't
- make it out. It was very curious, somehow. I was
- going to follow around, but I stooped down to look at
- the tracks first. I didn't notice anything at first, but
- next I did. There was a cross in the left boot-heel
- made with big nails, to keep off the devil.
-
- I was up in a second and shinning down the hill. I
- looked over my shoulder every now and then, but I
- didn't see nobody. I was at Judge Thatcher's as quick
- as I could get there. He said:
-
- "Why, my boy, you are all out of breath. Did
- you come for your interest?"
-
- "No, sir," I says; "is there some for me?"
-
- "Oh, yes, a half-yearly is in last night -- over a
- hundred and fifty dollars. Quite a fortune for you.
- You had better let me invest it along with your six
- thousand, because if you take it you'll spend it."
-
- "No, sir," I says, "I don't want to spend it. I
- don't want it at all -- nor the six thousand, nuther.
- I want you to take it; I want to give it to you -- the
- six thousand and all."
-
- He looked surprised. He couldn't seem to make
- it out. He says:
-
- "Why, what can you mean, my boy?"
-
- I says, "Don't you ask me no questions about it,
- please. You'll take it -- won't you?"
-
- He says:
-
- "Well, I'm puzzled. Is something the matter?"
-
- "Please take it," says I, "and don't ask me noth-
- ing -- then I won't have to tell no lies."
-
- He studied a while, and then he says:
-
- "Oho-o! I think I see. You want to SELL all your
- property to me -- not give it. That's the correct
- idea."
-
- Then he wrote something on a paper and read it
- over, and says:
-
- "There; you see it says 'for a consideration.' That
- means I have bought it of you and paid you for it.
- Here's a dollar for you. Now you sign it."
-
- So I signed it, and left.
-
- Miss Watson's nigger, Jim, had a hair-ball as big as
- your fist, which had been took out of the fourth
- stomach of an ox, and he used to do magic with it.
- He said there was a spirit inside of it, and it knowed
- everything. So I went to him that night and told him
- pap was here again, for I found his tracks in the snow.
- What I wanted to know was, what he was going to do,
- and was he going to stay? Jim got out his hair-ball
- and said something over it, and then he held it up and
- dropped it on the floor. It fell pretty solid, and only
- rolled about an inch. Jim tried it again, and then
- another time, and it acted just the same. Jim got
- down on his knees, and put his ear against it and
- listened. But it warn't no use; he said it wouldn't
- talk. He said sometimes it wouldn't talk without
- money. I told him I had an old slick counterfeit
- quarter that warn't no good because the brass showed
- through the silver a little, and it wouldn't pass nohow,
- even if the brass didn't show, because it was so slick
- it felt greasy, and so that would tell on it every time.
- (I reckoned I wouldn't say nothing about the dollar I
- got from the judge.) I said it was pretty bad money,
- but maybe the hair-ball would take it, because maybe
- it wouldn't know the difference. Jim smelt it and bit
- it and rubbed it, and said he would manage so the
- hair-ball would think it was good. He said he would
- split open a raw Irish potato and stick the quarter in
- between and keep it there all night, and next morning
- you couldn't see no brass, and it wouldn't feel greasy
- no more, and so anybody in town would take it in a
- minute, let alone a hair-ball. Well, I knowed a potato
- would do that before, but I had forgot it.
-
- Jim put the quarter under the hair-ball, and got
- down and listened again. This time he said the hair-
- ball was all right. He said it would tell my whole
- fortune if I wanted it to. I says, go on. So the hair-
- ball talked to Jim, and Jim told it to me. He says:
-
- "Yo' ole father doan' know yit what he's a-gwyne
- to do. Sometimes he spec he'll go 'way, en den agin
- he spec he'll stay. De bes' way is to res' easy en let
- de ole man take his own way. Dey's two angels
- hoverin' roun' 'bout him. One uv 'em is white en
- shiny, en t'other one is black. De white one gits him
- to go right a little while, den de black one sail in en
- bust it all up. A body can't tell yit which one gwyne
- to fetch him at de las'. But you is all right. You
- gwyne to have considable trouble in yo' life, en con-
- sidable joy. Sometimes you gwyne to git hurt, en
- sometimes you gwyne to git sick; but every time you's
- gwyne to git well agin. Dey's two gals flyin' 'bout
- you in yo' life. One uv 'em's light en t'other one is
- dark. One is rich en t'other is po'. You's gwyne to
- marry de po' one fust en de rich one by en by. You
- wants to keep 'way fum de water as much as you kin,
- en don't run no resk, 'kase it's down in de bills dat
- you's gwyne to git hung."
-
- When I lit my candle and went up to my room that
- night there sat pap -- his own self!
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
- I HAD shut the door to. Then I turned around.
- and there he was. I used to be scared of him all
- the time, he tanned me so much. I reckoned I was
- scared now, too; but in a minute I see I was mistaken
- -- that is, after the first jolt, as you may say, when
- my breath sort of hitched, he being so unexpected;
- but right away after I see I warn't scared of him worth
- bothring about.
-
- He was most fifty, and he looked it. His hair was
- long and tangled and greasy, and hung down, and you
- could see his eyes shining through like he was behind
- vines. It was all black, no gray; so was his long,
- mixed-up whiskers. There warn't no color in his face,
- where his face showed; it was white; not like another
- man's white, but a white to make a body sick, a white
- to make a body's flesh crawl -- a tree-toad white, a
- fish-belly white. As for his clothes -- just rags, that
- was all. He had one ankle resting on t'other knee;
- the boot on that foot was busted, and two of his toes
- stuck through, and he worked them now and then.
- His hat was laying on the floor -- an old black slouch
- with the top caved in, like a lid.
-
- I stood a-looking at him; he set there a-looking at
- me, with his chair tilted back a little. I set the candle
- down. I noticed the window was up; so he had clumb
- in by the shed. He kept a-looking me all over. By
- and by he says:
-
- "Starchy clothes -- very. You think you're a good
- deal of a big-bug, DON'T you?"
-
- "Maybe I am, maybe I ain't," I says.
-
- "Don't you give me none o' your lip," says he.
- "You've put on considerable many frills since I been
- away. I'll take you down a peg before I get done
- with you. You're educated, too, they say -- can read
- and write. You think you're better'n your father,
- now, don't you, because he can't? I'LL take it out of
- you. Who told you you might meddle with such
- hifalut'n foolishness, hey? -- who told you you could?"
-
- "The widow. She told me."
-
- "The widow, hey? -- and who told the widow she
- could put in her shovel about a thing that ain't none of
- her business?"
-
- "Nobody never told her."
-
- "Well, I'll learn her how to meddle. And looky
- here -- you drop that school, you hear? I'll learn
- people to bring up a boy to put on airs over his own
- father and let on to be better'n what HE is. You lemme
- catch you fooling around that school again, you hear?
- Your mother couldn't read, and she couldn't write,
- nuther, before she died. None of the family couldn't
- before THEY died. I can't; and here you're a-swelling
- yourself up like this. I ain't the man to stand it --
- you hear? Say, lemme hear you read."
-
- I took up a book and begun something about Gen-
- eral Washington and the wars. When I'd read about
- a half a minute, he fetched the book a whack with his
- hand and knocked it across the house. He says:
-
- "It's so. You can do it. I had my doubts when
- you told me. Now looky here; you stop that putting
- on frills. I won't have it. I'll lay for you, my
- smarty; and if I catch you about that school I'll tan
- you good. First you know you'll get religion, too. I
- never see such a son.
-
- He took up a little blue and yaller picture of some
- cows and a boy, and says:
-
- "What's this?"
-
- "It's something they give me for learning my
- lessons good."
-
- He tore it up, and says:
-
- "I'll give you something better -- I'll give you a
- cowhide.
-
- He set there a-mumbling and a-growling a minute,
- and then he says:
-
- "AIN'T you a sweet-scented dandy, though? A
- bed; and bedclothes; and a look'n'-glass; and a piece
- of carpet on the floor -- and your own father got to
- sleep with the hogs in the tanyard. I never see such a
- son. I bet I'll take some o' these frills out o' you
- before I'm done with you. Why, there ain't no end to
- your airs -- they say you're rich. Hey? -- how's that?"
-
- "They lie -- that's how."
-
- "Looky here -- mind how you talk to me; I'm a-
- standing about all I can stand now -- so don't gimme
- no sass. I've been in town two days, and I hain't
- heard nothing but about you bein' rich. I heard
- about it away down the river, too. That's why I
- come. You git me that money to-morrow -- I want
- it."
-
- "I hain't got no money."
-
- "It's a lie. Judge Thatcher's got it. You git it.
- I want it."
-
- "I hain't got no money, I tell you. You ask Judge
- Thatcher; he'll tell you the same."
-
- "All right. I'll ask him; and I'll make him pungle,
- too, or I'll know the reason why. Say, how much
- you got in your pocket? I want it."
-
- "I hain't got only a dollar, and I want that to --"
-
- "It don't make no difference what you want it for
- -- you just shell it out."
-
- He took it and bit it to see if it was good, and then
- he said he was going down town to get some whisky;
- said he hadn't had a drink all day. When he had got
- out on the shed he put his head in again, and cussed
- me for putting on frills and trying to be better than
- him; and when I reckoned he was gone he come back
- and put his head in again, and told me to mind about
- that school, because he was going to lay for me and
- lick me if I didn't drop that.
-
- Next day he was drunk, and he went to Judge
- Thatcher's and bullyragged him, and tried to make
- him give up the money; but he couldn't, and then he
- swore he'd make the law force him.
-
- The judge and the widow went to law to get the
- court to take me away from him and let one of them
- be my guardian; but it was a new judge that had just
- come, and he didn't know the old man; so he said
- courts mustn't interfere and separate families if they
- could help it; said he'd druther not take a child away
- from its father. So Judge Thatcher and the widow
- had to quit on the business.
-
- That pleased the old man till he couldn't rest. He
- said he'd cowhide me till I was black and blue if I
- didn't raise some money for him. I borrowed three
- dollars from Judge Thatcher, and pap took it and got
- drunk, and went a-blowing around and cussing and
- whooping and carrying on; and he kept it up all over
- town, with a tin pan, till most midnight; then they
- jailed him, and next day they had him before court,
- and jailed him again for a week. But he said HE was
- satisfied; said he was boss of his son, and he'd make
- it warm for HIM.
-
- When he got out the new judge said he was a-going
- to make a man of him. So he took him to his
- own house, and dressed him up clean and nice, and
- had him to breakfast and dinner and supper with the
- family, and was just old pie to him, so to speak. And
- after supper he talked to him about temperance and
- such things till the old man cried, and said he'd been a
- fool, and fooled away his life; but now he was a-going
- to turn over a new leaf and be a man nobody wouldn't
- be ashamed of, and he hoped the judge would help
- him and not look down on him. The judge said he
- could hug him for them words; so he cried, and his
- wife she cried again; pap said he'd been a man that had
- always been misunderstood before, and the judge said
- he believed it. The old man said that what a man
- wanted that was down was sympathy, and the judge
- said it was so; so they cried again. And when it was
- bedtime the old man rose up and held out his hand,
- and says:
-
- "Look at it, gentlemen and ladies all; take a-hold
- of it; shake it. There's a hand that was the hand of
- a hog; but it ain't so no more; it's the hand of a man
- that's started in on a new life, and'll die before he'll
- go back. You mark them words -- don't forget I said
- them. It's a clean hand now; shake it -- don't be
- afeard."
-
- So they shook it, one after the other, all around, and
- cried. The judge's wife she kissed it. Then the old
- man he signed a pledge -- made his mark. The judge
- said it was the holiest time on record, or something
- like that. Then they tucked the old man into a beauti-
- ful room, which was the spare room, and in the night
- some time he got powerful thirsty and clumb out on to
- the porch-roof and slid down a stanchion and traded his
- new coat for a jug of forty-rod, and clumb back again
- and had a good old time; and towards daylight he
- crawled out again, drunk as a fiddler, and rolled off
- the porch and broke his left arm in two places, and
- was most froze to death when somebody found him
- after sun-up. And when they come to look at that
- spare room they had to take soundings before they
- could navigate it.
-
- The judge he felt kind of sore. He said he reckoned
- a body could reform the old man with a shotgun,
- maybe, but he didn't know no other way.
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
- WELL, pretty soon the old man was up and around
- again, and then he went for Judge Thatcher in
- the courts to make him give up that money, and he
- went for me, too, for not stopping school. He catched
- me a couple of times and thrashed me, but I went to
- school just the same, and dodged him or outrun him
- most of the time. I didn't want to go to school much
- before, but I reckoned I'd go now to spite pap. That
- law trial was a slow business -- appeared like they
- warn't ever going to get started on it; so every now
- and then I'd borrow two or three dollars off of the
- judge for him, to keep from getting a cowhiding.
- Every time he got money he got drunk; and every
- time he got drunk he raised Cain around town; and
- every time he raised Cain he got jailed. He was just
- suited -- this kind of thing was right in his line.
-
- He got to hanging around the widow's too much
- and so she told him at last that if he didn't quit using
- around there she would make trouble for him. Well,
- WASN'T he mad? He said he would show who was
- Huck Finn's boss. So he watched out for me one day
- in the spring, and catched me, and took me up the
- river about three mile in a skiff, and crossed over to
- the Illinois shore where it was woody and there warn't
- no houses but an old log hut in a place where the
- timber was so thick you couldn't find it if you didn't
- know where it was.
-
- He kept me with him all the time, and I never got a
- chance to run off. We lived in that old cabin, and he
- always locked the door and put the key under his head
- nights. He had a gun which he had stole, I reckon,
- and we fished and hunted, and that was what we lived
- on. Every little while he locked me in and went down
- to the store, three miles, to the ferry, and traded fish
- and game for whisky, and fetched it home and got
- drunk and had a good time, and licked me. The
- widow she found out where I was by and by, and she
- sent a man over to try to get hold of me; but pap
- drove him off with the gun, and it warn't long after
- that till I was used to being where I was, and liked
- it -- all but the cowhide part.
-
- It was kind of lazy and jolly, laying off comfortable
- all day, smoking and fishing, and no books nor study.
- Two months or more run along, and my clothes got to
- be all rags and dirt, and I didn't see how I'd ever got
- to like it so well at the widow's, where you had to
- wash, and eat on a plate, and comb up, and go to bed
- and get up regular, and be forever bothering over a
- book, and have old Miss Watson pecking at you all the
- time. I didn't want to go back no more. I had
- stopped cussing, because the widow didn't like it; but
- now I took to it again because pap hadn't no objec-
- tions. It was pretty good times up in the woods
- there, take it all around.
-
- But by and by pap got too handy with his hick'ry,
- and I couldn't stand it. I was all over welts. He got
- to going away so much, too, and locking me in. Once
- he locked me in and was gone three days. It was
- dreadful lonesome. I judged he had got drowned,
- and I wasn't ever going to get out any more. I was
- scared. I made up my mind I would fix up some way
- to leave there. I had tried to get out of that cabin
- many a time, but I couldn't find no way. There
- warn't a window to it big enough for a dog to get
- through. I couldn't get up the chimbly; it was too
- narrow. The door was thick, solid oak slabs. Pap
- was pretty careful not to leave a knife or anything in
- the cabin when he was away; I reckon I had hunted
- the place over as much as a hundred times; well, I
- was most all the time at it, because it was about the
- only way to put in the time. But this time I found
- something at last; I found an old rusty wood-saw
- without any handle; it was laid in between a rafter
- and the clapboards of the roof. I greased it up and
- went to work. There was an old horse-blanket nailed
- against the logs at the far end of the cabin behind the
- table, to keep the wind from blowing through the
- chinks and putting the candle out. I got under the
- table and raised the blanket, and went to work to saw
- a section of the big bottom log out -- big enough to
- let me through. Well, it was a good long job, but I
- was getting towards the end of it when I heard pap's
- gun in the woods. I got rid of the signs of my work,
- and dropped the blanket and hid my saw, and pretty
- soon pap come in.
-
- Pap warn't in a good humor -- so he was his natural
- self. He said he was down town, and everything was
- going wrong. His lawyer said he reckoned he would
- win his lawsuit and get the money if they ever got
- started on the trial; but then there was ways to put it
- off a long time, and Judge Thatcher knowed how to do
- it And he said people allowed there'd be another
- trial to get me away from him and give me to the
- widow for my guardian, and they guessed it would win
- this time. This shook me up considerable, because I
- didn't want to go back to the widow's any more and
- be so cramped up and sivilized, as they called it.
- Then the old man got to cussing, and cussed every-
- thing and everybody he could think of, and then cussed
- them all over again to make sure he hadn't skipped
- any, and after that he polished off with a kind of a
- general cuss all round, including a considerable parcel
- of people which he didn't know the names of, and so
- called them what's-his-name when he got to them, and
- went right along with his cussing.
-
- He said he would like to see the widow get me.
- He said he would watch out, and if they tried to come
- any such game on him he knowed of a place six or
- seven mile off to stow me in, where they might hunt
- till they dropped and they couldn't find me. That
- made me pretty uneasy again, but only for a minute;
- I reckoned I wouldn't stay on hand till he got that
- chance.
-
- The old man made me go to the skiff and fetch the
- things he had got. There was a fifty-pound sack of
- corn meal, and a side of bacon, ammunition, and a
- four-gallon jug of whisky, and an old book and two
- newspapers for wadding, besides some tow. I toted
- up a load, and went back and set down on the bow of
- the skiff to rest. I thought it all over, and I reckoned
- I would walk off with the gun and some lines, and take
- to the woods when I run away. I guessed I wouldn't
- stay in one place, but just tramp right across the
- country, mostly night times, and hunt and fish to keep
- alive, and so get so far away that the old man nor the
- widow couldn't ever find me any more. I judged I
- would saw out and leave that night if pap got drunk
- enough, and I reckoned he would. I got so full of it
- I didn't notice how long I was staying till the old man
- hollered and asked me whether I was asleep or
- drownded.
-
- I got the things all up to the cabin, and then it was
- about dark. While I was cooking supper the old man
- took a swig or two and got sort of warmed up, and
- went to ripping again. He had been drunk over in
- town, and laid in the gutter all night, and he was a
- sight to look at. A body would a thought he was
- Adam -- he was just all mud. Whenever his liquor
- begun to work he most always went for the govment.
- his time he says:
-
- "Call this a govment! why, just look at it and see
- what it's like. Here's the law a-standing ready to take
- a man's son away from him -- a man's own son, which
- he has had all the trouble and all the anxiety and all
- the expense of raising. Yes, just as that man has got
- that son raised at last, and ready to go to work and
- begin to do suthin' for HIM and give him a rest, the law
- up and goes for him. And they call THAT govment!
- That ain't all, nuther. The law backs that old Judge
- Thatcher up and helps him to keep me out o' my
- property. Here's what the law does: The law takes a
- man worth six thousand dollars and up'ards, and jams
- him into an old trap of a cabin like this, and lets him
- go round in clothes that ain't fitten for a hog. They
- call that govment! A man can't get his rights in a
- govment like this. Sometimes I've a mighty notion to
- just leave the country for good and all. Yes, and I
- TOLD 'em so; I told old Thatcher so to his face. Lots
- of 'em heard me, and can tell what I said. Says I,
- for two cents I'd leave the blamed country and never
- come a-near it agin. Them's the very words. I says
- look at my hat -- if you call it a hat -- but the lid
- raises up and the rest of it goes down till it's below
- my chin, and then it ain't rightly a hat at all, but more
- like my head was shoved up through a jint o' stove-
- pipe. Look at it, says I -- such a hat for me to wear
- -- one of the wealthiest men in this town if I could git
- my rights.
-
- "Oh, yes, this is a wonderful govment, wonderful.
- Why, looky here. There was a free nigger there from
- Ohio -- a mulatter, most as white as a white man. He
- had the whitest shirt on you ever see, too, and the
- shiniest hat; and there ain't a man in that town that's
- got as fine clothes as what he had; and he had a gold
- watch and chain, and a silver-headed cane -- the awful-
- est old gray-headed nabob in the State. And what do
- you think? They said he was a p'fessor in a college,
- and could talk all kinds of languages, and knowed
- everything. And that ain't the wust. They said he
- could VOTE when he was at home. Well, that let me
- out. Thinks I, what is the country a-coming to? It
- was 'lection day, and I was just about to go and vote
- myself if I warn't too drunk to get there; but when
- they told me there was a State in this country where
- they'd let that nigger vote, I drawed out. I says I'll
- never vote agin. Them's the very words I said; they
- all heard me; and the country may rot for all me --
- I'll never vote agin as long as I live. And to see the
- cool way of that nigger -- why, he wouldn't a give me
- the road if I hadn't shoved him out o' the way. I
- says to the people, why ain't this nigger put up at
- auction and sold? -- that's what I want to know. And
- what do you reckon they said? Why, they said he
- couldn't be sold till he'd been in the State six months,
- and he hadn't been there that long yet. There, now --
- that's a specimen. They call that a govment that can't
- sell a free nigger till he's been in the State six months.
- Here's a govment that calls itself a govment, and lets
- on to be a govment, and thinks it is a govment, and
- yet's got to set stock-still for six whole months before
- it can take a hold of a prowling, thieving, infernal,
- white-shirted free nigger, and --"
-
- Pap was agoing on so he never noticed where his
- old limber legs was taking him to, so he went head over
- heels over the tub of salt pork and barked both shins,
- and the rest of his speech was all the hottest kind of
- language -- mostly hove at the nigger and the gov-
- ment, though he give the tub some, too, all along,
- here and there. He hopped around the cabin con-
- siderable, first on one leg and then on the other, hold-
- ing first one shin and then the other one, and at last he
- let out with his left foot all of a sudden and fetched
- the tub a rattling kick. But it warn't good judgment,
- because that was the boot that had a couple of his toes
- leaking out of the front end of it; so now he raised a
- howl that fairly made a body's hair raise, and down he
- went in the dirt, and rolled there, and held his toes;
- and the cussing he done then laid over anything he
- had ever done previous. He said so his own self after-
- wards. He had heard old Sowberry Hagan in his
- best days, and he said it laid over him, too; but I
- reckon that was sort of piling it on, maybe.
-
- After supper pap took the jug, and said he had
- enough whisky there for two drunks and one delirium
- tremens. That was always his word. I judged he
- would be blind drunk in about an hour, and then I
- would steal the key, or saw myself out, one or t'other.
- He drank and drank, and tumbled down on his
- blankets by and by; but luck didn't run my way. He
- didn't go sound asleep, but was uneasy. He groaned
- and moaned and thrashed around this way and that for
- a long time. At last I got so sleepy I couldn't keep
- my eyes open all I could do, and so before I knowed
- what I was about I was sound asleep, and the candle
- burning.
-
- I don't know how long I was asleep, but all of a
- sudden there was an awful scream and I was up.
- There was pap looking wild, and skipping around every
- which way and yelling about snakes. He said they
- was crawling up his legs; and then he would give a
- jump and scream, and say one had bit him on the
- cheek -- but I couldn't see no snakes. He started
- and run round and round the cabin, hollering "Take
- him off! take him off! he's biting me on the neck!"
- I never see a man look so wild in the eyes. Pretty
- soon he was all fagged out, and fell down panting;
- then he rolled over and over wonderful fast, kicking
- things every which way, and striking and grabbing at
- the air with his hands, and screaming and saying there
- was devils a-hold of him. He wore out by and by,
- and laid still a while, moaning. Then he laid stiller,
- and didn't make a sound. I could hear the owls and
- the wolves away off in the woods, and it seemed terri-
- ble still. He was laying over by the corner. By and
- by he raised up part way and listened, with his head
- to one side. He says, very low:
-
- "Tramp -- tramp -- tramp; that's the dead; tramp
- -- tramp -- tramp; they're coming after me; but I
- won't go. Oh, they're here! don't touch me -- don't!
- hands off -- they're cold; let go. Oh, let a poor devil
- alone!"
-
- Then he went down on all fours and crawled off,
- begging them to let him alone, and he rolled himself
- up in his blanket and wallowed in under the old pine
- table, still a-begging; and then he went to crying. I
- could hear him through the blanket.
-
- By and by he rolled out and jumped up on his feet
- looking wild, and he see me and went for me. He
- chased me round and round the place with a clasp-
- knife, calling me the Angel of Death, and saying he
- would kill me, and then I couldn't come for him no
- more. I begged, and told him I was only Huck; but
- he laughed SUCH a screechy laugh, and roared and
- cussed, and kept on chasing me up. Once when I
- turned short and dodged under his arm he made a
- grab and got me by the jacket between my shoulders,
- and I thought I was gone; but I slid out of the jacket
- quick as lightning, and saved myself. Pretty soon he
- was all tired out, and dropped down with his back
- against the door, and said he would rest a minute and
- then kill me. He put his knife under him, and said
- he would sleep and get strong, and then he would see
- who was who.
-
- So he dozed off pretty soon. By and by I got the
- old split-bottom chair and clumb up as easy as I could,
- not to make any noise, and got down the gun. I
- slipped the ramrod down it to make sure it was loaded,
- then I laid it across the turnip barrel, pointing
- towards pap, and set down behind it to wait for him to
- stir. And how slow and still the time did drag along.
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
- RGIT up! What you 'bout?"
-
- I opened my eyes and looked around, trying
- to make out where I was. It was after sun-up, and I
- had been sound asleep. Pap was standing over me
- looking sourQand sick, too. He says:
-
- "What you doin' with this gun?"
-
- I judged he didn't know nothing about what he had
- been doing, so I says:
-
- "Somebody tried to get in, so I was laying for
- him."
-
- "Why didn't you roust me out?"
-
- "Well, I tried to, but I couldn't; I couldn't budge
- you."
-
- "Well, all right. Don't stand there palavering all
- day, but out with you and see if there's a fish on the
- lines for breakfast. I'll be along in a minute."
-
- He unlocked the door, and I cleared out up the
- river-bank. I noticed some pieces of limbs and such
- things floating down, and a sprinkling of bark; so I
- knowed the river had begun to rise. I reckoned I
- would have great times now if I was over at the town.
- The June rise used to be always luck for me; because
- as soon as that rise begins here comes cordwood float-
- ing down, and pieces of log rafts -- sometimes a dozen
- logs together; so all you have to do is to catch them
- and sell them to the wood-yards and the sawmill.
-
- I went along up the bank with one eye out for pap
- and t'other one out for what the rise might fetch
- along. Well, all at once here comes a canoe; just a
- beauty, too, about thirteen or fourteen foot long,
- riding high like a duck. I shot head-first off of the
- bank like a frog, clothes and all on, and struck out for
- the canoe. I just expected there'd be somebody lay-
- ing down in it, because people often done that to fool
- folks, and when a chap had pulled a skiff out most to
- it they'd raise up and laugh at him. But it warn't so
- this time. It was a drift-canoe sure enough, and I
- clumb in and paddled her ashore. Thinks I, the old
- man will be glad when he sees this -- she's worth ten
- dollars. But when I got to shore pap wasn't in sight
- yet, and as I was running her into a little creek like a
- gully, all hung over with vines and willows, I struck
- another idea: I judged I'd hide her good, and then,
- 'stead of taking to the woods when I run off, I'd go
- down the river about fifty mile and camp in one place
- for good, and not have such a rough time tramping on
- foot.
-
- It was pretty close to the shanty, and I thought I
- heard the old man coming all the time; but I got her
- hid; and then I out and looked around a bunch of
- willows, and there was the old man down the path
- a piece just drawing a bead on a bird with his gun. So
- he hadn't seen anything.
-
- When he got along I was hard at it taking up a
- "trot" line. He abused me a little for being so slow;
- but I told him I fell in the river, and that was what
- made me so long. I knowed he would see I was wet,
- and then he would be asking questions. We got five
- catfish off the lines and went home.
-
- While we laid off after breakfast to sleep up, both of
- us being about wore out, I got to thinking that if I could
- fix up some way to keep pap and the widow from trying
- to follow me, it would be a certainer thing than trust-
- ing to luck to get far enough off before they missed
- me; you see, all kinds of things might happen. Well,
- I didn't see no way for a while, but by and by pap
- raised up a minute to drink another barrel of water,
- and he says:
-
- "Another time a man comes a-prowling round here
- you roust me out, you hear? That man warn't here
- for no good. I'd a shot him. Next time you roust
- me out, you hear?"
-
- Then he dropped down and went to sleep again; but
- what he had been saying give me the very idea I
- wanted. I says to myself, I can fix it now so nobody
- won't think of following me.
-
- About twelve o'clock we turned out and went along
- up the bank. The river was coming up pretty fast,
- and lots of driftwood going by on the rise. By and
- by along comes part of a log raft -- nine logs fast
- together. We went out with the skiff and towed it
- ashore. Then we had dinner. Anybody but pap
- would a waited and seen the day through, so as to
- catch more stuff; but that warn't pap's style. Nine
- logs was enough for one time; he must shove right
- over to town and sell. So he locked me in and took
- the skiff, and started off towing the raft about half-
- past three. I judged he wouldn't come back that
- night. I waited till I reckoned he had got a good
- start; then I out with my saw, and went to work on
- that log again. Before he was t'other side of the river
- I was out of the hole; him and his raft was just a
- speck on the water away off yonder.
-
- I took the sack of corn meal and took it to where
- the canoe was hid, and shoved the vines and branches
- apart and put it in; then I done the same with the
- side of bacon; then the whisky-jug. I took all the
- coffee and sugar there was, and all the ammunition; I
- took the wadding; I took the bucket and gourd; I
- took a dipper and a tin cup, and my old saw and two
- blankets, and the skillet and the coffee-pot. I took
- fish-lines and matches and other things -- everything
- that was worth a cent. I cleaned out the place. I
- wanted an axe, but there wasn't any, only the one out
- at the woodpile, and I knowed why I was going to leave
- that. I fetched out the gun, and now I was done.
-
- I had wore the ground a good deal crawling out of
- the hole and dragging out so many things. So I
- fixed that as good as I could from the outside by
- scattering dust on the place, which covered up the
- smoothness and the sawdust. Then I fixed the piece
- of log back into its place, and put two rocks under it
- and one against it to hold it there, for it was bent up
- at that place and didn't quite touch ground. If you
- stood four or five foot away and didn't know it was
- sawed, you wouldn't never notice it; and besides, this
- was the back of the cabin, and it warn't likely anybody
- would go fooling around there.
-
- It was all grass clear to the canoe, so I hadn't left a
- track. I followed around to see. I stood on the
- bank and looked out over the river. All safe. So I
- took the gun and went up a piece into the woods, and
- was hunting around for some birds when I see a wild
- pig; hogs soon went wild in them bottoms after they
- had got away from the prairie farms. I shot this fel-
- low and took him into camp.
-
- I took the axe and smashed in the door. I beat it
- and hacked it considerable a-doing it. I fetched the
- pig in, and took him back nearly to the table and
- hacked into his throat with the axe, and laid him down
- on the ground to bleed; I say ground because it was
- ground -- hard packed, and no boards. Well, next I
- took an old sack and put a lot of big rocks in it -- all I
- could drag -- and I started it from the pig, and dragged
- it to the door and through the woods down to the river
- and dumped it in, and down it sunk, out of sight.
- You could easy see that something had been dragged
- over the ground. I did wish Tom Sawyer was there;
- I knowed he would take an interest in this kind of
- business, and throw in the fancy touches. Nobody
- could spread himself like Tom Sawyer in such a thing
- as that.
-
- Well, last I pulled out some of my hair, and blooded
- the axe good, and stuck it on the back side, and slung
- the axe in the corner. Then I took up the pig and held
- him to my breast with my jacket (so he couldn't drip)
- till I got a good piece below the house and then
- dumped him into the river. Now I thought of some-
- thing else. So I went and got the bag of meal
- and my old saw out of the canoe, and fetched
- them to the house. I took the bag to where it
- used to stand, and ripped a hole in the bottom of it
- with the saw, for there warn't no knives and forks on
- the place -- pap done everything with his clasp-knife
- about the cooking. Then I carried the sack about a
- hundred yards across the grass and through the willows
- east of the house, to a shallow lake that was five mile
- wide and full of rushes -- and ducks too, you might
- say, in the season. There was a slough or a creek
- leading out of it on the other side that went miles away,
- I don't know where, but it didn't go to the river. The
- meal sifted out and made a little track all the way to
- the lake. I dropped pap's whetstone there too, so as
- to look like it had been done by accident. Then I tied
- up the rip in the meal sack with a string, so it wouldn't
- leak no more, and took it and my saw to the canoe
- again.
-
- It was about dark now; so I dropped the canoe
- down the river under some willows that hung over the
- bank, and waited for the moon to rise. I made fast to
- a willow; then I took a bite to eat, and by and by laid
- down in the canoe to smoke a pipe and lay out a plan.
- I says to myself, they'll follow the track of that sack-
- ful of rocks to the shore and then drag the river for
- me. And they'll follow that meal track to the lake
- and go browsing down the creek that leads out of it to
- find the robbers that killed me and took the things.
- They won't ever hunt the river for anything but my
- dead carcass. They'll soon get tired of that, and
- won't bother no more about me. All right; I can
- stop anywhere I want to. Jackson's Island is good
- enough for me; I know that island pretty well, and
- nobody ever comes there. And then I can paddle
- over to town nights, and slink around and pick up
- things I want. Jackson's Island's the place.
-
- I was pretty tired, and the first thing I knowed I
- was asleep. When I woke up I didn't know where I
- was for a minute. I set up and looked around, a little
- scared. Then I remembered. The river looked miles
- and miles across. The moon was so bright I could a
- counted the drift logs that went a-slipping along, black
- and still, hundreds of yards out from shore. Every-
- thing was dead quiet, and it looked late, and SMELT
- late. You know what I mean -- I don't know the
- words to put it in.
-
- I took a good gap and a stretch, and was just going
- to unhitch and start when I heard a sound away over
- the water. I listened. Pretty soon I made it out. It
- was that dull kind of a regular sound that comes from
- oars working in rowlocks when it's a still night. I
- peeped out through the willow branches, and there it
- was -- a skiff, away across the water. I couldn't tell
- how many was in it. It kept a-coming, and when it
- was abreast of me I see there warn't but one man in it.
- Think's I, maybe it's pap, though I warn't expecting
- him. He dropped below me with the current, and
- by and by he came a-swinging up shore in the easy
- water, and he went by so close I could a reached out
- the gun and touched him. Well, it WAS pap, sure
- enough -- and sober, too, by the way he laid his oars.
-
- I didn't lose no time. The next minute I was a-
- spinning down stream soft but quick in the shade of
- the bank. I made two mile and a half, and then
- struck out a quarter of a mile or more towards the
- middle of the river, because pretty soon I would be
- passing the ferry landing, and people might see me
- and hail me. I got out amongst the driftwood, and
- then laid down in the bottom of the canoe and let her
- float. I laid there, and had a good rest and a smoke
- out of my pipe, looking away into the sky; not a
- cloud in it. The sky looks ever so deep when you lay
- down on your back in the moonshine; I never knowed
- it before. And how far a body can hear on the water
- such nights! I heard people talking at the ferry land-
- ing. I heard what they said, too -- every word of it.
- One man said it was getting towards the long days and
- the short nights now. T'other one said THIS warn't
- one of the short ones, he reckoned -- and then they
- laughed, and he said it over again, and they laughed
- again; then they waked up another fellow and told
- him, and laughed, but he didn't laugh; he ripped out
- something brisk, and said let him alone. The first
- fellow said he 'lowed to tell it to his old woman -- she
- would think it was pretty good; but he said that
- warn't nothing to some things he had said in his time.
- I heard one man say it was nearly three o'clock, and
- he hoped daylight wouldn't wait more than about a
- week longer. After that the talk got further and
- further away, and I couldn't make out the words any
- more; but I could hear the mumble, and now and then
- a laugh, too, but it seemed a long ways off.
-
- I was away below the ferry now. I rose up, and
- there was Jackson's Island, about two mile and a half
- down stream, heavy timbered and standing up out of
- the middle of the river, big and dark and solid, like a
- steamboat without any lights. There warn't any signs
- of the bar at the head -- it was all under water now.
-
- It didn't take me long to get there. I shot past the
- head at a ripping rate, the current was so swift, and
- then I got into the dead water and landed on the side
- towards the Illinois shore. I run the canoe into a deep
- dent in the bank that I knowed about; I had to part
- the willow branches to get in; and when I made fast
- nobody could a seen the canoe from the outside.
-
- I went up and set down on a log at the head of the
- island, and looked out on the big river and the black
- driftwood and away over to the town, three mile
- away, where there was three or four lights twinkling.
- A monstrous big lumber-raft was about a mile up
- stream, coming along down, with a lantern in the
- middle of it. I watched it come creeping down, and
- when it was most abreast of where I stood I heard a
- man say, "Stern oars, there! heave her head to stab-
- board!" I heard that just as plain as if the man was
- by my side.
-
- There was a little gray in the sky now; so I stepped
- into the woods, and laid down for a nap before break-
- fast.
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
- THE sun was up so high when I waked that I judged
- it was after eight o'clock. I laid there in the
- grass and the cool shade thinking about things, and
- feeling rested and ruther comfortable and satisfied. I
- could see the sun out at one or two holes, but mostly
- it was big trees all about, and gloomy in there amongst
- them. There was freckled places on the ground where
- the light sifted down through the leaves, and the
- freckled places swapped about a little, showing there
- was a little breeze up there. A couple of squirrels set
- on a limb and jabbered at me very friendly.
-
- I was powerful lazy and comfortable -- didn't want
- to get up and cook breakfast. Well, I was dozing off
- again when I thinks I hears a deep sound of "boom!"
- away up the river. I rouses up, and rests on my elbow
- and listens; pretty soon I hears it again. I hopped
- up, and went and looked out at a hole in the leaves,
- and I see a bunch of smoke laying on the water a long
- ways up -- about abreast the ferry. And there was
- the ferryboat full of people floating along down. I
- knowed what was the matter now. "Boom!" I see
- the white smoke squirt out of the ferryboat's side.
- You see, they was firing cannon over the water, trying
- to make my carcass come to the top.
-
- I was pretty hungry, but it warn't going to do for
- me to start a fire, because they might see the smoke.
- So I set there and watched the cannon-smoke and
- listened to the boom. The river was a mile wide there,
- and it always looks pretty on a summer morning -- so
- I was having a good enough time seeing them hunt for
- my remainders if I only had a bite to eat. Well, then
- I happened to think how they always put quicksilver
- in loaves of bread and float them off, because they
- always go right to the drownded carcass and stop
- there. So, says I, I'll keep a lookout, and if any of
- them's floating around after me I'll give them a show.
- I changed to the Illinois edge of the island to see what
- luck I could have, and I warn't disappointed. A big
- double loaf come along, and I most got it with a long
- stick, but my foot slipped and she floated out further.
- Of course I was where the current set in the closest to
- the shore -- I knowed enough for that. But by and
- by along comes another one, and this time I won. I
- took out the plug and shook out the little dab of quick-
- silver, and set my teeth in. It was "baker's bread"
- -- what the quality eat; none of your low-down
- corn-pone.
-
- I got a good place amongst the leaves, and set there
- on a log, munching the bread and watching the ferry-
- boat, and very well satisfied. And then something
- struck me. I says, now I reckon the widow or the
- parson or somebody prayed that this bread would find
- me, and here it has gone and done it. So there ain't
- no doubt but there is something in that thing -- that is,
- there's something in it when a body like the widow or
- the parson prays, but it don't work for me, and I
- reckon it don't work for only just the right kind.
-
- I lit a pipe and had a good long smoke, and went
- on watching. The ferryboat was floating with the
- current, and I allowed I'd have a chance to see who
- was aboard when she come along, because she would
- come in close, where the bread did. When she'd got
- pretty well along down towards me, I put out my pipe
- and went to where I fished out the bread, and laid
- down behind a log on the bank in a little open place.
- Where the log forked I could peep through.
-
- By and by she come along, and she drifted in so
- close that they could a run out a plank and walked
- ashore. Most everybody was on the boat. Pap, and
- Judge Thatcher, and Bessie Thatcher, and Jo Harper,
- and Tom Sawyer, and his old Aunt Polly, and Sid and
- Mary, and plenty more. Everybody was talking about
- the murder, but the captain broke in and says:
-
- "Look sharp, now; the current sets in the closest
- here, and maybe he's washed ashore and got tangled
- amongst the brush at the water's edge. I hope so,
- anyway."
-
- "I didn't hope so. They all crowded up and leaned
- over the rails, nearly in my face, and kept still, watch-
- ing with all their might. I could see them first-rate,
- but they couldn't see me. Then the captain sung out:
-
- "Stand away!" and the cannon let off such a blast
- right before me that it made me deef with the noise and
- pretty near blind with the smoke, and I judged I was
- gone. If they'd a had some bullets in, I reckon
- they'd a got the corpse they was after. Well, I see I
- warn't hurt, thanks to goodness. The boat floated on
- and went out of sight around the shoulder of the island.
- I could hear the booming now and then, further and
- further off, and by and by, after an hour, I didn't hear
- it no more. The island was three mile long. I judged
- they had got to the foot, and was giving it up. But
- they didn't yet a while. They turned around the foot
- of the island and started up the channel on the Mis-
- souri side, under steam, and booming once in a while
- as they went. I crossed over to that side and watched
- them. When they got abreast the head of the island
- they quit shooting and dropped over to the Missouri
- shore and went home to the town.
-
- I knowed I was all right now. Nobody else would
- come a-hunting after me. I got my traps out of the
- canoe and made me a nice camp in the thick woods. I
- made a kind of a tent out of my blankets to put my
- things under so the rain couldn't get at them. I
- catched a catfish and haggled him open with my saw,
- and towards sundown I started my camp fire and had
- supper. Then I set out a line to catch some fish for
- breakfast.
-
- When it was dark I set by my camp fire smoking,
- and feeling pretty well satisfied; but by and by it got
- sort of lonesome, and so I went and set on the bank
- and listened to the current swashing along, and counted
- the stars and drift logs and rafts that come down, and
- then went to bed; there ain't no better way to put in
- time when you are lonesome; you can't stay so, you
- soon get over it.
-
- And so for three days and nights. No difference --
- just the same thing. But the next day I went explor-
- ing around down through the island. I was boss of it;
- it all belonged to me, so to say, and I wanted to know
- all about it; but mainly I wanted to put in the time.
- I found plenty strawberries, ripe and prime; and green
- summer grapes, and green razberries; and the green
- blackberries was just beginning to show. They would
- all come handy by and by, I judged.
-
- Well, I went fooling along in the deep woods till I
- judged I warn't far from the foot of the island. I had
- my gun along, but I hadn't shot nothing; it was for
- protection; thought I would kill some game nigh
- home. About this time I mighty near stepped on a
- good-sized snake, and it went sliding off through the
- grass and flowers, and I after it, trying to get a shot at
- it. I clipped along, and all of a sudden I bounded
- right on to the ashes of a camp fire that was still
- smoking.
-
- My heart jumped up amongst my lungs. I never
- waited for to look further, but uncocked my gun and
- went sneaking back on my tiptoes as fast as ever I
- could. Every now and then I stopped a second amongst
- the thick leaves and listened, but my breath come so
- hard I couldn't hear nothing else. I slunk along an-
- other piece further, then listened again; and so on,
- and so on. If I see a stump, I took it for a man; if I
- trod on a stick and broke it, it made me feel like a
- person had cut one of my breaths in two and I only
- got half, and the short half, too.
-
- When I got to camp I warn't feeling very brash,
- there warn't much sand in my craw; but I says, this
- ain't no time to be fooling around. So I got all my
- traps into my canoe again so as to have them out of
- sight, and I put out the fire and scattered the ashes
- around to look like an old last year's camp, and then
- clumb a tree.
-
- I reckon I was up in the tree two hours; but I
- didn't see nothing, I didn't hear nothing -- I only
- THOUGHT I heard and seen as much as a thousand
- things. Well, I couldn't stay up there forever; so at
- last I got down, but I kept in the thick woods and on
- the lookout all the time. All I could get to eat was
- berries and what was left over from breakfast.
-
- By the time it was night I was pretty hungry. So
- when it was good and dark I slid out from shore before
- moonrise and paddled over to the Illinois bank -- about
- a quarter of a mile. I went out in the woods and
- cooked a supper, and I had about made up my mind
- I would stay there all night when I hear a PLUNKETY-
- PLUNK, PLUNKETY-PLUNK, and says to myself, horses
- coming; and next I hear people's voices. I got
- everything into the canoe as quick as I could, and then
- went creeping through the woods to see what I could
- find out. I hadn't got far when I hear a man say:
-
- "We better camp here if we can find a good place;
- the horses is about beat out. Let's look around."
-
- I didn't wait, but shoved out and paddled away
- easy. I tied up in the old place, and reckoned I would
- sleep in the canoe.
-
- I didn't sleep much. I couldn't, somehow, for
- thinking. And every time I waked up I thought
- somebody had me by the neck. So the sleep didn't
- do me no good. By and by I says to myself, I can't
- live this way; I'm a-going to find out who it is that's
- here on the island with me; I'll find it out or bust.
- Well, I felt better right off.
-
- So I took my paddle and slid out from shore just a
- step or two, and then let the canoe drop along down
- amongst the shadows. The moon was shining, and out-
- side of the shadows it made it most as light as day. I
- poked along well on to an hour, everything still as
- rocks and sound asleep. Well, by this time I was
- most down to the foot of the island. A little ripply,
- cool breeze begun to blow, and that was as good as
- saying the night was about done. I give her a turn
- with the paddle and brung her nose to shore; then I
- got my gun and slipped out and into the edge of the
- woods. I sat down there on a log, and looked out
- through the leaves. I see the moon go off watch, and
- the darkness begin to blanket the river. But in a little
- while I see a pale streak over the treetops, and knowed
- the day was coming. So I took my gun and slipped
- off towards where I had run across that camp fire,
- stopping every minute or two to listen. But I hadn't
- no luck somehow; I couldn't seem to find the place.
- But by and by, sure enough, I catched a glimpse of
- fire away through the trees. I went for it, cautious
- and slow. By and by I was close enough to have a
- look, and there laid a man on the ground. It most
- give me the fantods. He had a blanket around his
- head, and his head was nearly in the fire. I set there
- behind a clump of bushes in about six foot of him,
- and kept my eyes on him steady. It was getting gray
- daylight now. Pretty soon he gapped and stretched
- himself and hove off the blanket, and it was Miss
- Watson's Jim! I bet I was glad to see him. I says:
-
- "Hello, Jim!" and skipped out.
-
- He bounced up and stared at me wild. Then he
- drops down on his knees, and puts his hands together
- and says:
-
- "Doan' hurt me -- don't! I hain't ever done no
- harm to a ghos'. I alwuz liked dead people, en done
- all I could for 'em. You go en git in de river agin,
- whah you b'longs, en doan' do nuffn to Ole Jim, 'at
- 'uz awluz yo' fren'."
-
- Well, I warn't long making him understand I warn't
- dead. I was ever so glad to see Jim. I warn't lone-
- some now. I told him I warn't afraid of HIM telling
- the people where I was. I talked along, but he only
- set there and looked at me; never said nothing. Then
- I says:
-
- "It's good daylight. Le's get breakfast. Make up
- your camp fire good."
-
- "What's de use er makin' up de camp fire to cook
- strawbries en sich truck? But you got a gun, hain't
- you? Den we kin git sumfn better den strawbries."
-
- "Strawberries and such truck," I says. "Is that
- what you live on?"
-
- "I couldn' git nuffn else," he says.
-
- "Why, how long you been on the island, Jim?"
-
- "I come heah de night arter you's killed."
-
- "What, all that time?"
-
- "Yes -- indeedy."
-
- "And ain't you had nothing but that kind of rub-
- bage to eat?"
-
- "No, sah -- nuffn else."
-
- "Well, you must be most starved, ain't you?"
-
- "I reck'n I could eat a hoss. I think I could.
- How long you ben on de islan'?"
-
- "Since the night I got killed."
-
- "No! W'y, what has you lived on? But you got
- a gun. Oh, yes, you got a gun. Dat's good. Now
- you kill sumfn en I'll make up de fire."
-
- So we went over to where the canoe was, and while
- he built a fire in a grassy open place amongst the trees,
- I fetched meal and bacon and coffee, and coffee-pot
- and frying-pan, and sugar and tin cups, and the nigger
- was set back considerable, because he reckoned it was
- all done with witchcraft. I catched a good big catfish,
- too, and Jim cleaned him with his knife, and fried
- him.
-
- When breakfast was ready we lolled on the grass and
- eat it smoking hot. Jim laid it in with all his might,
- for he was most about starved. Then when we had
- got pretty well stuffed, we laid off and lazied.
- By and by Jim says:
-
- "But looky here, Huck, who wuz it dat 'uz killed
- in dat shanty ef it warn't you?"
-
- Then I told him the whole thing, and he said it was
- smart. He said Tom Sawyer couldn't get up no better
- plan than what I had. Then I says:
-
- "How do you come to be here, Jim, and how'd you
- get here?"
-
- He looked pretty uneasy, and didn't say nothing for
- a minute. Then he says:
-
- "Maybe I better not tell."
-
- "Why, Jim?"
-
- "Well, dey's reasons. But you wouldn' tell on me
- ef I uz to tell you, would you, Huck?"
-
- "Blamed if I would, Jim."
-
- "Well, I b'lieve you, Huck. I -- I RUN OFF."
-
- "Jim!"
-
- "But mind, you said you wouldn' tell -- you know
- you said you wouldn' tell, Huck."
-
- "Well, I did. I said I wouldn't, and I'll stick to it.
- Honest INJUN, I will. People would call me a low-
- down Abolitionist and despise me for keeping mum --
- but that don't make no difference. I ain't a-going to
- tell, and I ain't a-going back there, anyways. So,
- now, le's know all about it."
-
- "Well, you see, it 'uz dis way. Ole missus -- dat's
- Miss Watson -- she pecks on me all de time, en treats
- me pooty rough, but she awluz said she wouldn' sell
- me down to Orleans. But I noticed dey wuz a nigger
- trader roun' de place considable lately, en I begin to
- git oneasy. Well, one night I creeps to de do' pooty
- late, en de do' warn't quite shet, en I hear old missus
- tell de widder she gwyne to sell me down to Orleans,
- but she didn' want to, but she could git eight hund'd
- dollars for me, en it 'uz sich a big stack o' money she
- couldn' resis'. De widder she try to git her to say
- she wouldn' do it, but I never waited to hear de res'.
- I lit out mighty quick, I tell you.
-
- "I tuck out en shin down de hill, en 'spec to steal a
- skift 'long de sho' som'ers 'bove de town, but dey wuz
- people a-stirring yit, so I hid in de ole tumble-down
- cooper-shop on de bank to wait for everybody to go
- 'way. Well, I wuz dah all night. Dey wuz somebody
- roun' all de time. 'Long 'bout six in de mawnin'
- skifts begin to go by, en 'bout eight er nine every
- skift dat went 'long wuz talkin' 'bout how yo' pap
- come over to de town en say you's killed. Dese las'
- skifts wuz full o' ladies en genlmen a-goin' over for to
- see de place. Sometimes dey'd pull up at de sho' en
- take a res' b'fo' dey started acrost, so by de talk I got
- to know all 'bout de killin'. I 'uz powerful sorry
- you's killed, Huck, but I ain't no mo' now.
-
- "I laid dah under de shavin's all day. I 'uz
- hungry, but I warn't afeard; bekase I knowed ole
- missus en de widder wuz goin' to start to de camp-
- meet'n' right arter breakfas' en be gone all day, en
- dey knows I goes off wid de cattle 'bout daylight, so
- dey wouldn' 'spec to see me roun' de place, en so dey
- wouldn' miss me tell arter dark in de evenin'. De
- yuther servants wouldn' miss me, kase dey'd shin out
- en take holiday soon as de ole folks 'uz out'n de way.
-
- "Well, when it come dark I tuck out up de river
- road, en went 'bout two mile er more to whah dey
- warn't no houses. I'd made up my mine 'bout what
- I's agwyne to do. You see, ef I kep' on tryin' to git
- away afoot, de dogs 'ud track me; ef I stole a skift to
- cross over, dey'd miss dat skift, you see, en dey'd
- know 'bout whah I'd lan' on de yuther side, en whah
- to pick up my track. So I says, a raff is what I's
- arter; it doan' MAKE no track.
-
- "I see a light a-comin' roun' de p'int bymeby, so I
- wade' in en shove' a log ahead o' me en swum more'n
- half way acrost de river, en got in 'mongst de drift-
- wood, en kep' my head down low, en kinder swum
- agin de current tell de raff come along. Den I swum
- to de stern uv it en tuck a-holt. It clouded up en 'uz
- pooty dark for a little while. So I clumb up en laid
- down on de planks. De men 'uz all 'way yonder in
- de middle, whah de lantern wuz. De river wuz a-
- risin', en dey wuz a good current; so I reck'n'd 'at
- by fo' in de mawnin' I'd be twenty-five mile down de
- river, en den I'd slip in jis b'fo' daylight en swim
- asho', en take to de woods on de Illinois side.
-
- "But I didn' have no luck. When we 'uz mos'
- down to de head er de islan' a man begin to come aft
- wid de lantern, I see it warn't no use fer to wait, so I
- slid overboard en struck out fer de islan'. Well, I had
- a notion I could lan' mos' anywhers, but I couldn't --
- bank too bluff. I 'uz mos' to de foot er de islan'
- b'fo' I found' a good place. I went into de woods en
- jedged I wouldn' fool wid raffs no mo', long as dey
- move de lantern roun' so. I had my pipe en a plug er
- dog-leg, en some matches in my cap, en dey warn't
- wet, so I 'uz all right."
-
- "And so you ain't had no meat nor bread to eat all
- this time? Why didn't you get mud-turkles?"
-
- "How you gwyne to git 'm? You can't slip up on
- um en grab um; en how's a body gwyne to hit um
- wid a rock? How could a body do it in de night?
- En I warn't gwyne to show mysef on de bank in de
- daytime."
-
- "Well, that's so. You've had to keep in the woods
- all the time, of course. Did you hear 'em shooting
- the cannon?"
-
- "Oh, yes. I knowed dey was arter you. I see um
- go by heah -- watched um thoo de bushes."
-
- Some young birds come along, flying a yard or two
- at a time and lighting. Jim said it was a sign it was
- going to rain. He said it was a sign when young
- chickens flew that way, and so he reckoned it was the
- same way when young birds done it. I was going to
- catch some of them, but Jim wouldn't let me. He
- said it was death. He said his father laid mighty sick
- once, and some of them catched a bird, and his old
- granny said his father would die, and he did.
-
- And Jim said you mustn't count the things you are
- going to cook for dinner, because that would bring
- bad luck. The same if you shook the table-cloth after
- sundown. And he said if a man owned a beehive and
- that man died, the bees must be told about it before
- sun-up next morning, or else the bees would all
- weaken down and quit work and die. Jim said bees
- wouldn't sting idiots; but I didn't believe that, be-
- cause I had tried them lots of times myself, and they
- wouldn't sting me.
-
- I had heard about some of these things before, but
- not all of them. Jim knowed all kinds of signs. He
- said he knowed most everything. I said it looked to
- me like all the signs was about bad luck, and so I
- asked him if there warn't any good-luck signs. He
- says:
-
- "Mighty few -- an' DEY ain't no use to a body.
- What you want to know when good luck's a-comin'
- for? Want to keep it off?" And he said: "Ef you's
- got hairy arms en a hairy breas', it's a sign dat you's
- agwyne to be rich. Well, dey's some use in a sign
- like dat, 'kase it's so fur ahead. You see, maybe
- you's got to be po' a long time fust, en so you might
- git discourage' en kill yo'sef 'f you didn' know by de
- sign dat you gwyne to be rich bymeby."
-
- "Have you got hairy arms and a hairy breast,
- Jim?"
-
- "What's de use to ax dat question? Don't you
- see I has?"
-
- "Well, are you rich?"
-
- "No, but I ben rich wunst, and gwyne to be rich
- agin. Wunst I had foteen dollars, but I tuck to
- specalat'n', en got busted out."
-
- "What did you speculate in, Jim?"
-
- "Well, fust I tackled stock."
-
- "What kind of stock?"
-
- "Why, live stock -- cattle, you know. I put ten
- dollars in a cow. But I ain' gwyne to resk no mo'
- money in stock. De cow up 'n' died on my han's."
-
- "So you lost the ten dollars."
-
- "No, I didn't lose it all. I on'y los' 'bout nine of
- it. I sole de hide en taller for a dollar en ten cents."
-
- "You had five dollars and ten cents left. Did you
- speculate any more?"
-
- "Yes. You know that one-laigged nigger dat
- b'longs to old Misto Bradish? Well, he sot up a
- bank, en say anybody dat put in a dollar would git fo'
- dollars mo' at de en' er de year. Well, all de niggers
- went in, but dey didn't have much. I wuz de on'y
- one dat had much. So I stuck out for mo' dan fo'
- dollars, en I said 'f I didn' git it I'd start a bank my-
- sef. Well, o' course dat nigger want' to keep me out
- er de business, bekase he says dey warn't business
- 'nough for two banks, so he say I could put in my five
- dollars en he pay me thirty-five at de en' er de year.
-
- "So I done it. Den I reck'n'd I'd inves' de
- thirty-five dollars right off en keep things a-movin'.
- Dey wuz a nigger name' Bob, dat had ketched a wood-
- flat, en his marster didn' know it; en I bought it off'n
- him en told him to take de thirty-five dollars when de
- en' er de year come; but somebody stole de wood-flat
- dat night, en nex day de one-laigged nigger say de
- bank's busted. So dey didn' none uv us git no
- money."
-
- "What did you do with the ten cents, Jim?"
-
- "Well, I 'uz gwyne to spen' it, but I had a dream,
- en de dream tole me to give it to a nigger name'
- Balum -- Balum's Ass dey call him for short; he's
- one er dem chuckleheads, you know. But he's lucky,
- dey say, en I see I warn't lucky. De dream say let
- Balum inves' de ten cents en he'd make a raise for me.
- Well, Balum he tuck de money, en when he wuz in
- church he hear de preacher say dat whoever give to de
- po' len' to de Lord, en boun' to git his money back a
- hund'd times. So Balum he tuck en give de ten cents
- to de po', en laid low to see what wuz gwyne to come
- of it."
-
- "Well, what did come of it, Jim?"
-
- "Nuffn never come of it. I couldn' manage to
- k'leck dat money no way; en Balum he couldn'. I
- ain' gwyne to len' no mo' money 'dout I see de
- security. Boun' to git yo' money back a hund'd
- times, de preacher says! Ef I could git de ten CENTS
- back, I'd call it squah, en be glad er de chanst."
-
- "Well, it's all right anyway, Jim, long as you're
- going to be rich again some time or other."
-
- "Yes; en I's rich now, come to look at it. I owns
- mysef, en I's wuth eight hund'd dollars. I wisht I
- had de money, I wouldn' want no mo'."
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
- I WANTED to go and look at a place right about the
- middle of the island that I'd found when I was
- exploring; so we started and soon got to it, because
- the island was only three miles long and a quarter of a
- mile wide.
-
- This place was a tolerable long, steep hill or ridge
- about forty foot high. We had a rough time getting
- to the top, the sides was so steep and the bushes so
- thick. We tramped and clumb around all over it, and
- by and by found a good big cavern in the rock, most
- up to the top on the side towards Illinois. The cavern
- was as big as two or three rooms bunched together,
- and Jim could stand up straight in it. It was cool in
- there. Jim was for putting our traps in there right
- away, but I said we didn't want to be climbing up and
- down there all the time.
-
- Jim said if we had the canoe hid in a good place,
- and had all the traps in the cavern, we could rush there
- if anybody was to come to the island, and they would
- never find us without dogs. And, besides, he said
- them little birds had said it was going to rain, and did
- I want the things to get wet?
-
- So we went back and got the canoe, and paddled up
- abreast the cavern, and lugged all the traps up there.
- Then we hunted up a place close by to hide the canoe
- in, amongst the thick willows. We took some fish off
- of the lines and set them again, and begun to get ready
- for dinner.
-
- The door of the cavern was big enough to roll a
- hogshead in, and on one side of the door the floor
- stuck out a little bit, and was flat and a good place to
- build a fire on. So we built it there and cooked
- dinner.
-
- We spread the blankets inside for a carpet, and eat
- our dinner in there. We put all the other things handy
- at the back of the cavern. Pretty soon it darkened up,
- and begun to thunder and lighten; so the birds was
- right about it. Directly it begun to rain, and it rained
- like all fury, too, and I never see the wind blow so.
- It was one of these regular summer storms. It would
- get so dark that it looked all blue-black outside, and
- lovely; and the rain would thrash along by so thick
- that the trees off a little ways looked dim and spider-
- webby; and here would come a blast of wind that
- would bend the trees down and turn up the pale under-
- side of the leaves; and then a perfect ripper of a gust
- would follow along and set the branches to tossing
- their arms as if they was just wild; and next, when it
- was just about the bluest and blackest -- FST! it was as
- bright as glory, and you'd have a little glimpse of tree-
- tops a-plunging about away off yonder in the storm,
- hundreds of yards further than you could see before;
- dark as sin again in a second, and now you'd hear the
- thunder let go with an awful crash, and then go rum-
- bling, grumbling, tumbling, down the sky towards the
- under side of the world, like rolling empty barrels
- down stairs -- where it's long stairs and they bounce a
- good deal, you know.
-
- "Jim, this is nice," I says. "I wouldn't want to
- be nowhere else but here. Pass me along another
- hunk of fish and some hot corn-bread."
-
- "Well, you wouldn't a ben here 'f it hadn't a ben
- for Jim. You'd a ben down dah in de woods widout
- any dinner, en gittn' mos' drownded, too; dat you
- would, honey. Chickens knows when it's gwyne to
- rain, en so do de birds, chile."
-
- The river went on raising and raising for ten or
- twelve days, till at last it was over the banks. The
- water was three or four foot deep on the island in the
- low places and on the Illinois bottom. On that side it
- was a good many miles wide, but on the Missouri side
- it was the same old distance across -- a half a mile --
- because the Missouri shore was just a wall of high
- bluffs.
-
- Daytimes we paddled all over the island in the canoe,
- It was mighty cool and shady in the deep woods, even
- if the sun was blazing outside. We went winding in
- and out amongst the trees, and sometimes the vines
- hung so thick we had to back away and go some other
- way. Well, on every old broken-down tree you could
- see rabbits and snakes and such things; and when
- the island had been overflowed a day or two they got
- so tame, on account of being hungry, that you could
- paddle right up and put your hand on them if you
- wanted to; but not the snakes and turtles -- they would
- slide off in the water. The ridge our cavern was in
- was full of them. We could a had pets enough if we'd
- wanted them.
-
- One night we catched a little section of a lumber
- raft -- nice pine planks. It was twelve foot wide and
- about fifteen or sixteen foot long, and the top stood
- above water six or seven inches -- a solid, level floor.
- We could see saw-logs go by in the daylight some-
- times, but we let them go; we didn't show ourselves
- in daylight.
-
- Another night when we was up at the head of the
- island, just before daylight, here comes a frame-house
- down, on the west side. She was a two-story, and
- tilted over considerable. We paddled out and got
- aboard -- clumb in at an upstairs window. But it was
- too dark to see yet, so we made the canoe fast and set
- in her to wait for daylight.
-
- The light begun to come before we got to the foot
- of the island. Then we looked in at the window. We
- could make out a bed, and a table, and two old chairs,
- and lots of things around about on the floor, and there
- was clothes hanging against the wall. There was
- something laying on the floor in the far corner that
- looked like a man. So Jim says:
-
- "Hello, you!"
-
- But it didn't budge. So I hollered again, and then
- Jim says:
-
- "De man ain't asleep -- he's dead. You hold still
- -- I'll go en see."
-
- He went, and bent down and looked, and says:
-
- "It's a dead man. Yes, indeedy; naked, too.
- He's ben shot in de back. I reck'n he's ben dead
- two er three days. Come in, Huck, but doan' look at
- his face -- it's too gashly."
-
- I didn't look at him at all. Jim throwed some old
- rags over him, but he needn't done it; I didn't want
- to see him. There was heaps of old greasy cards
- scattered around over the floor, and old whisky bottles,
- and a couple of masks made out of black cloth; and
- all over the walls was the ignorantest kind of words
- and pictures made with charcoal. There was two old
- dirty calico dresses, and a sun-bonnet, and some
- women's underclothes hanging against the wall, and
- some men's clothing, too. We put the lot into the
- canoe -- it might come good. There was a boy's old
- speckled straw hat on the floor; I took that, too.
- And there was a bottle that had had milk in it, and it
- had a rag stopper for a baby to suck. We would a
- took the bottle, but it was broke. There was a seedy
- old chest, and an old hair trunk with the hinges broke.
- They stood open, but there warn't nothing left in them
- that was any account. The way things was scattered
- about we reckoned the people left in a hurry, and
- warn't fixed so as to carry off most of their stuff.
-
- We got an old tin lantern, and a butcher-knife with-
- out any handle, and a bran-new Barlow knife worth
- two bits in any store, and a lot of tallow candles, and a
- tin candlestick, and a gourd, and a tin cup, and a ratty
- old bedquilt off the bed, and a reticule with needles
- and pins and beeswax and buttons and thread and all
- such truck in it, and a hatchet and some nails, and a
- fishline as thick as my little finger with some mon-
- strous hooks on it, and a roll of buckskin, and a
- leather dog-collar, and a horseshoe, and some vials of
- medicine that didn't have no label on them; and just
- as we was leaving I found a tolerable good curry-comb,
- and Jim he found a ratty old fiddle-bow, and a wooden
- leg. The straps was broke off of it, but, barring that,
- it was a good enough leg, though it was too long for
- me and not long enough for Jim, and we couldn't find
- the other one, though we hunted all around.
-
- And so, take it all around, we made a good haul.
- When we was ready to shove off we was a quarter of a
- mile below the island, and it was pretty broad day; so
- I made Jim lay down in the canoe and cover up with
- the quilt, because if he set up people could tell he was
- a nigger a good ways off. I paddled over to the
- Illinois shore, and drifted down most a half a mile
- doing it. I crept up the dead water under the bank,
- and hadn't no accidents and didn't see nobody. We
- got home all safe.
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
- AFTER breakfast I wanted to talk about the dead
- man and guess out how he come to be killed, but
- Jim didn't want to. He said it would fetch bad luck;
- and besides, he said, he might come and ha'nt us; he
- said a man that warn't buried was more likely to go a-
- ha'nting around than one that was planted and com-
- fortable. That sounded pretty reasonable, so I didn't
- say no more; but I couldn't keep from studying over
- it and wishing I knowed who shot the man, and what
- they done it for.
-
- We rummaged the clothes we'd got, and found eight
- dollars in silver sewed up in the lining of an old blanket
- overcoat. Jim said he reckoned the people in that
- house stole the coat, because if they'd a knowed the
- money was there they wouldn't a left it. I said I
- reckoned they killed him, too; but Jim didn't want to
- talk about that. I says:
-
- "Now you think it's bad luck; but what did you
- say when I fetched in the snake-skin that I found on
- the top of the ridge day before yesterday? You said
- it was the worst bad luck in the world to touch a
- snake-skin with my hands. Well, here's your bad
- luck! We've raked in all this truck and eight dollars
- besides. I wish we could have some bad luck like this
- every day, Jim."
-
- "Never you mind, honey, never you mind. Don't
- you git too peart. It's a-comin'. Mind I tell you,
- it's a-comin'."
-
- It did come, too. It was a Tuesday that we had
- that talk. Well, after dinner Friday we was laying
- around in the grass at the upper end of the ridge, and
- got out of tobacco. I went to the cavern to get some,
- and found a rattlesnake in there. I killed him, and
- curled him up on the foot of Jim's blanket, ever so
- natural, thinking there'd be some fun when Jim found
- him there. Well, by night I forgot all about the
- snake, and when Jim flung himself down on the blanket
- while I struck a light the snake's mate was there, and
- bit him.
-
- He jumped up yelling, and the first thing the light
- showed was the varmint curled up and ready for
- another spring. I laid him out in a second with a
- stick, and Jim grabbed pap's whisky-jug and begun to
- pour it down.
-
- He was barefooted, and the snake bit him right on
- the heel. That all comes of my being such a fool as
- to not remember that wherever you leave a dead snake
- its mate always comes there and curls around it. Jim
- told me to chop off the snake's head and throw it
- away, and then skin the body and roast a piece of it.
- I done it, and he eat it and said it would help cure
- him. He made me take off the rattles and tie them
- around his wrist, too. He said that that would help.
- Then I slid out quiet and throwed the snakes clear
- away amongst the bushes; for I warn't going to let
- Jim find out it was all my fault, not if I could help it.
-
- Jim sucked and sucked at the jug, and now and then
- he got out of his head and pitched around and yelled;
- but every time he come to himself he went to sucking
- at the jug again. His foot swelled up pretty big, and
- so did his leg; but by and by the drunk begun to
- come, and so I judged he was all right; but I'd
- druther been bit with a snake than pap's whisky.
-
- Jim was laid up for four days and nights. Then
- the swelling was all gone and he was around again. I
- made up my mind I wouldn't ever take a-holt of a
- snake-skin again with my hands, now that I see what
- had come of it. Jim said he reckoned I would believe
- him next time. And he said that handling a snake-
- skin was such awful bad luck that maybe we hadn't
- got to the end of it yet. He said he druther see the
- new moon over his left shoulder as much as a thousand
- times than take up a snake-skin in his hand. Well, I
- was getting to feel that way myself, though I've always
- reckoned that looking at the new moon over your left
- shoulder is one of the carelessest and foolishest things
- a body can do. Old Hank Bunker done it once, and
- bragged about it; and in less than two years he got
- drunk and fell off of the shot-tower, and spread him-
- self out so that he was just a kind of a layer, as you
- may say; and they slid him edgeways between two
- barn doors for a coffin, and buried him so, so they
- say, but I didn't see it. Pap told me. But anyway
- it all come of looking at the moon that way, like a
- fool.
-
- Well, the days went along, and the river went down
- between its banks again; and about the first thing we
- done was to bait one of the big hooks with a skinned
- rabbit and set it and catch a catfish that was as big as
- a man, being six foot two inches long, and weighed
- over two hundred pounds. We couldn't handle him,
- of course; he would a flung us into Illinois. We just
- set there and watched him rip and tear around till he
- drownded. We found a brass button in his stomach
- and a round ball, and lots of rubbage. We split the
- ball open with the hatchet, and there was a spool in it.
- Jim said he'd had it there a long time, to coat it over
- so and make a ball of it. It was as big a fish as was
- ever catched in the Mississippi, I reckon. Jim said he
- hadn't ever seen a bigger one. He would a been
- worth a good deal over at the village. They peddle
- out such a fish as that by the pound in the market-
- house there; everybody buys some of him; his meat's
- as white as snow and makes a good fry.
-
- Next morning I said it was getting slow and dull,
- and I wanted to get a stirring up some way. I said I
- reckoned I would slip over the river and find out what
- was going on. Jim liked that notion; but he said I
- must go in the dark and look sharp. Then he studied
- it over and said, couldn't I put on some of them old
- things and dress up like a girl? That was a good
- notion, too. So we shortened up one of the calico
- gowns, and I turned up my trouser-legs to my knees
- and got into it. Jim hitched it behind with the hooks,
- and it was a fair fit. I put on the sun-bonnet and tied
- it under my chin, and then for a body to look in and
- see my face was like looking down a joint of stove-
- pipe. Jim said nobody would know me, even in the
- daytime, hardly. I practiced around all day to get
- the hang of the things, and by and by I could do
- pretty well in them, only Jim said I didn't walk like a
- girl; and he said I must quit pulling up my gown to
- get at my britches-pocket. I took notice, and done
- better.
-
- I started up the Illinois shore in the canoe just after
- dark.
-
- I started across to the town from a little below the
- ferry-landing, and the drift of the current fetched me
- in at the bottom of the town. I tied up and started
- along the bank. There was a light burning in a little
- shanty that hadn't been lived in for a long time, and I
- wondered who had took up quarters there. I slipped
- up and peeped in at the window. There was a woman
- about forty year old in there knitting by a candle that
- was on a pine table. I didn't know her face; she was
- a stranger, for you couldn't start a face in that town
- that I didn't know. Now this was lucky, because I
- was weakening; I was getting afraid I had come;
- people might know my voice and find me out. But if
- this woman had been in such a little town two days
- she could tell me all I wanted to know; so I knocked
- at the door, and made up my mind I wouldn't forget I
- was a girl.
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
- "COME in," says the woman, and I did. She
- says: "Take a cheer."
-
- I done it. She looked me all over with her little
- shiny eyes, and says:
-
- "What might your name be?"
-
- "Sarah Williams."
-
- "Where 'bouts do you live? In this neighbor-
- hood?'
-
- "No'm. In Hookerville, seven mile below. I've
- walked all the way and I'm all tired out."
-
- "Hungry, too, I reckon. I'll find you something."
-
- "No'm, I ain't hungry. I was so hungry I had to
- stop two miles below here at a farm; so I ain't hungry
- no more. It's what makes me so late. My mother's
- down sick, and out of money and everything, and I
- come to tell my uncle Abner Moore. He lives at the
- upper end of the town, she says. I hain't ever been
- here before. Do you know him?"
-
- "No; but I don't know everybody yet. I haven't
- lived here quite two weeks. It's a considerable ways
- to the upper end of the town. You better stay here
- all night. Take off your bonnet."
-
- "No," I says; "I'll rest a while, I reckon, and go
- on. I ain't afeared of the dark."
-
- She said she wouldn't let me go by myself, but her
- husband would be in by and by, maybe in a hour and
- a half, and she'd send him along with me. Then she
- got to talking about her husband, and about her rela-
- tions up the river, and her relations down the river,
- and about how much better off they used to was, and
- how they didn't know but they'd made a mistake
- coming to our town, instead of letting well alone --
- and so on and so on, till I was afeard I had made a
- mistake coming to her to find out what was going on
- in the town; but by and by she dropped on to pap
- and the murder, and then I was pretty willing to let
- her clatter right along. She told about me and Tom
- Sawyer finding the six thousand dollars (only she got
- it ten) and all about pap and what a hard lot he was,
- and what a hard lot I was, and at last she got down to
- where I was murdered. I says:
-
- "Who done it? We've heard considerable about
- these goings on down in Hookerville, but we don't
- know who 'twas that killed Huck Finn."
-
- "Well, I reckon there's a right smart chance of
- people HERE that'd like to know who killed him. Some
- think old Finn done it himself."
-
- "No -- is that so?"
-
- "Most everybody thought it at first. He'll never
- know how nigh he come to getting lynched. But
- before night they changed around and judged it was
- done by a runaway nigger named Jim."
-
- "Why HE --"
-
- I stopped. I reckoned I better keep still. She run
- on, and never noticed I had put in at all:
-
- "The nigger run off the very night Huck Finn was
- killed. So there's a reward out for him -- three hun-
- dred dollars. And there's a reward out for old Finn,
- too -- two hundred dollars. You see, he come to town
- the morning after the murder, and told about it, and
- was out with 'em on the ferryboat hunt, and right
- away after he up and left. Before night they wanted
- to lynch him, but he was gone, you see. Well, next
- day they found out the nigger was gone; they found
- out he hadn't ben seen sence ten o'clock the night the
- murder was done. So then they put it on him, you
- see; and while they was full of it, next day, back
- comes old Finn, and went boo-hooing to Judge
- Thatcher to get money to hunt for the nigger all over
- Illinois with. The judge gave him some, and that
- evening he got drunk, and was around till after mid-
- night with a couple of mighty hard-looking strangers,
- and then went off with them. Well, he hain't come
- back sence, and they ain't looking for him back till
- this thing blows over a little, for people thinks now
- that he killed his boy and fixed things so folks would
- think robbers done it, and then he'd get Huck's money
- without having to bother a long time with a lawsuit.
- People do say he warn't any too good to do it. Oh,
- he's sly, I reckon. If he don't come back for a year
- he'll be all right. You can't prove anything on him,
- you know; everything will be quieted down then, and
- he'll walk in Huck's money as easy as nothing."
-
- "Yes, I reckon so, 'm. I don't see nothing in the
- way of it. Has everybody guit thinking the nigger
- done it?"
-
- "Oh, no, not everybody. A good many thinks he
- done it. But they'll get the nigger pretty soon now,
- and maybe they can scare it out of him."
-
- "Why, are they after him yet?"
-
- "Well, you're innocent, ain't you! Does three
- hundred dollars lay around every day for people to
- pick up? Some folks think the nigger ain't far from
- here. I'm one of them -- but I hain't talked it around.
- A few days ago I was talking with an old couple that
- lives next door in the log shanty, and they happened
- to say hardly anybody ever goes to that island over
- yonder that they call Jackson's Island. Don't any-
- body live there? says I. No, nobody, says they. I
- didn't say any more, but I done some thinking. I
- was pretty near certain I'd seen smoke over there,
- about the head of the island, a day or two before that,
- so I says to myself, like as not that nigger's hiding
- over there; anyway, says I, it's worth the trouble to
- give the place a hunt. I hain't seen any smoke sence,
- so I reckon maybe he's gone, if it was him; but
- husband's going over to see -- him and another man.
- He was gone up the river; but he got back to-day,
- and I told him as soon as he got here two hours ago."
-
- I had got so uneasy I couldn't set still. I had to do
- something with my hands; so I took up a needle off of
- the table and went to threading it. My hands shook,
- and I was making a bad job of it. When the woman
- stopped talking I looked up, and she was looking at
- me pretty curious and smiling a little. I put down the
- needle and thread, and let on to be interested -- and I
- was, too -- and says:
-
- "Three hundred dollars is a power of money. I
- wish my mother could get it. Is your husband going
- over there to-night?"
-
- "Oh, yes. He went up-town with the man I was
- telling you of, to get a boat and see if they could
- borrow another gun. They'll go over after midnight."
-
- "Couldn't they see better if they was to wait till
- daytime?"
-
- "Yes. And couldn't the nigger see better, too?
- After midnight he'll likely be asleep, and they can slip
- around through the woods and hunt up his camp fire
- all the better for the dark, if he's got one."
-
- "I didn't think of that."
-
- The woman kept looking at me pretty curious, and
- I didn't feel a bit comfortable. Pretty soon she says"
-
- "What did you say your name was, honey?"
-
- "M -- Mary Williams."
-
- Somehow it didn't seem to me that I said it was
- Mary before, so I didn't look up -- seemed to me I
- said it was Sarah; so I felt sort of cornered, and was
- afeared maybe I was looking it, too. I wished the
- woman would say something more; the longer she set
- still the uneasier I was. But now she says:
-
- "Honey, I thought you said it was Sarah when
- you first come in?"
-
- "Oh, yes'm, I did. Sarah Mary Williams. Sarah's
- my first name. Some calls me Sarah, some calls me
- Mary."
-
- "Oh, that's the way of it?"
-
- "Yes'm."
-
- I was feeling better then, but I wished I was out of
- there, anyway. I couldn't look up yet.
-
- Well, the woman fell to talking about how hard
- times was, and how poor they had to live, and how the
- rats was as free as if they owned the place, and so
- forth and so on, and then I got easy again. She was
- right about the rats. You'd see one stick his nose out
- of a hole in the corner every little while. She said she
- had to have things handy to throw at them when she
- was alone, or they wouldn't give her no peace. She
- showed me a bar of lead twisted up into a knot, and
- said she was a good shot with it generly, but she'd
- wrenched her arm a day or two ago, and didn't know
- whether she could throw true now. But she watched
- for a chance, and directly banged away at a rat; but
- she missed him wide, and said "Ouch!" it hurt her
- arm so. Then she told me to try for the next one. I
- wanted to be getting away before the old man got
- back, but of course I didn't let on. I got the thing,
- and the first rat that showed his nose I let drive, and
- if he'd a stayed where he was he'd a been a tolerable
- sick rat. She said that was first-rate, and she reckoned
- I would hive the next one. She went and got the
- lump of lead and fetched it back, and brought along a
- hank of yarn which she wanted me to help her with.
- I held up my two hands and she put the hank over
- them, and went on talking about her and her husband's
- matters. But she broke off to say:
-
- "Keep your eye on the rats. You better have the
- lead in your lap, handy."
-
- So she dropped the lump into my lap just at that
- moment, and I clapped my legs together on it and she
- went on talking. But only about a minute. Then
- she took off the hank and looked me straight in the
- face, and very pleasant, and says:
-
- "Come, now, what's your real name?"
-
- "Wh -- what, mum?"
-
- "What's your real name? Is it Bill, or Tom, or
- Bob? -- or what is it?"
-
- I reckon I shook like a leaf, and I didn't know
- hardly what to do. But I says:
-
- "Please to don't poke fun at a poor girl like me,
- mum. If I'm in the way here, I'll --"
-
- "No, you won't. Set down and stay where you
- are. I ain't going to hurt you, and I ain't going to
- tell on you, nuther. You just tell me your secret, and
- trust me. I'll keep it; and, what's more, I'll help
- you. So'll my old man if you want him to. You
- see, you're a runaway 'prentice, that's all. It ain't
- anything. There ain't no harm in it. You've been
- treated bad, and you made up your mind to cut.
- Bless you, child, I wouldn't tell on you. Tell me all
- about it now, that's a good boy."
-
- So I said it wouldn't be no use to try to play it any
- longer, and I would just make a clean breast and tell
- her everything, but she musn't go back on her promise.
- Then I told her my father and mother was dead, and
- the law had bound me out to a mean old farmer in the
- country thirty mile back from the river, and he treated
- me so bad I couldn't stand it no longer; he went away
- to be gone a couple of days, and so I took my chance
- and stole some of his daughter's old clothes and
- cleared out, and I had been three nights coming the
- thirty miles. I traveled nights, and hid daytimes and
- slept, and the bag of bread and meat I carried from
- home lasted me all the way, and I had a-plenty. I
- said I believed my uncle Abner Moore would take care
- of me, and so that was why I struck out for this town
- of Goshen.
-
- "Goshen, child? This ain't Goshen. This is St.
- Petersburg. Goshen's ten mile further up the river.
- Who told you this was Goshen?"
-
- "Why, a man I met at daybreak this morning, just
- as I was going to turn into the woods for my regular
- sleep. He told me when the roads forked I must take
- the right hand, and five mile would fetch me to
- Goshen."
-
- "He was drunk, I reckon. He told you just ex-
- actly wrong."
-
- "Well,,he did act like he was drunk, but it ain't no
- matter now. I got to be moving along. I'll fetch
- Goshen before daylight."
-
- "Hold on a minute. I'll put you up a snack to eat.
- You might want it."
-
- So she put me up a snack, and says:
-
- "Say, when a cow's laying down, which end of her
- gets up first? Answer up prompt now -- don't stop
- to study over it. Which end gets up first?"
-
- "The hind end, mum."
-
- "Well, then, a horse?"
-
- "The for'rard end, mum."
-
- "Which side of a tree does the moss grow on?"
-
- "North side."
-
- "If fifteen cows is browsing on a hillside, how
- many of them eats with their heads pointed the same
- direction?"
-
- "The whole fifteen, mum."
-
- "Well, I reckon you HAVE lived in the country. I
- thought maybe you was trying to hocus me again.
- What's your real name, now?"
-
- "George Peters, mum."
-
- "Well, try to remember it, George. Don't forget
- and tell me it's Elexander before you go, and then get
- out by saying it's George Elexander when I catch you.
- And don't go about women in that old calico. You
- do a girl tolerable poor, but you might fool men,
- maybe. Bless you, child, when you set out to thread
- a needle don't hold the thread still and fetch the needle
- up to it; hold the needle still and poke the thread at
- it; that's the way a woman most always does, but a
- man always does t'other way. And when you throw
- at a rat or anything, hitch yourself up a tiptoe and
- fetch your hand up over your head as awkward as you
- can, and miss your rat about six or seven foot. Throw
- stiff-armed from the shoulder, like there was a pivot
- there for it to turn on, like a girl; not from the wrist
- and elbow, with your arm out to one side, like a boy.
- And, mind you, when a girl tries to catch anything in
- her lap she throws her knees apart; she don't clap
- them together, the way you did when you catched the
- lump of lead. Why, I spotted you for a boy when
- you was threading the needle; and I contrived the
- other things just to make certain. Now trot along to
- your uncle, Sarah Mary Williams George Elexander
- Peters, and if you get into trouble you send word to
- Mrs. Judith Loftus, which is me, and I'll do what I
- can to get you out of it. Keep the river road all the
- way, and next time you tramp take shoes and socks
- with you. The river road's a rocky one, and your
- feet'll be in a condition when you get to Goshen, I
- reckon."
-
- I went up the bank about fifty yards, and then I
- doubled on my tracks and slipped back to where my
- canoe was, a good piece below the house. I jumped
- in, and was off in a hurry. I went up-stream far
- enough to make the head of the island, and then
- started across. I took off the sun-bonnet, for I didn't
- want no blinders on then. When I was about the
- middle I heard the clock begin to strike, so I stops
- and listens; the sound come faint over the water but
- clear -- eleven. When I struck the head of the island
- I never waited to blow, though I was most winded, but
- I shoved right into the timber where my old camp used
- to be, and started a good fire there on a high and dry
- spot.
-
- Then I jumped in the canoe and dug out for our
- place, a mile and a half below, as hard as I could go.
- I landed, and slopped through the timber and up the
- ridge and into the cavern. There Jim laid, sound
- asleep on the ground. I roused him out and says:
-
- "Git up and hump yourself, Jim! There ain't a
- minute to lose. They're after us!"
-
- Jim never asked no questions, he never said a word;
- but the way he worked for the next half an hour
- showed about how he was scared. By that time every-
- thing we had in the world was on our raft, and she was
- ready to be shoved out from the willow cove where she
- was hid. We put out the camp fire at the cavern the
- first thing, and didn't show a candle outside after that.
-
- I took the canoe out from the shore a little piece,
- and took a look; but if there was a boat around I
- couldn't see it, for stars and shadows ain't good to see
- by. Then we got out the raft and slipped along down
- in the shade, past the foot of the island dead still --
- never saying a word.
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
- IT must a been close on to one o'clock when we
- got below the island at last, and the raft did seem
- to go mighty slow. If a boat was to come along we
- was going to take to the canoe and break for the
- Illinois shore; and it was well a boat didn't come, for
- we hadn't ever thought to put the gun in the canoe,
- or a fishing-line, or anything to eat. We was in
- ruther too much of a sweat to think of so many things.
- It warn't good judgment to put EVERYTHING on the raft.
-
- If the men went to the island I just expect they
- found the camp fire I built, and watched it all night for
- Jim to come. Anyways, they stayed away from us,
- and if my building the fire never fooled them it warn't
- no fault of mine. I played it as low down on them as
- I could.
-
- When the first streak of day began to show we tied
- up to a towhead in a big bend on the Illinois side, and
- hacked off cottonwood branches with the hatchet,
- and covered up the raft with them so she looked like
- there had been a cave-in in the bank there. A tow-
- head is a sandbar that has cottonwoods on it as thick
- as harrow-teeth.
-
- We had mountains on the Missouri shore and heavy
- timber on the Illinois side, and the channel was down
- the Missouri shore at that place, so we warn't afraid of
- anybody running across us. We laid there all day,
- and watched the rafts and steamboats spin down the
- Missouri shore, and up-bound steamboats fight the big
- river in the middle. I told Jim all about the time I
- had jabbering with that woman; and Jim said she was
- a smart one, and if she was to start after us herself she
- wouldn't set down and watch a camp fire -- no, sir,
- she'd fetch a dog. Well, then, I said, why couldn't
- she tell her husband to fetch a dog? Jim said he bet
- she did think of it by the time the men was ready to
- start, and he believed they must a gone up-town to get
- a dog and so they lost all that time, or else we
- wouldn't be here on a towhead sixteen or seventeen
- mile below the village -- no, indeedy, we would be in
- that same old town again. So I said I didn't care
- what was the reason they didn't get us as long as they
- didn't.
-
- When it was beginning to come on dark we poked
- our heads out of the cottonwood thicket, and looked
- up and down and across; nothing in sight; so Jim
- took up some of the top planks of the raft and built a
- snug wigwam to get under in blazing weather and
- rainy, and to keep the things dry. Jim made a floor
- for the wigwam, and raised it a foot or more above the
- level of the raft, so now the blankets and all the traps
- was out of reach of steamboat waves. Right in the
- middle of the wigwam we made a layer of dirt about
- five or six inches deep with a frame around it for to
- hold it to its place; this was to build a fire on in
- sloppy weather or chilly; the wigwam would keep it
- from being seen. We made an extra steering-oar,
- too, because one of the others might get broke on a
- snag or something. We fixed up a short forked stick
- to hang the old lantern on, because we must always
- light the lantern whenever we see a steamboat coming
- down-stream, to keep from getting run over; but we
- wouldn't have to light it for up-stream boats unless we
- see we was in what they call a "crossing"; for the
- river was pretty high yet, very low banks being still a
- little under water; so up-bound boats didn't always
- run the channel, but hunted easy water.
-
- This second night we run between seven and eight
- hours, with a current that was making over four mile
- an hour. We catched fish and talked, and we took a
- swim now and then to keep off sleepiness. It was
- kind of solemn, drifting down the big, still river, lay-
- ing on our backs looking up at the stars, and we didn't
- ever feel like talking loud, and it warn't often that we
- laughed -- only a little kind of a low chuckle. We
- had mighty good weather as a general thing, and noth-
- ing ever happened to us at all -- that night, nor the
- next, nor the next.
-
- Every night we passed towns, some of them away
- up on black hillsides, nothing but just a shiny bed of
- lights; not a house could you see. The fifth night we
- passed St. Louis, and it was like the whole world lit
- up. In St. Petersburg they used to say there was
- twenty or thirty thousand people in St. Louis, but I
- never believed it till I see that wonderful spread of
- lights at two o'clock that still night. There warn't a
- sound there; everybody was asleep.
-
- Every night now I used to slip ashore towards ten
- o'clock at some little village, and buy ten or fifteen
- cents' worth of meal or bacon or other stuff to eat;
- and sometimes I lifted a chicken that warn't roosting
- comfortable, and took him along. Pap always said,
- take a chicken when you get a chance, because if you
- don't want him yourself you can easy find somebody
- that does, and a good deed ain't ever forgot. I never
- see pap when he didn't want the chicken himself, but
- that is what he used to say, anyway.
-
- Mornings before daylight I slipped into cornfields
- and borrowed a watermelon, or a mushmelon, or a
- punkin, or some new corn, or things of that kind.
- Pap always said it warn't no harm to borrow things if
- you was meaning to pay them back some time; but
- the widow said it warn't anything but a soft name for
- stealing, and no decent body would do it. Jim said he
- reckoned the widow was partly right and pap was partly
- right; so the best way would be for us to pick out two
- or three things from the list and say we wouldn't borrow
- them any more -- then he reckoned it wouldn't be no
- harm to borrow the others. So we talked it over all
- one night, drifting along down the river, trying to
- make up our minds whether to drop the watermelons,
- or the cantelopes, or the mushmelons, or what. But
- towards daylight we got it all settled satisfactory, and
- concluded to drop crabapples and p'simmons. We
- warn't feeling just right before that, but it was all
- comfortable now. I was glad the way it come out,
- too, because crabapples ain't ever good, and the
- p'simmons wouldn't be ripe for two or three months
- yet.
-
- We shot a water-fowl now and then that got up too
- early in the morning or didn't go to bed early enough
- in the evening. Take it all round, we lived pretty high.
-
- The fifth night below St. Louis we had a big storm
- after midnight, with a power of thunder and lightning,
- and the rain poured down in a solid sheet. We stayed
- in the wigwam and let the raft take care of itself.
- When the lightning glared out we could see a big
- straight river ahead, and high, rocky bluffs on both
- sides. By and by says I, "Hel-LO, Jim, looky yon-
- der!" It was a steamboat that had killed herself on a
- rock. We was drifting straight down for her. The
- lightning showed her very distinct. She was leaning
- over, with part of her upper deck above water, and
- you could see every little chimbly-guy clean and clear,
- and a chair by the big bell, with an old slouch hat
- hanging on the back of it, when the flashes come.
-
- Well, it being away in the night and stormy, and all
- so mysterious-like, I felt just the way any other boy
- would a felt when I see that wreck laying there so
- mournful and lonesome in the middle of the river. I
- wanted to get aboard of her and slink around a little,
- and see what there was there. So I says:
-
- "Le's land on her, Jim."
-
- But Jim was dead against it at first. He says:
-
- "I doan' want to go fool'n 'long er no wrack.
- We's doin' blame' well, en we better let blame' well
- alone, as de good book says. Like as not dey's a
- watchman on dat wrack."
-
- "Watchman your grandmother," I says; "there
- ain't nothing to watch but the texas and the pilot-
- house; and do you reckon anybody's going to resk his
- life for a texas and a pilot-house such a night as this,
- when it's likely to break up and wash off down the
- river any minute?" Jim couldn't say nothing to that,
- so he didn't try. "And besides," I says, "we might
- borrow something worth having out of the captain's
- stateroom. Seegars, I bet you -- and cost five cents
- apiece, solid cash. Steamboat captains is always rich,
- and get sixty dollars a month, and THEY don't care a
- cent what a thing costs, you know, long as they want
- it. Stick a candle in your pocket; I can't rest, Jim,
- till we give her a rummaging. Do you reckon Tom
- Sawyer would ever go by this thing? Not for pie, he
- wouldn't. He'd call it an adventure -- that's what
- he'd call it; and he'd land on that wreck if it was his
- last act. And wouldn't he throw style into it? --
- wouldn't he spread himself, nor nothing? Why,
- you'd think it was Christopher C'lumbus discovering
- Kingdom-Come. I wish Tom Sawyer WAS here."
-
- Jim he grumbled a little, but give in. He said we
- mustn't talk any more than we could help, and then
- talk mighty low. The lightning showed us the wreck
- again just in time, and we fetched the stabboard
- derrick, and made fast there.
-
- The deck was high out here. We went sneaking down
- the slope of it to labboard, in the dark, towards the
- texas, feeling our way slow with our feet, and spreading
- our hands out to fend off the guys, for it was so dark
- we couldn't see no sign of them. Pretty soon we
- struck the forward end of the skylight, and clumb on
- to it; and the next step fetched us in front of the
- captain's door, which was open, and by Jimminy,
- away down through the texas-hall we see a light! and
- all in the same second we seem to hear low voices in
- yonder!
-
- Jim whispered and said he was feeling powerful
- sick, and told me to come along. I says, all right,
- and was going to start for the raft; but just then I
- heard a voice wail out and say:
-
- "Oh, please don't, boys; I swear I won't ever
- tell!"
-
- Another voice said, pretty loud:
-
- "It's a lie, Jim Turner. You've acted this way
- before. You always want more'n your share of the
- truck, and you've always got it, too, because you've
- swore 't if you didn't you'd tell. But this time you've
- said it jest one time too many. You're the meanest,
- treacherousest hound in this country."
-
- By this time Jim was gone for the raft. I was just
- a-biling with curiosity; and I says to myself, Tom
- Sawyer wouldn't back out now, and so I won't either;
- I'm a-going to see what's going on here. So I
- dropped on my hands and knees in the little passage,
- and crept aft in the dark till there warn't but one
- stateroom betwixt me and the cross-hall of the texas.
- Then in there I see a man stretched on the floor and
- tied hand and foot, and two men standing over him,
- and one of them had a dim lantern in his hand, and
- the other one had a pistol. This one kept pointing
- the pistol at the man's head on the floor, and saying:
-
- "I'd LIKE to! And I orter, too -- a mean skunk!"
-
- The man on the floor would shrivel up and say,
- "Oh, please don't, Bill; I hain't ever goin' to tell."
-
- And every time he said that the man with the lantern
- would laugh and say:
-
- "'Deed you AIN'T! You never said no truer thing
- 'n that, you bet you." And once he said: "Hear
- him beg! and yit if we hadn't got the best of him and
- tied him he'd a killed us both. And what FOR? Jist
- for noth'n. Jist because we stood on our RIGHTS --
- that's what for. But I lay you ain't a-goin' to threaten
- nobody any more, Jim Turner. Put UP that pistol,
- Bill."
-
- Bill says:
-
- "I don't want to, Jake Packard. I'm for killin'
- him -- and didn't he kill old Hatfield jist the same
- way -- and don't he deserve it?"
-
- "But I don't WANT him killed, and I've got my
- reasons for it."
-
- "Bless yo' heart for them words, Jake Packard!
- I'll never forgit you long's I live!" says the man on
- the floor, sort of blubbering.
-
- Packard didn't take no notice of that, but hung up
- his lantern on a nail and started towards where I was
- there in the dark, and motioned Bill to come. I
- crawfished as fast as I could about two yards, but the
- boat slanted so that I couldn't make very good time;
- so to keep from getting run over and catched I crawled
- into a stateroom on the upper side. The man came a-
- pawing along in the dark, and when Packard got to
- my stateroom, he says:
-
- "Here -- come in here."
-
- And in he come, and Bill after him. But before
- they got in I was up in the upper berth, cornered, and
- sorry I come. Then they stood there, with their hands
- on the ledge of the berth, and talked. I couldn't see
- them, but I could tell where they was by the whisky
- they'd been having. I was glad I didn't drink whisky;
- but it wouldn't made much difference anyway, because
- most of the time they couldn't a treed me because I
- didn't breathe. I was too scared. And, besides, a
- body COULDN'T breathe and hear such talk. They
- talked low and earnest. Bill wanted to kill Turner.
- He says:
-
- "He's said he'll tell, and he will. If we was to
- give both our shares to him NOW it wouldn't make no
- difference after the row and the way we've served him.
- Shore's you're born, he'll turn State's evidence; now
- you hear ME. I'm for putting him out of his troubles."
-
- "So'm I," says Packard, very quiet.
-
- "Blame it, I'd sorter begun to think you wasnUt.
- Well, then, that's all right. Le's go and do it."
-
- "Hold on a minute; I hain't had my say yit. You
- listen to me. Shooting's good, but there's quieter
- ways if the thing's GOT to be done. But what I say is
- this: it ain't good sense to go court'n around after a
- halter if you can git at what you're up to in some
- way that's jist as good and at the same time don't
- bring you into no resks. Ain't that so?"
-
- "You bet it is. But how you goin' to manage it
- this time?"
-
- "Well, my idea is this: we'll rustle around and gather
- up whatever pickins we've overlooked in the state-
- rooms, and shove for shore and hide the truck. Then
- we'll wait. Now I say it ain't a-goin' to be more'n
- two hours befo' this wrack breaks up and washes off
- down the river. See? He'll be drownded, and won't
- have nobody to blame for it but his own self. I
- reckon that's a considerble sight better 'n killin' of
- him. I'm unfavorable to killin' a man as long as you
- can git aroun' it; it ain't good sense, it ain't good
- morals. Ain't I right?"
-
- "Yes, I reck'n you are. But s'pose she DON'T
- break up and wash off?"
-
- "Well, we can wait the two hours anyway and see,
- can't we?"
-
- "All right, then; come along."
-
- So they started, and I lit out, all in a cold sweat,
- and scrambled forward. It was dark as pitch there;
- but I said, in a kind of a coarse whisper, "Jim !" and
- he answered up, right at my elbow, with a sort of a
- moan, and I says:
-
- "Quick, Jim, it ain't no time for fooling around
- and moaning; there's a gang of murderers in yonder,
- and if we don't hunt up their boat and set her drifting
- down the river so these fellows can't get away from the
- wreck there's one of 'em going to be in a bad fix.
- But if we find their boat we can put ALL of 'em in a
- bad fix -- for the sheriff 'll get 'em. Quick -- hurry!
- I'll hunt the labboard side, you hunt the stabboard.
- You start at the raft, and --"
-
- "Oh, my lordy, lordy! RAF'? Dey ain' no raf'
- no mo'; she done broke loose en gone I -- en here
- we is!"
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
- WELL, I catched my breath and most fainted.
- Shut up on a wreck with such a gang as that!
- But it warn't no time to be sentimentering. We'd GOT
- to find that boat now -- had to have it for ourselves.
- So we went a-quaking and shaking down the stabboard
- side, and slow work it was, too -- seemed a week be-
- fore we got to the stern. No sign of a boat. Jim
- said he didn't believe he could go any further -- so
- scared he hadn't hardly any strength left, he said.
- But I said, come on, if we get left on this wreck we
- are in a fix, sure. So on we prowled again. We
- struck for the stern of the texas, and found it, and
- then scrabbled along forwards on the skylight, hanging
- on from shutter to shutter, for the edge of the skylight
- was in the water. When we got pretty close to the
- cross-hall door there was the skiff, sure enough! I
- could just barely see her. I felt ever so thankful. In
- another second I would a been aboard of her, but just
- then the door opened. One of the men stuck his head
- out only about a couple of foot from me, and I thought
- I was gone; but he jerked it in again, and says:
-
- "Heave that blame lantern out o' sight, Bill!"
-
- He flung a bag of something into the boat, and then
- got in himself and set down. It was Packard. Then
- Bill HE come out and got in. Packard says, in a low
- voice:
-
- "All ready -- shove off!"
-
- I couldn't hardly hang on to the shutters, I was so
- weak. But Bill says:
-
- "Hold on -- 'd you go through him?"
-
- "No. Didn't you?"
-
- "No. So he's got his share o' the cash yet."
-
- "Well, then, come along; no use to take truck and
- leave money."
-
- "Say, won't he suspicion what we're up to?"
-
- "Maybe he won't. But we got to have it anyway.
- Come along."
-
- So they got out and went in.
-
- The door slammed to because it was on the careened
- side; and in a half second I was in the boat, and Jim
- come tumbling after me. I out with my knife and cut
- the rope, and away we went!
-
- We didn't touch an oar, and we didn't speak nor
- whisper, nor hardly even breathe. We went gliding
- swift along, dead silent, past the tip of the paddle-
- box, and past the stern; then in a second or two more
- we was a hundred yards below the wreck, and the
- darkness soaked her up, every last sign of her, and we
- was safe, and knowed it.
-
- When we was three or four hundred yards down-
- stream we see the lantern show like a little spark at the
- texas door for a second, and we knowed by that that
- the rascals had missed their boat, and was beginning
- to understand that they was in just as much trouble now
- as Jim Turner was.
-
- Then Jim manned the oars, and we took out after
- our raft. Now was the first time that I begun to worry
- about the men -- I reckon I hadn't had time to before.
- I begun to think how dreadful it was, even for mur-
- derers, to be in such a fix. I says to myself, there
- ain't no telling but I might come to be a murderer
- myself yet, and then how would I like it? So says I
- to Jim:
-
- "The first light we see we'll land a hundred yards
- below it or above it, in a place where it's a good
- hiding-place for you and the skiff, and then I'll go and
- fix up some kind of a yarn, and get somebody to go
- for that gang and get them out of their scrape, so they
- can be hung when their time comes."
-
- But that idea was a failure; for pretty soon it begun
- to storm again, and this time worse than ever. The
- rain poured down, and never a light showed; every-
- body in bed, I reckon. We boomed along down the
- river, watching for lights and watching for our raft.
- After a long time the rain let up, but the clouds
- stayed, and the lightning kept whimpering, and by and
- by a flash showed us a black thing ahead, floating, and
- we made for it.
-
- It was the raft, and mighty glad was we to get
- aboard of it again. We seen a light now away down
- to the right, on shore. So I said I would go for it.
- The skiff was half full of plunder which that gang had
- stole there on the wreck. We hustled it on to the raft
- in a pile, and I told Jim to float along down, and show
- a light when he judged he had gone about two mile,
- and keep it burning till I come; then I manned my
- oars and shoved for the light. As I got down towards
- it three or four more showed -- up on a hillside. It
- was a village. I closed in above the shore light, and
- laid on my oars and floated. As I went by I see it
- was a lantern hanging on the jackstaff of a double-hull
- ferryboat. I skimmed around for the watchman, a-
- wondering whereabouts he slept; and by and by I
- found him roosting on the bitts forward, with his head
- down between his knees. I gave his shoulder two or
- three little shoves, and begun to cry.
-
- He stirred up in a kind of a startlish way; but when
- he see it was only me he took a good gap and stretch,
- and then he says:
-
- "Hello, what's up? Don't cry, bub. What's the
- trouble?"
-
- I says:
-
- "Pap, and mam, and sis, and --"
-
- Then I broke down. He says:
-
- "Oh, dang it now, DON'T take on so; we all has to
- have our troubles, and this 'n 'll come out all right.
- What's the matter with 'em?"
-
- "They're -- they're -- are you the watchman of the
- boat?"
-
- "Yes," he says, kind of pretty-well-satisfied like.
- "I'm the captain and the owner and the mate and the
- pilot and watchman and head deck-hand; and some-
- times I'm the freight and passengers. I ain't as rich
- as old Jim Hornback, and I can't be so blame' gener-
- ous and good to Tom, Dick, and Harry as what he is,
- and slam around money the way he does; but I've
- told him a many a time 't I wouldn't trade places with
- him; for, says I, a sailor's life's the life for me, and
- I'm derned if I'D live two mile out o' town, where
- there ain't nothing ever goin' on, not for all his spon-
- dulicks and as much more on top of it. Says I --"
-
- I broke in and says:
-
- "They're in an awful peck of trouble, and --"
-
- "WHO is?"
-
- "Why, pap and mam and sis and Miss Hooker;
- and if you'd take your ferryboat and go up there --"
-
- "Up where? Where are they?"
-
- "On the wreck."
-
- "What wreck?"
-
- "Why, there ain't but one."
-
- "What, you don't mean the Walter Scott?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Good land! what are they doin' THERE, for gracious
- sakes?"
-
- "Well, they didn't go there a-purpose."
-
- "I bet they didn't! Why, great goodness, there
- ain't no chance for 'em if they don't git off mighty
- quick! Why, how in the nation did they ever git into
- such a scrape?"
-
- "Easy enough. Miss Hooker was a-visiting up
- there to the town --"
-
- "Yes, Booth's Landing -- go on."
-
- "She was a-visiting there at Booth's Landing, and
- just in the edge of the evening she started over with
- her nigger woman in the horse-ferry to stay all night
- at her friend's house, Miss What-you-may-call-herQI
- disremember her name -- and they lost their steering-
- oar, and swung around and went a-floating down,
- stern first, about two mile, and saddle-baggsed on the
- wreck, and the ferryman and the nigger woman and
- the horses was all lost, but Miss Hooker she made a
- grab and got aboard the wreck. Well, about an hour
- after dark we come along down in our trading-scow,
- and it was so dark we didn't notice the wreck till we
- was right on it; and so WE saddle-baggsed; but all of
- us was saved but Bill Whipple -- and oh, he WAS the
- best cretur ! -- I most wish 't it had been me, I do."
-
- "My George! It's the beatenest thing I ever
- struck. And THEN what did you all do?"
-
- "Well, we hollered and took on, but it's so wide
- there we couldn't make nobody hear. So pap said
- somebody got to get ashore and get help somehow. I
- was the only one that could swim, so I made a dash
- for it, and Miss Hooker she said if I didn't strike help
- sooner, come here and hunt up her uncle, and he'd
- fix the thing. I made the land about a mile below,
- and been fooling along ever since, trying to get people
- to do something, but they said, 'What, in such a night
- and such a current? There ain't no sense in it; go
- for the steam ferry.' Now if you'll go and --"
-
- "By Jackson, I'd LIKE to, and, blame it, I don't
- know but I will; but who in the dingnation's a-going'
- to PAY for it? Do you reckon your pap --"
-
- "Why THAT'S all right. Miss Hooker she tole me,
- PARTICULAR, that her uncle Hornback --"
-
- "Great guns! is HE her uncle? Looky here, you
- break for that light over yonder-way, and turn out
- west when you git there, and about a quarter of a mile
- out you'll come to the tavern; tell 'em to dart you
- out to Jim Hornback's, and he'll foot the bill. And
- don't you fool around any, because he'll want to know
- the news. Tell him I'll have his niece all safe before
- he can get to town. Hump yourself, now; I'm a-
- going up around the corner here to roust out my
- engineer."
-
- I struck for the light, but as soon as he turned the
- corner I went back and got into my skiff and bailed her
- out, and then pulled up shore in the easy water about
- six hundred yards, and tucked myself in among some
- woodboats; for I couldn't rest easy till I could see
- the ferryboat start. But take it all around, I was feel-
- ing ruther comfortable on accounts of taking all this
- trouble for that gang, for not many would a done it.
- I wished the widow knowed about it. I judged she
- would be proud of me for helping these rapscallions,
- because rapscallions and dead beats is the kind the
- widow and good people takes the most interest in.
-
- Well, before long here comes the wreck, dim and
- dusky, sliding along down! A kind of cold shiver
- went through me, and then I struck out for her. She
- was very deep, and I see in a minute there warn't much
- chance for anybody being alive in her. I pulled all
- around her and hollered a little, but there wasn't any
- answer; all dead still. I felt a little bit heavy-hearted
- about the gang, but not much, for I reckoned if they
- could stand it I could.
-
- Then here comes the ferryboat; so I shoved for the
- middle of the river on a long down-stream slant; and
- when I judged I was out of eye-reach I laid on my
- oars, and looked back and see her go and smell around
- the wreck for Miss Hooker's remainders, because the
- captain would know her uncle Hornback would want
- them; and then pretty soon the ferryboat give it up
- and went for the shore, and I laid into my work and
- went a-booming down the river.
-
- It did seem a powerful long time before Jim's light
- showed up; and when it did show it looked like it was
- a thousand mile off. By the time I got there the sky
- was beginning to get a little gray in the east; so we
- struck for an island, and hid the raft, and sunk the
- skiff, and turned in and slept like dead people.
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
- BY and by, when we got up, we turned over the
- truck the gang had stole off of the wreck, and
- found boots, and blankets, and clothes, and all sorts of
- other things, and a lot of books, and a spyglass, and
- three boxes of seegars. We hadn't ever been this rich
- before in neither of our lives. The seegars was prime.
- We laid off all the afternoon in the woods talking, and
- me reading the books, and having a general good time.
- I told Jim all about what happened inside the wreck
- and at the ferryboat, and I said these kinds of things
- was adventures; but he said he didn't want no more
- adventures. He said that when I went in the texas
- and he crawled back to get on the raft and found her
- gone he nearly died, because he judged it was all up
- with HIM anyway it could be fixed; for if he didn't get
- saved he would get drownded; and if he did get
- saved, whoever saved him would send him back home
- so as to get the reward, and then Miss Watson would
- sell him South, sure. Well, he was right; he was
- most always right; he had an uncommon level head
- for a nigger.
-
- I read considerable to Jim about kings and dukes
- and earls and such, and how gaudy they dressed, and
- how much style they put on, and called each other
- your majesty, and your grace, and your lordship, and
- so on, 'stead of mister; and Jim's eyes bugged out,
- and he was interested. He says:
-
- "I didn' know dey was so many un um. I hain't
- hearn 'bout none un um, skasely, but ole King Soller-
- mun, onless you counts dem kings dat's in a pack er
- k'yards. How much do a king git?"
-
- "Get?" I says; "why, they get a thousand dollars
- a month if they want it; they can have just as much
- as they want; everything belongs to them."
-
- "AIN' dat gay? En what dey got to do, Huck?"
-
- "THEY don't do nothing! Why, how you talk!
- They just set around."
-
- "No; is dat so?"
-
- "Of course it is. They just set around -- except,
- maybe, when there's a war; then they go to the war.
- But other times they just lazy around; or go hawking
- -- just hawking and sp -- Sh! -- d' you hear a noise?"
-
- We skipped out and looked; but it warn't nothing
- but the flutter of a steamboat's wheel away down,
- coming around the point; so we come back.
-
- "Yes," says I, "and other times, when things is
- dull, they fuss with the parlyment; and if everybody
- don't go just so he whacks their heads off. But
- mostly they hang round the harem."
-
- "Roun' de which?"
-
- "Harem."
-
- "What's de harem?"
-
- "The place where he keeps his wives. Don't you
- know about the harem? Solomon had one; he had
- about a million wives."
-
- "Why, yes, dat's so; I -- I'd done forgot it. A
- harem's a bo'd'n-house, I reck'n. Mos' likely dey
- has rackety times in de nussery. En I reck'n de wives
- quarrels considable; en dat 'crease de racket. Yit dey
- say Sollermun de wises' man dat ever live'. I doan'
- take no stock in dat. Bekase why: would a wise man
- want to live in de mids' er sich a blim-blammin' all de
- time? No -- 'deed he wouldn't. A wise man 'ud take
- en buil' a biler-factry; en den he could shet DOWN de
- biler-factry when he want to res'."
-
- "Well, but he WAS the wisest man, anyway; be-
- cause the widow she told me so, her own self."
-
- "I doan k'yer what de widder say, he WARN'T no
- wise man nuther. He had some er de dad-fetchedes'
- ways I ever see. Does you know 'bout dat chile dat
- he 'uz gwyne to chop in two?"
-
- "Yes, the widow told me all about it."
-
- "WELL, den! Warn' dat de beatenes' notion in de
- worl'? You jes' take en look at it a minute. Dah's
- de stump, dah -- dat's one er de women; heah's you
- -- dat's de yuther one; I's Sollermun; en dish yer
- dollar bill's de chile. Bofe un you claims it. What
- does I do? Does I shin aroun' mongs' de neighbors
- en fine out which un you de bill DO b'long to, en han'
- it over to de right one, all safe en soun', de way dat
- anybody dat had any gumption would? No; I take
- en whack de bill in TWO, en give half un it to you, en
- de yuther half to de yuther woman. Dat's de way
- Sollermun was gwyne to do wid de chile. Now I
- want to ast you: what's de use er dat half a bill? --
- can't buy noth'n wid it. En what use is a half a
- chile? I wouldn' give a dern for a million un um."
-
- "But hang it, Jim, you've clean missed the point --
- blame it, you've missed it a thousand mile."
-
- "Who? Me? Go 'long. Doan' talk to me 'bout
- yo' pints. I reck'n I knows sense when I sees it; en
- dey ain' no sense in sich doin's as dat. De 'spute
- warn't 'bout a half a chile, de 'spute was 'bout a
- whole chile; en de man dat think he kin settle a
- 'spute 'bout a whole chile wid a half a chile doan'
- know enough to come in out'n de rain. Doan' talk
- to me 'bout Sollermun, Huck, I knows him by de back."
-
- "But I tell you you don't get the point."
-
- "Blame de point! I reck'n I knows what I knows.
- En mine you, de REAL pint is down furder -- it's down
- deeper. It lays in de way Sollermun was raised.
- You take a man dat's got on'y one or two chillen; is
- dat man gwyne to be waseful o' chillen? No, he
- ain't; he can't 'ford it. HE know how to value 'em.
- But you take a man dat's got 'bout five million chillen
- runnin' roun' de house, en it's diffunt. HE as soon
- chop a chile in two as a cat. Dey's plenty mo'. A
- chile er two, mo' er less, warn't no consekens to
- Sollermun, dad fatch him!"
-
- I never see such a nigger. If he got a notion in his
- head once, there warn't no getting it out again. He
- was the most down on Solomon of any nigger I ever
- see. So I went to talking about other kings, and let
- Solomon slide. I told about Louis Sixteenth that got
- his head cut off in France long time ago; and about
- his little boy the dolphin, that would a been a king,
- but they took and shut him up in jail, and some say he
- died there.
-
- "Po' little chap."
-
- "But some says he got out and got away, and come
- to America."
-
- "Dat's good! But he'll be pooty lonesome -- dey
- ain' no kings here, is dey, Huck?"
-
- "No."
-
- "Den he cain't git no situation. What he gwyne
- to do?"
-
- "Well, I don't know. Some of them gets on the
- police, and some of them learns people how to talk
- French."
-
- "Why, Huck, doan' de French people talk de same
- way we does?"
-
- "NO, Jim; you couldn't understand a word they
- said -- not a single word."
-
- "Well, now, I be ding-busted! How do dat
- come?"
-
- "I don't know; but it's so. I got some of their
- jabber out of a book. S'pose a man was to come to
- you and say Polly-voo-franzy -- what would you
- think?"
-
- "I wouldn' think nuff'n; I'd take en bust him over
- de head -- dat is, if he warn't white. I wouldn't 'low
- no nigger to call me dat."
-
- "Shucks, it ain't calling you anything. It's only
- saying, do you know how to talk French?"
-
- "Well, den, why couldn't he SAY it?"
-
- "Why, he IS a-saying it. That's a Frenchman's
- WAY of saying it."
-
- "Well, it's a blame ridicklous way, en I doan' want
- to hear no mo' 'bout it. Dey ain' no sense in it."
-
- "Looky here, Jim; does a cat talk like we do?"
-
- "No, a cat don't."
-
- "Well, does a cow?"
-
- "No, a cow don't, nuther."
-
- "Does a cat talk like a cow, or a cow talk like a
- cat?"
-
- "No, dey don't."
-
- "It's natural and right for 'em to talk different from
- each other, ain't it?"
-
- "Course."
-
- "And ain't it natural and right for a cat and a cow
- to talk different from US?"
-
- "Why, mos' sholy it is."
-
- "Well, then, why ain't it natural and right for a
- FRENCHMAN to talk different from us? You answer me
- that."
-
- "Is a cat a man, Huck?"
-
- "No."
-
- "Well, den, dey ain't no sense in a cat talkin' like a
- man. Is a cow a man? -- er is a cow a cat?"
-
- "No, she ain't either of them."
-
- "Well, den, she ain't got no business to talk like
- either one er the yuther of 'em. Is a Frenchman a
- man?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "WELL, den! Dad blame it, why doan' he TALK like
- a man? You answer me DAT!"
-
- I see it warn't no use wasting words -- you can't
- learn a nigger to argue. So I quit.
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
- WE judged that three nights more would fetch us to
- Cairo, at the bottom of Illinois, where the Ohio
- River comes in, and that was what we was after. We
- would sell the raft and get on a steamboat and go way
- up the Ohio amongst the free States, and then be out
- of trouble.
-
- Well, the second night a fog begun to come on, and
- we made for a towhead to tie to, for it wouldn't do to
- try to run in a fog; but when I paddled ahead in the
- canoe, with the line to make fast, there warn't any-
- thing but little saplings to tie to. I passed the line
- around one of them right on the edge of the cut bank,
- but there was a stiff current, and the raft come boom-
- ing down so lively she tore it out by the roots and
- away she went. I see the fog closing down, and it
- made me so sick and scared I couldn't budge for most
- a half a minute it seemed to me -- and then there warn't
- no raft in sight; you couldn't see twenty yards. I
- jumped into the canoe and run back to the stern, and
- grabbed the paddle and set her back a stroke. But
- she didn't come. I was in such a hurry I hadn't
- untied her. I got up and tried to untie her, but I was
- so excited my hands shook so I couldn't hardly do
- anything with them.
-
- As soon as I got started I took out after the raft,
- hot and heavy, right down the towhead. That was
- all right as far as it went, but the towhead warn't
- sixty yards long, and the minute I flew by the foot of
- it I shot out into the solid white fog, and hadn't no
- more idea which way I was going than a dead man.
-
- Thinks I, it won't do to paddle; first I know I'll
- run into the bank or a towhead or something; I got
- to set still and float, and yet it's mighty fidgety busi-
- ness to have to hold your hands still at such a time. I
- whooped and listened. Away down there somewheres
- I hears a small whoop, and up comes my spirits. I
- went tearing after it, listening sharp to hear it again.
- The next time it come I see I warn't heading for it,
- but heading away to the right of it. And the next
- time I was heading away to the left of it -- and not
- gaining on it much either, for I was flying around, this
- way and that and t'other, but it was going straight
- ahead all the time.
-
- I did wish the fool would think to beat a tin pan,
- and beat it all the time, but he never did, and it was
- the still places between the whoops that was making
- the trouble for me. Well, I fought along, and directly
- I hears the whoop BEHIND me. I was tangled good
- now. That was somebody else's whoop, or else I was
- turned around.
-
- I throwed the paddle down. I heard the whoop
- again; it was behind me yet, but in a different place;
- it kept coming, and kept changing its place, and I kept
- answering, till by and by it was in front of me again,
- and I knowed the current had swung the canoe's head
- down-stream, and I was all right if that was Jim and
- not some other raftsman hollering. I couldn't tell
- nothing about voices in a fog, for nothing don't look
- natural nor sound natural in a fog.
-
- The whooping went on, and in about a minute I
- come a-booming down on a cut bank with smoky
- ghosts of big trees on it, and the current throwed me
- off to the left and shot by, amongst a lot of snags that
- fairly roared, the currrent was tearing by them so swift.
-
- In another second or two it was solid white and still
- again. I set perfectly still then, listening to my heart
- thump, and I reckon I didn't draw a breath while it
- thumped a hundred.
-
- I just give up then. I knowed what the matter was.
- That cut bank was an island, and Jim had gone down
- t'other side of it. It warn't no towhead that you
- could float by in ten minutes. It had the big timber
- of a regular island; it might be five or six miles long
- and more than half a mile wide.
-
- I kept quiet, with my ears cocked, about fifteen
- minutes, I reckon. I was floating along, of course,
- four or five miles an hour; but you don't ever think
- of that. No, you FEEL like you are laying dead still on
- the water; and if a little glimpse of a snag slips by
- you don't think to yourself how fast YOU'RE going, but
- you catch your breath and think, my! how that snag's
- tearing along. If you think it ain't dismal and lone-
- some out in a fog that way by yourself in the night,
- you try it once -- you'll see.
-
- Next, for about a half an hour, I whoops now and
- then; at last I hears the answer a long ways off, and
- tries to follow it, but I couldn't do it, and directly I
- judged I'd got into a nest of towheads, for I had little
- dim glimpses of them on both sides of me -- sometimes
- just a narrow channel between, and some that I
- couldn't see I knowed was there because I'd hear the
- wash of the current against the old dead brush and
- trash that hung over the banks. Well, I warn't long
- loosing the whoops down amongst the towheads; and
- I only tried to chase them a little while, anyway, be-
- cause it was worse than chasing a Jack-o'-lantern.
- You never knowed a sound dodge around so, and
- swap places so quick and so much.
-
- I had to claw away from the bank pretty lively four
- or five times, to keep from knocking the islands out of
- the river; and so I judged the raft must be butting
- into the bank every now and then, or else it would get
- further ahead and clear out of hearing -- it was floating
- a little faster than what I was.
-
- Well, I seemed to be in the open river again by and
- by, but I couldn't hear no sign of a whoop nowheres.
- I reckoned Jim had fetched up on a snag, maybe, and
- it was all up with him. I was good and tired, so I laid
- down in the canoe and said I wouldn't bother no
- more. I didn't want to go to sleep, of course; but I
- was so sleepy I couldn't help it; so I thought I would
- take jest one little cat-nap.
-
- But I reckon it was more than a cat-nap, for when I
- waked up the stars was shining bright, the fog was all
- gone, and I was spinning down a big bend stern first.
- First I didn't know where I was; I thought I was
- dreaming; and when things began to come back to me
- they seemed to come up dim out of last week.
-
- It was a monstrous big river here, with the tallest
- and the thickest kind of timber on both banks; just a
- solid wall, as well as I could see by the stars. I looked
- away down-stream, and seen a black speck on the
- water. I took after it; but when I got to it it warn't
- nothing but a couple of sawlogs made fast together.
- Then I see another speck, and chased that; then
- another, and this time I was right. It was the raft.
-
- When I got to it Jim was setting there with his head
- down between his knees, asleep, with his right arm
- hanging over the steering-oar. The other oar was
- smashed off, and the raft was littered up with leaves
- and branches and dirt. So she'd had a rough time.
-
- I made fast and laid down under Jim's nose on the
- raft, and began to gap, and stretch my fists out against
- Jim, and says:
-
- "Hello, Jim, have I been asleep? Why didn't you
- stir me up?"
-
- "Goodness gracious, is dat you, Huck? En you
- ain' dead -- you ain' drownded -- you's back agin?
- It's too good for true, honey, it's too good for true.
- Lemme look at you chile, lemme feel o' you. No,
- you ain' dead! you's back agin, 'live en soun', jis de
- same ole Huck -- de same ole Huck, thanks to good-
- ness!"
-
- "What's the matter with you, Jim? You been a-
- drinking?"
-
- "Drinkin'? Has I ben a-drinkin'? Has I had a
- chance to be a-drinkin'?"
-
- "Well, then, what makes you talk so wild?"
-
- "How does I talk wild?"
-
- "HOW? Why, hain't you been talking about my
- coming back, and all that stuff, as if I'd been gone
- away?"
-
- "Huck -- Huck Finn, you look me in de eye; look
- me in de eye. HAIN'T you ben gone away?"
-
- "Gone away? Why, what in the nation do you
- mean? I hain't been gone anywheres. Where would
- I go to?"
-
- "Well, looky here, boss, dey's sumf'n wrong, dey
- is. Is I ME, or who IS I? Is I heah, or whah IS I?
- Now dat's what I wants to know."
-
- "Well, I think you're here, plain enough, but I
- think you're a tangle-headed old fool, Jim."
-
- "I is, is I? Well, you answer me dis: Didn't you
- tote out de line in de canoe fer to make fas' to de tow-
- head?"
-
- "No, I didn't. What tow-head? I hain't see no
- tow-head."
-
- "You hain't seen no towhead? Looky here, didn't
- de line pull loose en de raf' go a-hummin' down de
- river, en leave you en de canoe behine in de fog?"
-
- "What fog?"
-
- "Why, de fog! -- de fog dat's been aroun' all night.
- En didn't you whoop, en didn't I whoop, tell we got
- mix' up in de islands en one un us got los' en t'other
- one was jis' as good as los', 'kase he didn' know whah
- he wuz? En didn't I bust up agin a lot er dem islands
- en have a turrible time en mos' git drownded? Now
- ain' dat so, boss -- ain't it so? You answer me dat."
-
- "Well, this is too many for me, Jim. I hain't seen
- no fog, nor no islands, nor no troubles, nor nothing.
- I been setting here talking with you all night till you
- went to sleep about ten minutes ago, and I reckon I
- done the same. You couldn't a got drunk in that
- time, so of course you've been dreaming."
-
- "Dad fetch it, how is I gwyne to dream all dat in
- ten minutes?"
-
- "Well, hang it all, you did dream it, because there
- didn't any of it happen."
-
- "But, Huck, it's all jis' as plain to me as --"
-
- "It don't make no difference how plain it is; there
- ain't nothing in it. I know, because I've been here
- all the time."
-
- Jim didn't say nothing for about five minutes, but
- set there studying over it. Then he says:
-
- "Well, den, I reck'n I did dream it, Huck; but
- dog my cats ef it ain't de powerfullest dream I ever
- see. En I hain't ever had no dream b'fo' dat's tired
- me like dis one."
-
- "Oh, well, that's all right, because a dream does
- tire a body like everything sometimes. But this one
- was a staving dream; tell me all about it, Jim."
-
- So Jim went to work and told me the whole thing
- right through, just as it happened, only he painted it
- up considerable. Then he said he must start in and
- "'terpret" it, because it was sent for a warning. He
- said the first towhead stood for a man that would try
- to do us some good, but the current was another man
- that would get us away from him. The whoops was
- warnings that would come to us every now and then,
- and if we didn't try hard to make out to understand
- them they'd just take us into bad luck, 'stead of keep-
- ing us out of it. The lot of towheads was troubles
- we was going to get into with quarrelsome people and
- all kinds of mean folks, but if we minded our business
- and didn't talk back and aggravate them, we would
- pull through and get out of the fog and into the big
- clear river, which was the free States, and wouldn't
- have no more trouble.
-
- It had clouded up pretty dark just after I got on to
- the raft, but it was clearing up again now.
-
- "Oh, well, that's all interpreted well enough as far
- as it goes, Jim," I says; "but what does THESE things
- stand for?"
-
- It was the leaves and rubbish on the raft and the
- smashed oar. You could see them first-rate now.
-
- Jim looked at the trash, and then looked at me, and
- back at the trash again. He had got the dream fixed
- so strong in his head that he couldn't seem to shake it
- loose and get the facts back into its place again right
- away. But when he did get the thing straightened
- around he looked at me steady without ever smiling,
- and says:
-
- "What do dey stan' for? I'se gwyne to tell you.
- When I got all wore out wid work, en wid de callin'
- for you, en went to sleep, my heart wuz mos' broke
- bekase you wuz los', en I didn' k'yer no' mo' what
- become er me en de raf'. En when I wake up en fine
- you back agin, all safe en soun', de tears come, en I
- could a got down on my knees en kiss yo' foot, I's so
- thankful. En all you wuz thinkin' 'bout wuz how you
- could make a fool uv ole Jim wid a lie. Dat truck dah
- is TRASH; en trash is what people is dat puts dirt on de
- head er dey fren's en makes 'em ashamed."
-
- Then he got up slow and walked to the wigwam,
- and went in there without saying anything but that.
- But that was enough. It made me feel so mean I
- could almost kissed HIS foot to get him to take it back.
-
- It was fifteen minutes before I could work myself up
- to go and humble myself to a nigger; but I done it,
- and I warn't ever sorry for it afterwards, neither. I
- didn't do him no more mean tricks, and I wouldn't
- done that one if I'd a knowed it would make him feel
- that way.
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
-
- WE slept most all day, and started out at night, a
- little ways behind a monstrous long raft that
- was as long going by as a procession. She had four
- long sweeps at each end, so we judged she carried as
- many as thirty men, likely. She had five big wigwams
- aboard, wide apart, and an open camp fire in the mid-
- dle, and a tall flag-pole at each end. There was a
- power of style about her. It AMOUNTED to something
- being a raftsman on such a craft as that.
-
- We went drifting down into a big bend, and the
- night clouded up and got hot. The river was very
- wide, and was walled with solid timber on both sides;
- you couldn't see a break in it hardly ever, or a light.
- We talked about Cairo, and wondered whether we
- would know it when we got to it. I said likely we
- wouldn't, because I had heard say there warn't but
- about a dozen houses there, and if they didn't happen
- to have them lit up, how was we going to know we
- was passing a town? Jim said if the two big rivers
- joined together there, that would show. But I said
- maybe we might think we was passing the foot of an
- island and coming into the same old river again. That
- disturbed Jim -- and me too. So the question was,
- what to do? I said, paddle ashore the first time a
- light showed, and tell them pap was behind, coming
- along with a trading-scow, and was a green hand at
- the business, and wanted to know how far it was to
- Cairo. Jim thought it was a good idea, so we took a
- smoke on it and waited.
-
- There warn't nothing to do now but to look out
- sharp for the town, and not pass it without seeing it.
- He said he'd be mighty sure to see it, because he'd be
- a free man the minute he seen it, but if he missed it
- he'd be in a slave country again and no more show for
- freedom. Every little while he jumps up and says:
-
- "Dah she is?"
-
- But it warn't. It was Jack-o'-lanterns, or lightning
- bugs; so he set down again, and went to watching,
- same as before. Jim said it made him all over trembly
- and feverish to be so close to freedom. Well, I can
- tell you it made me all over trembly and feverish, too,
- to hear him, because I begun to get it through my
- head that he WAS most free -- and who was to blame
- for it? Why, ME. I couldn't get that out of my con-
- science, no how nor no way. It got to troubling me
- so I couldn't rest; I couldn't stay still in one place.
- It hadn't ever come home to me before, what this
- thing was that I was doing. But now it did; and it
- stayed with me, and scorched me more and more. I
- tried to make out to myself that I warn't to blame,
- because I didn't run Jim off from his rightful owner;
- but it warn't no use, conscience up and says, every
- time, "But you knowed he was running for his free-
- dom, and you could a paddled ashore and told some-
- body." That was so -- I couldn't get around that
- noway. That was where it pinched. Conscience says
- to me, "What had poor Miss Watson done to you
- that you could see her nigger go off right under your
- eyes and never say one single word? What did that
- poor old woman do to you that you could treat her so
- mean? Why, she tried to learn you your book, she tried
- to learn you your manners, she tried to be good to you
- every way she knowed how. THAT'S what she done."
-
- I got to feeling so mean and so miserable I most wished
- I was dead. I fidgeted up and down the raft, abusing
- myself to myself, and Jim was fidgeting up and down
- past me. We neither of us could keep still. Every
- time he danced around and says, "Dah's Cairo!" it
- went through me like a shot, and I thought if it WAS
- Cairo I reckoned I would die of miserableness.
-
- Jim talked out loud all the time while I was talking
- to myself. He was saying how the first thing he
- would do when he got to a free State he would go to
- saving up money and never spend a single cent, and
- when he got enough he would buy his wife, which was
- owned on a farm close to where Miss Watson lived;
- and then they would both work to buy the two chil-
- dren, and if their master wouldn't sell them, they'd
- get an Ab'litionist to go and steal them.
-
- It most froze me to hear such talk. He wouldn't
- ever dared to talk such talk in his life before. Just
- see what a difference it made in him the minute he
- judged he was about free. It was according to the old
- saying, "Give a nigger an inch and he'll take an ell."
- Thinks I, this is what comes of my not thinking.
- Here was this nigger, which I had as good as helped
- to run away, coming right out flat-footed and saying
- he would steal his children -- children that belonged to
- a man I didn't even know; a man that hadn't ever
- done me no harm.
-
- I was sorry to hear Jim say that, it was such a
- lowering of him. My conscience got to stirring me up
- hotter than ever, until at last I says to it, "Let up on
- me -- it ain't too late yet -- I'll paddle ashore at the
- first light and tell." I felt easy and happy and light
- as a feather right off. All my troubles was gone. I
- went to looking out sharp for a light, and sort of sing-
- ing to myself. By and by one showed. Jim sings
- out:
-
- "We's safe, Huck, we's safe! Jump up and crack
- yo' heels! Dat's de good ole Cairo at las', I jis knows
- it!"
-
- I says:
-
- "I'll take the canoe and go and see, Jim. It
- mightn't be, you know."
-
- He jumped and got the canoe ready, and put his old
- coat in the bottom for me to set on, and give me the
- paddle; and as I shoved off, he says:
-
- "Pooty soon I'll be a-shout'n' for joy, en I'll say,
- it's all on accounts o' Huck; I's a free man, en I
- couldn't ever ben free ef it hadn' ben for Huck; Huck
- done it. Jim won't ever forgit you, Huck; you's de
- bes' fren' Jim's ever had; en you's de ONLY fren' ole
- Jim's got now."
-
- I was paddling off, all in a sweat to tell on him; but
- when he says this, it seemed to kind of take the tuck
- all out of me. I went along slow then, and I warn't
- right down certain whether I was glad I started or
- whether I warn't. When I was fifty yards off, Jim
- says:
-
- "Dah you goes, de ole true Huck; de on'y white
- genlman dat ever kep' his promise to ole Jim."
-
- Well, I just felt sick. But I says, I GOT to do it -- I
- can't get OUT of it. Right then along comes a skiff
- with two men in it with guns, and they stopped and I
- stopped. One of them says:
-
- "What's that yonder?"
-
- "A piece of a raft," I says.
-
- "Do you belong on it?"
-
- "Yes, sir."
-
- "Any men on it?"
-
- "Only one, sir."
-
- "Well, there's five niggers run off to-night up yon-
- der, above the head of the bend. Is your man white
- or black?"
-
- I didn't answer up prompt. I tried to, but the
- words wouldn't come. I tried for a second or two to
- brace up and out with it, but I warn't man enough --
- hadn't the spunk of a rabbit. I see I was weakening;
- so I just give up trying, and up and says:
-
- "He's white."
-
- "I reckon we'll go and see for ourselves."
-
- "I wish you would," says I, "because it's pap
- that's there, and maybe you'd help me tow the raft
- ashore where the light is. He's sick -- and so is mam
- and Mary Ann."
-
- "Oh, the devil! we're in a hurry, boy. But I
- s'pose we've got to. Come, buckle to your paddle,
- and let's get along."
-
- I buckled to my paddle and they laid to their oars.
- When we had made a stroke or two, I says:
-
- "Pap'll be mighty much obleeged to you, I can
- tell you. Everybody goes away when I want them to
- help me tow the raft ashore, and I can't do it by
- myself."
-
- "Well, that's infernal mean. Odd, too. Say, boy,
- what's the matter with your father?"
-
- "It's the -- a -- the -- well, it ain't anything much."
-
- They stopped pulling. It warn't but a mighty little
- ways to the raft now. One says:
-
- "Boy, that's a lie. What IS the matter with your
- pap? Answer up square now, and it'll be the better
- for you."
-
- "I will, sir, I will, honest -- but don't leave us,
- please. It's the -- the -- Gentlemen, if you'll only
- pull ahead, and let me heave you the headline, you
- won't have to come a-near the raft -- please do."
-
- "Set her back, John, set her back!" says one.
- They backed water. "Keep away, boy -- keep to
- looard. Confound it, I just expect the wind has
- blowed it to us. Your pap's got the small-pox, and
- you know it precious well. Why didn't you come out
- and say so? Do you want to spread it all over?"
-
- "Well," says I, a-blubbering, "I've told every-
- body before, and they just went away and left us."
-
- "Poor devil, there's something in that. We are
- right down sorry for you, but we -- well, hang it, we
- don't want the small-pox, you see. Look here, I'll
- tell you what to do. Don't you try to land by your-
- self, or you'll smash everything to pieces. You float
- along down about twenty miles, and you'll come to a
- town on the left-hand side of the river. It will be
- long after sun-up then, and when you ask for help
- you tell them your folks are all down with chills and
- fever. Don't be a fool again, and let people guess
- what is the matter. Now we're trying to do you a
- kindness; so you just put twenty miles between us,
- that's a good boy. It wouldn't do any good to land
- yonder where the light is -- it's only a wood-yard.
- Say, I reckon your father's poor, and I'm bound to
- say he's in pretty hard luck. Here, I'll put a twenty-
- dollar gold piece on this board, and you get it when it
- floats by. I feel mighty mean to leave you; but my
- kingdom! it won't do to fool with small-pox, don't
- you see?"
-
- "Hold on, Parker," says the other man, "here's a
- twenty to put on the board for me. Good-bye, boy;
- you do as Mr. Parker told you, and you'll be all
- right."
-
- "That's so, my boy -- good-bye, good-bye. If you
- see any runaway niggers you get help and nab them,
- and you can make some money by it."
-
- "Good-bye, sir," says I; "I won't let no runaway
- niggers get by me if I can help it."
-
- They went off and I got aboard the raft, feeling bad
- and low, because I knowed very well I had done
- wrong, and I see it warn't no use for me to try to
- learn to do right; a body that don't get STARTED right
- when he's little ain't got no show -- when the pinch
- comes there ain't nothing to back him up and keep
- him to his work, and so he gets beat. Then I thought
- a minute, and says to myself, hold on; s'pose you'd a
- done right and give Jim up, would you felt better than
- what you do now? No, says I, I'd feel bad -- I'd feel
- just the same way I do now. Well, then, says I,
- what's the use you learning to do right when it's
- troublesome to do right and ain't no trouble to do
- wrong, and the wages is just the same? I was stuck.
- I couldn't answer that. So I reckoned I wouldn't
- bother no more about it, but after this always do
- whichever come handiest at the time.
-
- I went into the wigwam; Jim warn't there. I looked
- all around; he warn't anywhere. I says:
-
- "Jim!"
-
- "Here I is, Huck. Is dey out o' sight yit? Don't
- talk loud."
-
- He was in the river under the stern oar, with just
- his nose out. I told him they were out of sight, so he
- come aboard. He says:
-
- "I was a-listenin' to all de talk, en I slips into de
- river en was gwyne to shove for sho' if dey come
- aboard. Den I was gwyne to swim to de raf' agin
- when dey was gone. But lawsy, how you did fool
- 'em, Huck! Dat WUZ de smartes' dodge! I tell you,
- chile, I'spec it save' ole Jim -- ole Jim ain't going to
- forgit you for dat, honey."
-
- Then we talked about the money. It was a pretty
- good raise -- twenty dollars apiece. Jim said we could
- take deck passage on a steamboat now, and the money
- would last us as far as we wanted to go in the free
- States. He said twenty mile more warn't far for the
- raft to go, but he wished we was already there.
-
- Towards daybreak we tied up, and Jim was mighty
- particular about hiding the raft good. Then he worked
- all day fixing things in bundles, and getting all ready
- to quit rafting.
-
- That night about ten we hove in sight of the lights
- of a town away down in a left-hand bend.
-
- I went off in the canoe to ask about it. Pretty soon I
- found a man out in the river with a skiff, setting a trot-
- line. I ranged up and says:
-
- "Mister, is that town Cairo?"
-
- "Cairo? no. You must be a blame' fool."
-
- "What town is it, mister?"
-
- "If you want to know, go and find out. If you
- stay here botherin' around me for about a half a minute
- longer you'll get something you won't want."
-
- I paddled to the raft. Jim was awful disappointed,
- but I said never mind, Cairo would be the next place,
- I reckoned.
-
- We passed another town before daylight, and I was
- going out again; but it was high ground, so I didn't
- go. No high ground about Cairo, Jim said. I had
- forgot it. We laid up for the day on a towhead
- tolerable close to the left-hand bank. I begun to
- suspicion something. So did Jim. I says:
-
- "Maybe we went by Cairo in the fog that night."
-
- He says:
-
- "Doan' le's talk about it, Huck. Po' niggers can't
- have no luck. I awluz 'spected dat rattlesnake-skin
- warn't done wid its work."
-
- "I wish I'd never seen that snake-skin, Jim -- I do
- wish I'd never laid eyes on it."
-
- "It ain't yo' fault, Huck; you didn' know. Don't
- you blame yo'self 'bout it."
-
- When it was daylight, here was the clear Ohio water
- inshore, sure enough, and outside was the old regular
- Muddy! So it was all up with Cairo.
-
- We talked it all over. It wouldn't do to take to the
- shore; we couldn't take the raft up the stream, of
- course. There warn't no way but to wait for dark,
- and start back in the canoe and take the chances. So
- we slept all day amongst the cottonwood thicket, so
- as to be fresh for the work, and when we went back to
- the raft about dark the canoe was gone!
-
- We didn't say a word for a good while. There
- warn't anything to say. We both knowed well enough
- it was some more work of the rattlesnake-skin; so
- what was the use to talk about it? It would only look
- like we was finding fault, and that would be bound to
- fetch more bad luck -- and keep on fetching it, too, till
- we knowed enough to keep still.
-
- By and by we talked about what we better do, and
- found there warn't no way but just to go along down
- with the raft till we got a chance to buy a canoe to go
- back in. We warn't going to borrow it when there
- warn't anybody around, the way pap would do, for
- that might set people after us.
-
- So we shoved out after dark on the raft.
-
- Anybody that don't believe yet that it's foolishness to
- handle a snake-skin, after all that that snake-skin done
- for us, will believe it now if they read on and see what
- more it done for us.
-
- The place to buy canoes is off of rafts laying up at
- shore. But we didn't see no rafts laying up; so we
- went along during three hours and more. Well, the
- night got gray and ruther thick, which is the next
- meanest thing to fog. You can't tell the shape of the
- river, and you can't see no distance. It got to be
- very late and still, and then along comes a steamboat
- up the river. We lit the lantern, and judged she would
- see it. Up-stream boats didn't generly come close to
- us; they go out and follow the bars and hunt for easy
- water under the reefs; but nights like this they bull
- right up the channel against the whole river.
-
- We could hear her pounding along, but we didn't
- see her good till she was close. She aimed right for
- us. Often they do that and try to see how close they
- can come without touching; sometimes the wheel bites
- off a sweep, and then the pilot sticks his head out and
- laughs, and thinks he's mighty smart. Well, here she
- comes, and we said she was going to try and shave us;
- but she didn't seem to be sheering off a bit. She was
- a big one, and she was coming in a hurry, too, looking
- like a black cloud with rows of glow-worms around it;
- but all of a sudden she bulged out, big and scary, with
- a long row of wide-open furnace doors shining like
- red-hot teeth, and her monstrous bows and guards
- hanging right over us. There was a yell at us, and a
- jingling of bells to stop the engines, a powwow of
- cussing, and whistling of steam -- and as Jim went
- overboard on one side and I on the other, she come
- smashing straight through the raft.
-
- I dived -- and I aimed to find the bottom, too, for a
- thirty-foot wheel had got to go over me, and I wanted
- it to have plenty of room. I could always stay under
- water a minute; this time I reckon I stayed under a
- minute and a half. Then I bounced for the top in a
- hurry, for I was nearly busting. I popped out to my
- armpits and blowed the water out of my nose, and
- puffed a bit. Of course there was a booming current;
- and of course that boat started her engines again ten
- seconds after she stopped them, for they never cared
- much for raftsmen; so now she was churning along up
- the river, out of sight in the thick weather, though I
- could hear her.
-
- I sung out for Jim about a dozen times, but I didn't
- get any answer; so I grabbed a plank that touched me
- while I was "treading water," and struck out for
- shore, shoving it ahead of me. But I made out to
- see that the drift of the current was towards the left-
- hand shore, which meant that I was in a crossing; so
- I changed off and went that way.
-
- It was one of these long, slanting, two-mile cross-
- ings; so I was a good long time in getting over. I
- made a safe landing, and clumb up the bank. I couldn't
- see but a little ways, but I went poking along over
- rough ground for a quarter of a mile or more, and
- then I run across a big old-fashioned double log-house
- before I noticed it. I was going to rush by and get
- away, but a lot of dogs jumped out and went to howl-
- ing and barking at me, and I knowed better than to
- move another peg.
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
-
- IN about a minute somebody spoke out of a window
- without putting his head out, and says:
-
- "Be done, boys! Who's there?"
-
- I says:
-
- "It's me."
-
- "Who's me?"
-
- "George Jackson, sir."
-
- "What do you want?"
-
- "I don't want nothing, sir. I only want to go
- along by, but the dogs won't let me."
-
- "What are you prowling around here this time of
- night for -- hey?"
-
- "I warn't prowling around, sir, I fell overboard off
- of the steamboat."
-
- "Oh, you did, did you? Strike a light there, some-
- body. What did you say your name was?"
-
- "George Jackson, sir. I'm only a boy."
-
- "Look here, if you're telling the truth you needn't
- be afraid -- nobody'll hurt you. But don't try to
- budge; stand right where you are. Rouse out Bob
- and Tom, some of you, and fetch the guns. George
- Jackson, is there anybody with you?"
-
- "No, sir, nobody."
-
- I heard the people stirring around in the house now,
- and see a light. The man sung out:
-
- "Snatch that light away, Betsy, you old fool -- ain't
- you got any sense? Put it on the floor behind the
- front door. Bob, if you and Tom are ready, take
- your places."
-
- "All ready."
-
- "Now, George Jackson, do you know the Shepherd-
- sons?"
-
- "No, sir; I never heard of them."
-
- "Well, that may be so, and it mayn't. Now, all
- ready. Step forward, George Jackson. And mind,
- don't you hurry -- come mighty slow. If there's any-
- body with you, let him keep back -- if he shows him-
- self he'll be shot. Come along now. Come slow;
- push the door open yourself -- just enough to squeeze
- in, d' you hear?"
-
- I didn't hurry; I couldn't if I'd a wanted to. I
- took one slow step at a time and there warn't a sound,
- only I thought I could hear my heart. The dogs were
- as still as the humans, but they followed a little behind
- me. When I got to the three log doorsteps I heard
- them unlocking and unbarring and unbolting. I put
- my hand on the door and pushed it a little and a little
- more till somebody said, "There, that's enough -- put
- your head in." I done it, but I judged they would
- take it off.
-
- The candle was on the floor, and there they all was,
- looking at me, and me at them, for about a quarter of
- a minute: Three big men with guns pointed at me,
- which made me wince, I tell you; the oldest, gray and
- about sixty, the other two thirty or more -- all of them
- fine and handsome -- and the sweetest old gray-headed
- lady, and back of her two young women which I
- couldn't see right well. The old gentleman says:
-
- "There; I reckon it's all right. Come in."
-
- As soon as I was in the old gentleman he locked the
- door and barred it and bolted it, and told the young
- men to come in with their guns, and they all went in a
- big parlor that had a new rag carpet on the floor, and
- got together in a corner that was out of the range of
- the front windows -- there warn't none on the side.
- They held the candle, and took a good look at me,
- and all said, "Why, HE ain't a Shepherdson -- no,
- there ain't any Shepherdson about him." Then the
- old man said he hoped I wouldn't mind being searched
- for arms, because he didn't mean no harm by it -- it
- was only to make sure. So he didn't pry into my
- pockets, but only felt outside with his hands, and said
- it was all right. He told me to make myself easy and
- at home, and tell all about myself; but the old lady
- says:
-
- "Why, bless you, Saul, the poor thing's as wet as
- he can be; and don't you reckon it may be he's
- hungry?"
-
- "True for you, Rachel -- I forgot."
-
- So the old lady says:
-
- "Betsy" (this was a nigger woman), you fly around
- and get him something to eat as quick as you can, poor
- thing; and one of you girls go and wake up Buck and
- tell him -- oh, here he is himself. Buck, take this
- little stranger and get the wet clothes off from him and
- dress him up in some of yours that's dry."
-
- Buck looked about as old as me -- thirteen or four-
- teen or along there, though he was a little bigger than
- me. He hadn't on anything but a shirt, and he was
- very frowzy-headed. He came in gaping and digging
- one fist into his eyes, and he was dragging a gun along
- with the other one. He says:
-
- "Ain't they no Shepherdsons around?"
-
- They said, no, 'twas a false alarm.
-
- "Well," he says, "if they'd a ben some, I reckon
- I'd a got one."
-
- They all laughed, and Bob says:
-
- "Why, Buck, they might have scalped us all, you've
- been so slow in coming."
-
- "Well, nobody come after me, and it ain't right
- I'm always kept down; I don't get no show."
-
- "Never mind, Buck, my boy," says the old man,
- "you'll have show enough, all in good time, don't
- you fret about that. Go 'long with you now, and do
- as your mother told you."
-
- When we got up-stairs to his room he got me a
- coarse shirt and a roundabout and pants of his, and I
- put them on. While I was at it he asked me what my
- name was, but before I could tell him he started to tell
- me about a bluejay and a young rabbit he had catched
- in the woods day before yesterday, and he asked me
- where Moses was when the candle went out. I said I
- didn't know; I hadn't heard about it before, no way.
-
- "Well, guess," he says.
-
- "How'm I going to guess," says I, "when I never
- heard tell of it before?"
-
- "But you can guess, can't you? It's just as easy."
-
- "WHICH candle?" I says.
-
- "Why, any candle," he says.
-
- "I don't know where he was," says I; "where
- was he?"
-
- "Why, he was in the DARK! That's where he was!"
-
- "Well, if you knowed where he was, what did you
- ask me for?"
-
- "Why, blame it, it's a riddle, don't you see? Say,
- how long are you going to stay here? You got to
- stay always. We can just have booming times -- they
- don't have no school now. Do you own a dog?
- I've got a dog -- and he'll go in the river and bring
- out chips that you throw in. Do you like to comb up
- Sundays, and all that kind of foolishness? You bet I
- don't, but ma she makes me. Confound these ole
- britches! I reckon I'd better put 'em on, but I'd
- ruther not, it's so warm. Are you all ready? All
- right. Come along, old hoss."
-
- Cold corn-pone, cold corn-beef, butter and butter-
- milk -- that is what they had for me down there, and
- there ain't nothing better that ever I've come across
- yet. Buck and his ma and all of them smoked cob
- pipes, except the nigger woman, which was gone, and
- the two young women. They all smoked and talked,
- and I eat and talked. The young women had quilts
- around them, and their hair down their backs. They
- all asked me questions, and I told them how pap and
- me and all the family was living on a little farm down
- at the bottom of Arkansaw, and my sister Mary Ann
- run off and got married and never was heard of no
- more, and Bill went to hunt them and he warn't heard
- of no more, and Tom and Mort died, and then there
- warn't nobody but just me and pap left, and he was
- just trimmed down to nothing, on account of his
- troubles; so when he died I took what there was left,
- because the farm didn't belong to us, and started up
- the river, deck passage, and fell overboard; and that
- was how I come to be here. So they said I could
- have a home there as long as I wanted it. Then it
- was most daylight and everybody went to bed, and I
- went to bed with Buck, and when I waked up in the
- morning, drat it all, I had forgot what my name was.
- So I laid there about an hour trying to think, and
- when Buck waked up I says:
-
- "Can you spell, Buck?"
-
- "Yes," he says.
-
- "I bet you can't spell my name," says I.
-
- "I bet you what you dare I can," says he.
-
- "All right," says I, "go ahead."
-
- "G-e-o-r-g-e J-a-x-o-n -- there now," he says.
-
- "Well," says I, "you done it, but I didn't think
- you could. It ain't no slouch of a name to spell --
- right off without studying."
-
- I set it down, private, because somebody might want
- ME to spell it next, and so I wanted to be handy with
- it and rattle it off like I was used to it.
-
- It was a mighty nice family, and a mighty nice
- house, too. I hadn't seen no house out in the country
- before that was so nice and had so much style. It
- didn't have an iron latch on the front door, nor a
- wooden one with a buckskin string, but a brass knob
- to turn, the same as houses in town. There warn't no
- bed in the parlor, nor a sign of a bed; but heaps of
- parlors in towns has beds in them. There was a big
- fireplace that was bricked on the bottom, and the
- bricks was kept clean and red by pouring water on
- them and scrubbing them with another brick; some-
- times they wash them over with red water-paint that
- they call Spanish-brown, same as they do in town.
- They had big brass dog-irons that could hold up a saw-
- log. There was a clock on the middle of the mantel-
- piece, with a picture of a town painted on the bottom
- half of the glass front, and a round place in the middle
- of it for the sun, and you could see the pendulum
- swinging behind it. It was beautiful to hear that clock
- tick; and sometimes when one of these peddlers had
- been along and scoured her up and got her in good
- shape, she would start in and strike a hundred and
- fifty before she got tuckered out. They wouldn't took
- any money for her.
-
- Well, there was a big outlandish parrot on each side
- of the clock, made out of something like chalk, and
- painted up gaudy. By one of the parrots was a cat
- made of crockery, and a crockery dog by the other;
- and when you pressed down on them they squeaked,
- but didn't open their mouths nor look different nor
- interested. They squeaked through underneath. There
- was a couple of big wild-turkey-wing fans spread out
- behind those things. On the table in the middle of
- the room was a kind of a lovely crockery basket that
- bad apples and oranges and peaches and grapes piled
- up in it, which was much redder and yellower and
- prettier than real ones is, but they warn't real because
- you could see where pieces had got chipped off and
- showed the white chalk, or whatever it was, under-
- neath.
-
- This table had a cover made out of beautiful oilcloth,
- with a red and blue spread-eagle painted on it, and a
- painted border all around. It come all the way from
- Philadelphia, they said. There was some books, too,
- piled up perfectly exact, on each corner of the table.
- One was a big family Bible full of pictures. One was
- Pilgrim's Progress, about a man that left his family, it
- didn't say why. I read considerable in it now and
- then. The statements was interesting, but tough.
- Another was Friendship's Offering, full of beautiful
- stuff and poetry; but I didn't read the poetry. An-
- other was Henry Clay's Speeches, and another was
- Dr. Gunn's Family Medicine, which told you all about
- what to do if a body was sick or dead. There was a
- hymn book, and a lot of other books. And there was
- nice split-bottom chairs, and perfectly sound, too --
- not bagged down in the middle and busted, like an
- old basket.
-
- They had pictures hung on the walls -- mainly
- Washingtons and Lafayettes, and battles, and High-
- land Marys, and one called "Signing the Declaration."
- There was some that they called crayons, which one of
- the daughters which was dead made her own self when
- she was only fifteen years old. They was different
- from any pictures I ever see before -- blacker, mostly,
- than is common. One was a woman in a slim black
- dress, belted small under the armpits, with bulges like
- a cabbage in the middle of the sleeves, and a large
- black scoop-shovel bonnet with a black veil, and white
- slim ankles crossed about with black tape, and very
- wee black slippers, like a chisel, and she was leaning
- pensive on a tombstone on her right elbow, under a
- weeping willow, and her other hand hanging down her
- side holding a white handkerchief and a reticule, and
- underneath the picture it said "Shall I Never See Thee
- More Alas." Another one was a young lady with her
- hair all combed up straight to the top of her head, and
- knotted there in front of a comb like a chair-back, and
- she was crying into a handkerchief and had a dead
- bird laying on its back in her other hand with its heels
- up, and underneath the picture it said "I Shall Never
- Hear Thy Sweet Chirrup More Alas." There was one
- where a young lady was at a window looking up at the
- moon, and tears running down her cheeks; and she
- had an open letter in one hand with black sealing wax
- showing on one edge of it, and she was mashing a
- locket with a chain to it against her mouth, and under-
- neath the picture it said "And Art Thou Gone Yes
- Thou Art Gone Alas." These was all nice pictures, I
- reckon, but I didn't somehow seem to take to them,
- because if ever I was down a little they always give me
- the fan-tods. Everybody was sorry she died, because
- she had laid out a lot more of these pictures to do,
- and a body could see by what she had done what they
- had lost. But I reckoned that with her disposition she
- was having a better time in the graveyard. She was
- at work on what they said was her greatest picture
- when she took sick, and every day and every night it
- was her prayer to be allowed to live till she got it
- done, but she never got the chance. It was a picture
- of a young woman in a long white gown, standing on
- the rail of a bridge all ready to jump off, with her hair
- all down her back, and looking up to the moon, with
- the tears running down her face, and she had two arms
- folded across her breast, and two arms stretched out in
- front, and two more reaching up towards the moon --
- and the idea was to see which pair would look best,
- and then scratch out all the other arms; but, as I was
- saying, she died before she got her mind made up,
- and now they kept this picture over the head of the
- bed in her room, and every time her birthday come
- they hung flowers on it. Other times it was hid with
- a little curtain. The young woman in the picture had a
- kind of a nice sweet face, but there was so many arms
- it made her look too spidery, seemed to me.
-
- This young girl kept a scrap-book when she was
- alive, and used to paste obituaries and accidents and
- cases of patient suffering in it out of the Presbyterian
- Observer, and write poetry after them out of her own
- head. It was very good poetry. This is what she
- wrote about a boy by the name of Stephen Dowling
- Bots that fell down a well and was drownded:
-
- ODE TO STEPHEN DOWLING BOTS, DEC'D
-
- And did young Stephen sicken,
- And did young Stephen die?
- And did the sad hearts thicken,
- And did the mourners cry?
-
- No; such was not the fate of
- Young Stephen Dowling Bots;
- Though sad hearts round him thickened,
- 'Twas not from sickness' shots.
-
- No whooping-cough did rack his frame,
- Nor measles drear with spots;
- Not these impaired the sacred name
- Of Stephen Dowling Bots.
-
- Despised love struck not with woe
- That head of curly knots,
- Nor stomach troubles laid him low,
- Young Stephen Dowling Bots.
-
- O no. Then list with tearful eye,
- Whilst I his fate do tell.
- His soul did from this cold world fly
- By falling down a well.
-
- They got him out and emptied him;
- Alas it was too late;
- His spirit was gone for to sport aloft
- In the realms of the good and great.
-
- If Emmeline Grangerford could make poetry like
- that before she was fourteen, there ain't no telling
- what she could a done by and by. Buck said she
- could rattle off poetry like nothing. She didn't ever
- have to stop to think. He said she would slap down a
- line, and if she couldn't find anything to rhyme with it
- would just scratch it out and slap down another one,
- and go ahead. She warn't particular; she could write
- about anything you choose to give her to write about
- just so it was sadful. Every time a man died, or a
- woman died, or a child died, she would be on hand
- with her "tribute" before he was cold. She called
- them tributes. The neighbors said it was the doctor
- first, then Emmeline, then the undertaker -- the under-
- taker never got in ahead of Emmeline but once, and
- then she hung fire on a rhyme for the dead person's
- name, which was Whistler. She warn't ever the same
- after that; she never complained, but she kinder pined
- away and did not live long. Poor thing, many's the
- time I made myself go up to the little room that used
- to be hers and get out her poor old scrap-book and
- read in it when her pictures had been aggravating me
- and I had soured on her a little. I liked all that
- family, dead ones and all, and warn't going to let any-
- thing come between us. Poor Emmeline made poetry
- about all the dead people when she was alive, and it
- didn't seem right that there warn't nobody to make
- some about her now she was gone; so I tried to sweat
- out a verse or two myself, but I couldn't seem to make
- it go somehow. They kept Emmeline's room trim
- and nice, and all the things fixed in it just the way
- she liked to have them when she was alive, and nobody
- ever slept there. The old lady took care of the room
- herself, though there was plenty of niggers, and she
- sewed there a good deal and read her Bible there
- mostly.
-
- Well, as I was saying about the parlor, there was
- beautiful curtains on the windows: white, with pictures
- painted on them of castles with vines all down the
- walls, and cattle coming down to drink. There was a
- little old piano, too, that had tin pans in it, I reckon,
- and nothing was ever so lovely as to hear the young
- ladies sing "The Last Link is Broken" and play "The
- Battle of Prague" on it. The walls of all the rooms
- was plastered, and most had carpets on the floors, and
- the whole house was whitewashed on the outside.
-
- It was a double house, and the big open place be-
- twixt them was roofed and floored, and sometimes the
- table was set there in the middle of the day, and it was
- a cool, comfortable place. Nothing couldn't be better.
- And warn't the cooking good, and just bushels of it
- too!
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
-
- COL. GRANGERFORD was a gentleman, you see.
- He was a gentleman all over; and so was his
- family. He was well born, as the saying is, and that's
- worth as much in a man as it is in a horse, so the
- Widow Douglas said, and nobody ever denied that she
- was of the first aristocracy in our town; and pap he
- always said it, too, though he warn't no more quality
- than a mudcat himself. Col. Grangerford was very tall
- and very slim, and had a darkish-paly complexion, not
- a sign of red in it anywheres; he was clean shaved
- every morning all over his thin face, and he had the
- thinnest kind of lips, and the thinnest kind of nostrils,
- and a high nose, and heavy eyebrows, and the blackest
- kind of eyes, sunk so deep back that they seemed like
- they was looking out of caverns at you, as you may
- say. His forehead was high, and his hair was black
- and straight and hung to his shoulders. His hands
- was long and thin, and every day of his life he put on
- a clean shirt and a full suit from head to foot made
- out of linen so white it hurt your eyes to look at it;
- and on Sundays he wore a blue tail-coat with brass
- buttons on it. He carried a mahogany cane with a
- silver head to it. There warn't no frivolishness about
- him, not a bit, and he warn't ever loud. He was as
- kind as he could be -- you could feel that, you know,
- and so you had confidence. Sometimes he smiled,
- and it was good to see; but when he straightened him-
- self up like a liberty-pole, and the lightning begun to
- flicker out from under his eyebrows, you wanted to
- climb a tree first, and find out what the matter was
- afterwards. He didn't ever have to tell anybody to
- mind their manners -- everybody was always good-
- mannered where he was. Everybody loved to have
- him around, too; he was sunshine most always -- I
- mean he made it seem like good weather. When he
- turned into a cloudbank it was awful dark for half a
- minute, and that was enough; there wouldn't nothing
- go wrong again for a week.
-
- When him and the old lady come down in the morn-
- ing all the family got up out of their chairs and give
- them good-day, and didn't set down again till they had
- set down. Then Tom and Bob went to the sideboard
- where the decanter was, and mixed a glass of bitters
- and handed it to him, and he held it in his hand and
- waited till Tom's and Bob's was mixed, and then they
- bowed and said, "Our duty to you, sir, and madam;"
- and THEY bowed the least bit in the world and said
- thank you, and so they drank, all three, and Bob and
- Tom poured a spoonful of water on the sugar and the
- mite of whisky or apple brandy in the bottom of their
- tumblers, and give it to me and Buck, and we drank to
- the old people too.
-
- Bob was the oldest and Tom next -- tall, beautiful
- men with very broad shoulders and brown faces, and
- long black hair and black eyes. They dressed in white
- linen from head to foot, like the old gentleman, and
- wore broad Panama hats.
-
- Then there was Miss Charlotte; she was twenty-
- five, and tall and proud and grand, but as good as she
- could be when she warn't stirred up; but when she
- was she had a look that would make you wilt in your
- tracks, like her father. She was beautiful.
-
- So was her sister, Miss Sophia, but it was a different
- kind. She was gentle and sweet like a dove, and she
- was only twenty.
-
- Each person had their own nigger to wait on them --
- Buck too. My nigger had a monstrous easy time, be-
- cause I warn't used to having anybody do anything
- for me, but Buck's was on the jump most of the time.
-
- This was all there was of the family now, but there
- used to be more -- three sons; they got killed; and
- Emmeline that died.
-
- The old gentleman owned a lot of farms and over a
- hundred niggers. Sometimes a stack of people would
- come there, horseback, from ten or fifteen mile around,
- and stay five or six days, and have such junketings
- round about and on the river, and dances and picnics
- in the woods daytimes, and balls at the house nights.
- These people was mostly kinfolks of the family. The
- men brought their guns with them. It was a hand-
- some lot of quality, I tell you.
-
- There was another clan of aristocracy around there
- -- five or six families -- mostly of the name of Shep-
- herdson. They was as high-toned and well born and
- rich and grand as the tribe of Grangerfords. The
- Shepherdsons and Grangerfords used the same steam-
- boat landing, which was about two mile above our
- house; so sometimes when I went up there with a lot
- of our folks I used to see a lot of the Shepherdsons
- there on their fine horses.
-
- One day Buck and me was away out in the woods
- hunting, and heard a horse coming. We was crossing
- the road. Buck says:
-
- "Quick! Jump for the woods!"
-
- We done it, and then peeped down the woods
- through the leaves. Pretty soon a splendid young
- man come galloping down the road, setting his horse
- easy and looking like a soldier. He had his gun across
- his pommel. I had seen him before. It was young
- Harney Shepherdson. I heard Buck's gun go off at
- my ear, and Harney's hat tumbled off from his head.
- He grabbed his gun and rode straight to the place
- where we was hid. But we didn't wait. We started
- through the woods on a run. The woods warn't thick,
- so I looked over my shoulder to dodge the bullet, and
- twice I seen Harney cover Buck with his gun; and
- then he rode away the way he come -- to get his hat,
- I reckon, but I couldn't see. We never stopped run-
- ning till we got home. The old gentleman's eyes
- blazed a minute -- 'twas pleasure, mainly, I judged --
- then his face sort of smoothed down, and he says,
- kind of gentle:
-
- "I don't like that shooting from behind a bush.
- Why didn't you step into the road, my boy?"
-
- "The Shepherdsons don't, father. They always
- take advantage."
-
- Miss Charlotte she held her head up like a queen
- while Buck was telling his tale, and her nostrils spread
- and her eyes snapped. The two young men looked
- dark, but never said nothing. Miss Sophia she turned
- pale, but the color come back when she found the
- man warn't hurt.
-
- Soon as I could get Buck down by the corn-cribs
- under the trees by ourselves, I says:
-
- "Did you want to kill him, Buck?"
-
- "Well, I bet I did."
-
- "What did he do to you?"
-
- "Him? He never done nothing to me."
-
- "Well, then, what did you want to kill him for?"
-
- "Why, nothing -- only it's on account of the feud."
-
- "What's a feud?"
-
- "Why, where was you raised? Don't you know
- what a feud is?"
-
- "Never heard of it before -- tell me about it."
-
- "Well," says Buck, "a feud is this way: A man
- has a quarrel with another man, and kills him; then
- that other man's brother kills HIM; then the other
- brothers, on both sides, goes for one another; then
- the COUSINS chip in -- and by and by everybody's killed
- off, and there ain't no more feud. But it's kind of
- slow, and takes a long time."
-
- "Has this one been going on long, Buck?"
-
- "Well, I should RECKON! It started thirty year ago,
- or som'ers along there. There was trouble 'bout
- something, and then a lawsuit to settle it; and the
- suit went agin one of the men, and so he up and shot
- the man that won the suit -- which he would naturally
- do, of course. Anybody would."
-
- "What was the trouble about, Buck? -- land?"
-
- "I reckon maybe -- I don't know."
-
- "Well, who done the shooting? Was it a Granger-
- ford or a Shepherdson?"
-
- "Laws, how do I know? It was so long ago."
-
- "Don't anybody know?"
-
- "Oh, yes, pa knows, I reckon, and some of the
- other old people; but they don't know now what the
- row was about in the first place."
-
- "Has there been many killed, Buck?"
-
- "Yes; right smart chance of funerals. But they
- don't always kill. Pa's got a few buckshot in him;
- but he don't mind it 'cuz he don't weigh much, any-
- way. Bob's been carved up some with a bowie, and
- Tom's been hurt once or twice."
-
- "Has anybody been killed this year, Buck?"
-
- "Yes; we got one and they got one. 'Bout three
- months ago my cousin Bud, fourteen year old, was
- riding through the woods on t'other side of the river,
- and didn't have no weapon with him, which was blame'
- foolishness, and in a lonesome place he hears a horse
- a-coming behind him, and sees old Baldy Shepherdson
- a-linkin' after him with his gun in his hand and his
- white hair a-flying in the wind; and 'stead of jumping
- off and taking to the brush, Bud 'lowed he could out-
- run him; so they had it, nip and tuck, for five mile or
- more, the old man a-gaining all the time; so at last
- Bud seen it warn't any use, so he stopped and faced
- around so as to have the bullet holes in front, you
- know, and the old man he rode up and shot him
- down. But he didn't git much chance to enjoy his
- luck, for inside of a week our folks laid HIM out."
-
- "I reckon that old man was a coward, Buck."
-
- "I reckon he WARN'T a coward. Not by a blame'
- sight. There ain't a coward amongst them Shepherd-
- sons -- not a one. And there ain't no cowards amongst
- the Grangerfords either. Why, that old man kep' up
- his end in a fight one day for half an hour against
- three Grangerfords, and come out winner. They was
- all a-horseback; he lit off of his horse and got behind
- a little woodpile, and kep' his horse before him to stop
- the bullets; but the Grangerfords stayed on their
- horses and capered around the old man, and peppered
- away at him, and he peppered away at them. Him
- and his horse both went home pretty leaky and crip-
- pled, but the Grangerfords had to be FETCHED home --
- and one of 'em was dead, and another died the next
- day. No, sir; if a body's out hunting for cowards he
- don't want to fool away any time amongst them Shep-
- herdsons, becuz they don't breed any of that KIND."
-
- Next Sunday we all went to church, about three
- mile, everybody a-horseback. The men took their
- guns along, so did Buck, and kept them between their
- knees or stood them handy against the wall. The
- Shepherdsons done the same. It was pretty ornery
- preaching -- all about brotherly love, and such-like
- tiresomeness; but everybody said it was a good ser-
- mon, and they all talked it over going home, and had
- such a powerful lot to say about faith and good works
- and free grace and preforeordestination, and I don't
- know what all, that it did seem to me to be one of the
- roughest Sundays I had run across yet.
-
- About an hour after dinner everybody was dozing
- around, some in their chairs and some in their rooms,
- and it got to be pretty dull. Buck and a dog was
- stretched out on the grass in the sun sound asleep. I
- went up to our room, and judged I would take a nap
- myself. I found that sweet Miss Sophia standing in
- her door, which was next to ours, and she took me in
- her room and shut the door very soft, and asked me if
- I liked her, and I said I did; and she asked me if I
- would do something for her and not tell anybody,
- and I said I would. Then she said she'd forgot her
- Testament, and left it in the seat at church between two
- other books, and would I slip out quiet and go there
- and fetch it to her, and not say nothing to nobody. I
- said I would. So I slid out and slipped off up the
- road, and there warn't anybody at the church, except
- maybe a hog or two, for there warn't any lock on the
- door, and hogs likes a puncheon floor in summer-time
- because it's cool. If you notice, most folks don't go
- to church only when they've got to; but a hog is
- different.
-
- Says I to myself, something's up; it ain't natural
- for a girl to be in such a sweat about a Testament.
- So I give it a shake, and out drops a little piece of
- paper with "HALF-PAST TWO" wrote on it with a pencil.
- I ransacked it, but couldn't find anything else. I
- couldn't make anything out of that, so I put the paper
- in the book again, and when I got home and upstairs
- there was Miss Sophia in her door waiting for me.
- She pulled me in and shut the door; then she looked
- in the Testament till she found the paper, and as soon
- as she read it she looked glad; and before a body
- could think she grabbed me and give me a squeeze,
- and said I was the best boy in the world, and not to
- tell anybody. She was mighty red in the face for a
- minute, and her eyes lighted up, and it made her
- powerful pretty. I was a good deal astonished, but
- when I got my breath I asked her what the paper was
- about, and she asked me if I had read it, and I said
- no, and she asked me if I could read writing, and I
- told her "no, only coarse-hand," and then she said
- the paper warn't anything but a book-mark to keep
- her place, and I might go and play now.
-
- I went off down to the river, studying over this
- thing, and pretty soon I noticed that my nigger was
- following along behind. When we was out of sight of
- the house he looked back and around a second, and
- then comes a-running, and says:
-
- "Mars Jawge, if you'll come down into de swamp
- I'll show you a whole stack o' water-moccasins."
-
- Thinks I, that's mighty curious; he said that yester-
- day. He oughter know a body don't love water-
- moccasins enough to go around hunting for them.
- What is he up to, anyway? So I says:
-
- "All right; trot ahead."
-
- I followed a half a mile; then he struck out over the
- swamp, and waded ankle deep as much as another
- half-mile. We come to a little flat piece of land which
- was dry and very thick with trees and bushes and
- vines, and he says:
-
- "You shove right in dah jist a few steps, Mars
- Jawge; dah's whah dey is. I's seed 'm befo'; I
- don't k'yer to see 'em no mo'."
-
- Then he slopped right along and went away, and
- pretty soon the trees hid him. I poked into the place
- a-ways and come to a little open patch as big as a
- bedroom all hung around with vines, and found a man
- laying there asleep -- and, by jings, it was my old Jim!
-
- I waked him up, and I reckoned it was going to be
- a grand surprise to him to see me again, but it warn't.
- He nearly cried he was so glad, but he warn't sur-
- prised. Said he swum along behind me that night,
- and heard me yell every time, but dasn't answer, be-
- cause he didn't want nobody to pick HIM up and take
- him into slavery again. Says he:
-
- "I got hurt a little, en couldn't swim fas', so I wuz
- a considable ways behine you towards de las'; when
- you landed I reck'ned I could ketch up wid you on de
- lan' 'dout havin' to shout at you, but when I see dat
- house I begin to go slow. I 'uz off too fur to hear
- what dey say to you -- I wuz 'fraid o' de dogs; but
- when it 'uz all quiet agin I knowed you's in de house,
- so I struck out for de woods to wait for day. Early
- in de mawnin' some er de niggers come along, gwyne
- to de fields, en dey tuk me en showed me dis place,
- whah de dogs can't track me on accounts o' de water,
- en dey brings me truck to eat every night, en tells me
- how you's a-gitt'n along."
-
- "Why didn't you tell my Jack to fetch me here
- sooner, Jim?"
-
- "Well, 'twarn't no use to 'sturb you, Huck, tell we
- could do sumfn -- but we's all right now. I ben a-
- buyin' pots en pans en vittles, as I got a chanst, en a-
- patchin' up de raf' nights when --"
-
- "WHAT raft, Jim?"
-
- "Our ole raf'."
-
- "You mean to say our old raft warn't smashed all
- to flinders?"
-
- "No, she warn't. She was tore up a good deal --
- one en' of her was; but dey warn't no great harm
- done, on'y our traps was mos' all los'. Ef we hadn'
- dive' so deep en swum so fur under water, en de night
- hadn' ben so dark, en we warn't so sk'yerd, en ben
- sich punkin-heads, as de sayin' is, we'd a seed de raf'.
- But it's jis' as well we didn't, 'kase now she's all fixed
- up agin mos' as good as new, en we's got a new lot o'
- stuff, in de place o' what 'uz los'."
-
- "Why, how did you get hold of the raft again, Jim
- -- did you catch her?"
-
- "How I gwyne to ketch her en I out in de woods?
- No; some er de niggers foun' her ketched on a snag
- along heah in de ben', en dey hid her in a crick
- 'mongst de willows, en dey wuz so much jawin' 'bout
- which un 'um she b'long to de mos' dat I come to
- heah 'bout it pooty soon, so I ups en settles de trouble
- by tellin' 'um she don't b'long to none uv um, but to
- you en me; en I ast 'm if dey gwyne to grab a young
- white genlman's propaty, en git a hid'n for it? Den I
- gin 'm ten cents apiece, en dey 'uz mighty well satis-
- fied, en wisht some mo' raf's 'ud come along en make
- 'm rich agin. Dey's mighty good to me, dese niggers
- is, en whatever I wants 'm to do fur me I doan' have
- to ast 'm twice, honey. Dat Jack's a good nigger, en
- pooty smart."
-
- "Yes, he is. He ain't ever told me you was here;
- told me to come, and he'd show me a lot of water-
- moccasins. If anything happens HE ain't mixed up in
- it. He can say he never seen us together, and it 'll
- be the truth."
-
- I don't want to talk much about the next day. I
- reckon I'll cut it pretty short. I waked up about
- dawn, and was a-going to turn over and go to sleep
- again when I noticed how still it was -- didn't seem
- to be anybody stirring. That warn't usual. Next I
- noticed that Buck was up and gone. Well, I gets up,
- a-wondering, and goes down stairs -- nobody around;
- everything as still as a mouse. Just the same outside.
- Thinks I, what does it mean? Down by the wood-
- pile I comes across my Jack, and says:
-
- "What's it all about?"
-
- Says he:
-
- "Don't you know, Mars Jawge?"
-
- "No," says I, "I don't."
-
- "Well, den, Miss Sophia's run off! 'deed she has.
- She run off in de night some time -- nobody don't
- know jis' when; run off to get married to dat young
- Harney Shepherdson, you know -- leastways, so dey
- 'spec. De fambly foun' it out 'bout half an hour
- ago -- maybe a little mo' -- en' I TELL you dey warn't
- no time los'. Sich another hurryin' up guns en hosses
- YOU never see! De women folks has gone for to stir
- up de relations, en ole Mars Saul en de boys tuck dey
- guns en rode up de river road for to try to ketch dat
- young man en kill him 'fo' he kin git acrost de river
- wid Miss Sophia. I reck'n dey's gwyne to be mighty
- rough times."
-
- "Buck went off 'thout waking me up."
-
- "Well, I reck'n he DID! Dey warn't gwyne to mix
- you up in it. Mars Buck he loaded up his gun en
- 'lowed he's gwyne to fetch home a Shepherdson or
- bust. Well, dey'll be plenty un 'm dah, I reck'n, en
- you bet you he'll fetch one ef he gits a chanst."
-
- I took up the river road as hard as I could put. By
- and by I begin to hear guns a good ways off. When
- I came in sight of the log store and the woodpile
- where the steamboats lands I worked along under the
- trees and brush till I got to a good place, and then I
- clumb up into the forks of a cottonwood that was out
- of reach, and watched. There was a wood-rank four
- foot high a little ways in front of the tree, and first I
- was going to hide behind that; but maybe it was
- luckier I didn't.
-
- There was four or five men cavorting around on their
- horses in the open place before the log store, cussing
- and yelling, and trying to get at a couple of young
- chaps that was behind the wood-rank alongside of
- the steamboat landing; but they couldn't come it.
- Every time one of them showed himself on the river
- side of the woodpile he got shot at. The two boys
- was squatting back to back behind the pile, so they
- could watch both ways.
-
- By and by the men stopped cavorting around and
- yelling. They started riding towards the store; then
- up gets one of the boys, draws a steady bead over the
- wood-rank, and drops one of them out of his saddle.
- All the men jumped off of their horses and grabbed the
- hurt one and started to carry him to the store; and
- that minute the two boys started on the run. They
- got half way to the tree I was in before the men
- noticed. Then the men see them, and jumped on
- their horses and took out after them. They gained on
- the boys, but it didn't do no good, the boys had too
- good a start; they got to the woodpile that was in
- front of my tree, and slipped in behind it, and so they
- had the bulge on the men again. One of the boys
- was Buck, and the other was a slim young chap about
- nineteen years old.
-
- The men ripped around awhile, and then rode away.
- As soon as they was out of sight I sung out to Buck
- and told him. He didn't know what to make of my
- voice coming out of the tree at first. He was awful
- surprised. He told me to watch out sharp and let him
- know when the men come in sight again; said they
- was up to some devilment or other -- wouldn't be gone
- long. I wished I was out of that tree, but I dasn't
- come down. Buck begun to cry and rip, and 'lowed
- that him and his cousin Joe (that was the other young
- chap) would make up for this day yet. He said his
- father and his two brothers was killed, and two or
- three of the enemy. Said the Shepherdsons laid for
- them in ambush. Buck said his father and brothers
- ought to waited for their relations -- the Shepherdsons
- was too strong for them. I asked him what was be-
- come of young Harney and Miss Sophia. He said
- they'd got across the river and was safe. I was glad
- of that; but the way Buck did take on because he
- didn't manage to kill Harney that day he shot at him
- -- I hain't ever heard anything like it.
-
- All of a sudden, bang! bang! bang! goes three or
- four guns -- the men had slipped around through the
- woods and come in from behind without their horses!
- The boys jumped for the river -- both of them hurt --
- and as they swum down the current the men run along
- the bank shooting at them and singing out, "Kill
- them, kill them!" It made me so sick I most fell out
- of the tree. I ain't a-going to tell ALL that happened --
- it would make me sick again if I was to do that. I
- wished I hadn't ever come ashore that night to see
- such things. I ain't ever going to get shut of them --
- lots of times I dream about them.
-
- I stayed in the tree till it begun to get dark, afraid
- to come down. Sometimes I heard guns away off in
- the woods; and twice I seen little gangs of men gallop
- past the log store with guns; so I reckoned the trouble
- was still a-going on. I was mighty downhearted; so I
- made up my mind I wouldn't ever go anear that house
- again, because I reckoned I was to blame, somehow.
- I judged that that piece of paper meant that Miss
- Sophia was to meet Harney somewheres at half-past
- two and run off; and I judged I ought to told her
- father about that paper and the curious way she acted,
- and then maybe he would a locked her up, and this
- awful mess wouldn't ever happened.
-
- When I got down out of the tree I crept along down
- the river bank a piece, and found the two bodies laying
- in the edge of the water, and tugged at them till I got
- them ashore; then I covered up their faces, and got
- away as quick as I could. I cried a little when I was
- covering up Buck's face, for he was mighty good to me.
-
- It was just dark now. I never went near the house,
- but struck through the woods and made for the
- swamp. Jim warn't on his island, so I tramped off in
- a hurry for the crick, and crowded through the willows,
- red-hot to jump aboard and get out of that awful
- country. The raft was gone! My souls, but I was
- scared! I couldn't get my breath for most a minute.
- Then I raised a yell. A voice not twenty-five foot
- from me says:
-
- "Good lan'! is dat you, honey? Doan' make no
- noise."
-
- It was Jim's voice -- nothing ever sounded so good
- before. I run along the bank a piece and got aboard,
- and Jim he grabbed me and hugged me, he was so glad
- to see me. He says:
-
- "Laws bless you, chile, I 'uz right down sho' you's
- dead agin. Jack's been heah; he say he reck'n you's
- ben shot, kase you didn' come home no mo'; so I's
- jes' dis minute a startin' de raf' down towards de mouf
- er de crick, so's to be all ready for to shove out en
- leave soon as Jack comes agin en tells me for certain
- you IS dead. Lawsy, I's mighty glad to git you back
- again, honey.
-
- I says:
-
- "All right -- that's mighty good; they won't find
- me, and they'll think I've been killed, and floated down
- the river -- there's something up there that 'll help them
- think so -- so don't you lose no time, Jim, but just
- shove off for the big water as fast as ever you can."
-
- I never felt easy till the raft was two mile below
- there and out in the middle of the Mississippi. Then
- we hung up our signal lantern, and judged that we was
- free and safe once more. I hadn't had a bite to eat
- since yesterday, so Jim he got out some corn-dodgers
- and buttermilk, and pork and cabbage and greens --
- there ain't nothing in the world so good when it's
- cooked right -- and whilst I eat my supper we talked
- and had a good time. I was powerful glad to get
- away from the feuds, and so was Jim to get away from
- the swamp. We said there warn't no home like a
- raft, after all. Other places do seem so cramped up
- and smothery, but a raft don't. You feel mighty free
- and easy and comfortable on a raft.
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
-
- TWO or three days and nights went by; I reckon I
- might say they swum by, they slid along so quiet
- and smooth and lovely. Here is the way we put in
- the time. It was a monstrous big river down there --
- sometimes a mile and a half wide; we run nights, and
- laid up and hid daytimes; soon as night was most
- gone we stopped navigating and tied up -- nearly
- always in the dead water under a towhead; and then
- cut young cottonwoods and willows, and hid the raft
- with them. Then we set out the lines. Next we slid
- into the river and had a swim, so as to freshen up and
- cool off; then we set down on the sandy bottom where
- the water was about knee deep, and watched the day-
- light come. Not a sound anywheres -- perfectly still
- -- just like the whole world was asleep, only sometimes
- the bullfrogs a-cluttering, maybe. The first thing to
- see, looking away over the water, was a kind of dull
- line -- that was the woods on t'other side; you
- couldn't make nothing else out; then a pale place in
- the sky; then more paleness spreading around; then
- the river softened up away off, and warn't black any
- more, but gray; you could see little dark spots drifting
- along ever so far away -- trading scows, and such
- things; and long black streaks -- rafts; sometimes
- you could hear a sweep screaking; or jumbled up
- voices, it was so still, and sounds come so far; and by
- and by you could see a streak on the water which you
- know by the look of the streak that there's a snag
- there in a swift current which breaks on it and makes
- that streak look that way; and you see the mist curl
- up off of the water, and the east reddens up, and the
- river, and you make out a log-cabin in the edge of
- the woods, away on the bank on t'other side of the
- river, being a woodyard, likely, and piled by them
- cheats so you can throw a dog through it anywheres;
- then the nice breeze springs up, and comes fanning
- you from over there, so cool and fresh and sweet to
- smell on account of the woods and the flowers; but
- sometimes not that way, because they've left dead fish
- laying around, gars and such, and they do get pretty
- rank; and next you've got the full day, and every-
- thing smiling in the sun, and the song-birds just
- going it!
-
- A little smoke couldn't be noticed now, so we would
- take some fish off of the lines and cook up a hot break-
- fast. And afterwards we would watch the lonesome-
- ness of the river, and kind of lazy along, and by and
- by lazy off to sleep. Wake up by and by, and look to
- see what done it, and maybe see a steamboat coughing
- along up-stream, so far off towards the other side you
- couldn't tell nothing about her only whether she was a
- stern-wheel or side-wheel; then for about an hour there
- wouldn't be nothing to hear nor nothing to see -- just
- solid lonesomeness. Next you'd see a raft sliding by,
- away off yonder, and maybe a galoot on it chopping,
- because they're most always doing it on a raft; you'd
- see the axe flash and come down -- you don't
- hear nothing; you see that axe go up again, and by
- the time it's above the man's head then you hear the
- K'CHUNK! -- it had took all that time to come over the
- water. So we would put in the day, lazying around,
- listening to the stillness. Once there was a thick fog,
- and the rafts and things that went by was beating tin
- pans so the steamboats wouldn't run over them. A
- scow or a raft went by so close we could hear them
- talking and cussing and laughing -- heard them plain;
- but we couldn't see no sign of them; it made you feel
- crawly; it was like spirits carrying on that way in the
- air. Jim said he believed it was spirits; but I says:
-
- "No; spirits wouldn't say, 'Dern the dern fog.'"
-
- Soon as it was night out we shoved; when we got
- her out to about the middle we let her alone, and let
- her float wherever the current wanted her to; then we
- lit the pipes, and dangled our legs in the water, and
- talked about all kinds of things -- we was always
- naked, day and night, whenever the mosquitoes would
- let us -- the new clothes Buck's folks made for me was
- too good to be comfortable, and besides I didn't go
- much on clothes, nohow.
-
- Sometimes we'd have that whole river all to ourselves
- for the longest time. Yonder was the banks and the
- islands, across the water; and maybe a spark -- which
- was a candle in a cabin window; and sometimes on the
- water you could see a spark or two -- on a raft or a
- scow, you know; and maybe you could hear a fiddle
- or a song coming over from one of them crafts. It's
- lovely to live on a raft. We had the sky up there, all
- speckled with stars, and we used to lay on our backs
- and look up at them, and discuss about whether they
- was made or only just happened. Jim he allowed
- they was made, but I allowed they happened; I judged
- it would have took too long to MAKE so many. Jim
- said the moon could a LAID them; well, that looked
- kind of reasonable, so I didn't say nothing against it,
- because I've seen a frog lay most as many, so of
- course it could be done. We used to watch the stars
- that fell, too, and see them streak down. Jim allowed
- they'd got spoiled and was hove out of the nest.
-
- Once or twice of a night we would see a steamboat
- slipping along in the dark, and now and then she
- would belch a whole world of sparks up out of her
- chimbleys, and they would rain down in the river and
- look awful pretty; then she would turn a corner and
- her lights would wink out and her powwow shut off
- and leave the river still again; and by and by her
- waves would get to us, a long time after she was gone,
- and joggle the raft a bit, and after that you wouldn't
- hear nothing for you couldn't tell how long, except
- maybe frogs or something.
-
- After midnight the people on shore went to bed,
- and then for two or three hours the shores was black --
- no more sparks in the cabin windows. These sparks
- was our clock -- the first one that showed again meant
- morning was coming, so we hunted a place to hide and
- tie up right away.
-
- One morning about daybreak I found a canoe and
- crossed over a chute to the main shore -- it was only
- two hundred yards -- and paddled about a mile up a
- crick amongst the cypress woods, to see if I couldn't
- get some berries. Just as I was passing a place where
- a kind of a cowpath crossed the crick, here comes a
- couple of men tearing up the path as tight as they
- could foot it. I thought I was a goner, for whenever
- anybody was after anybody I judged it was ME -- or
- maybe Jim. I was about to dig out from there in a
- hurry, but they was pretty close to me then, and sung
- out and begged me to save their lives -- said they
- hadn't been doing nothing, and was being chased for
- it -- said there was men and dogs a-coming. They
- wanted to jump right in, but I says:
-
- "Don't you do it. I don't hear the dogs and horses
- yet; you've got time to crowd through the brush and
- get up the crick a little ways; then you take to the
- water and wade down to me and get in -- that'll throw
- the dogs off the scent."
-
- They done it, and soon as they was aboard I lit
- out for our towhead, and in about five or ten minutes
- we heard the dogs and the men away off, shouting.
- We heard them come along towards the crick, but
- couldn't see them; they seemed to stop and fool
- around a while; then, as we got further and further
- away all the time, we couldn't hardly hear them at all;
- by the time we had left a mile of woods behind us and
- struck the river, everything was quiet, and we paddled
- over to the towhead and hid in the cottonwoods and
- was safe.
-
- One of these fellows was about seventy or upwards,
- and had a bald head and very gray whiskers. He had
- an old battered-up slouch hat on, and a greasy blue
- woollen shirt, and ragged old blue jeans britches stuffed
- into his boot-tops, and home-knit galluses -- no, he
- only had one. He had an old long-tailed blue jeans
- coat with slick brass buttons flung over his arm, and
- both of them had big, fat, ratty-looking carpet-bags.
-
- The other fellow was about thirty, and dressed about
- as ornery. After breakfast we all laid off and talked,
- and the first thing that come out was that these chaps
- didn't know one another.
-
- "What got you into trouble?" says the baldhead to
- t'other chap.
-
- "Well, I'd been selling an article to take the tartar
- off the teeth -- and it does take it off, too, and generly
- the enamel along with it -- but I stayed about one
- night longer than I ought to, and was just in the act of
- sliding out when I ran across you on the trail this side
- of town, and you told me they were coming, and begged
- me to help you to get off. So I told you I was ex-
- pecting trouble myself, and would scatter out WITH you.
- That's the whole yarn -- what's yourn?
-
- "Well, I'd ben a-running' a little temperance revival
- thar 'bout a week, and was the pet of the women
- folks, big and little, for I was makin' it mighty warm
- for the rummies, I TELL you, and takin' as much as five
- or six dollars a night -- ten cents a head, children and
- niggers free -- and business a-growin' all the time,
- when somehow or another a little report got around
- last night that I had a way of puttin' in my time with
- a private jug on the sly. A nigger rousted me out
- this mornin', and told me the people was getherin' on
- the quiet with their dogs and horses, and they'd be
- along pretty soon and give me 'bout half an hour's
- start, and then run me down if they could; and if they
- got me they'd tar and feather me and ride me on a
- rail, sure. I didn't wait for no breakfast -- I warn't
- hungry."
-
- "Old man," said the young one, "I reckon we
- might double-team it together; what do you think?"
-
- "I ain't undisposed. What's your line -- mainly?"
-
- "Jour printer by trade; do a little in patent medi-
- cines; theater-actor -- tragedy, you know; take a turn
- to mesmerism and phrenology when there's a chance;
- teach singing-geography school for a change; sling a
- lecture sometimes -- oh, I do lots of things -- most
- anything that comes handy, so it ain't work. What's
- your lay?"
-
- "I've done considerble in the doctoring way in my
- time. Layin' on o' hands is my best holt -- for cancer
- and paralysis, and sich things; and I k'n tell a fortune
- pretty good when I've got somebody along to find out
- the facts for me. Preachin's my line, too, and
- workin' camp-meetin's, and missionaryin' around."
-
- Nobody never said anything for a while; then the
- young man hove a sigh and says:
-
- "Alas!"
-
- "What 're you alassin' about?" says the bald-
- head.
-
- "To think I should have lived to be leading such a
- life, and be degraded down into such company." And
- he begun to wipe the corner of his eye with a rag.
-
- "Dern your skin, ain't the company good enough
- for you?" says the baldhead, pretty pert and uppish.
-
- " Yes, it IS good enough for me; it's as good as I
- deserve; for who fetched me so low when I was so
- high? I did myself. I don't blame YOU, gentlemen --
- far from it; I don't blame anybody. I deserve it all.
- Let the cold world do its worst; one thing I know --
- there's a grave somewhere for me. The world may
- go on just as it's always done, and take everything
- from me -- loved ones, property, everything; but it
- can't take that. Some day I'll lie down in it and for-
- get it all, and my poor broken heart will be at rest."
- He went on a-wiping.
-
- "Drot your pore broken heart," says the baldhead;
- "what are you heaving your pore broken heart at US
- f'r? WE hain't done nothing."
-
- "No, I know you haven't. I ain't blaming you,
- gentlemen. I brought myself down -- yes, I did it
- myself. It's right I should suffer -- perfectly right --
- I don't make any moan."
-
- "Brought you down from whar? Whar was you
- brought down from?"
-
- "Ah, you would not believe me; the world never
- believes -- let it pass -- 'tis no matter. The secret of
- my birth --"
-
- "The secret of your birth! Do you mean to say --"
-
- "Gentlemen," says the young man, very solemn,
- "I will reveal it to you, for I feel I may have confi-
- dence in you. By rights I am a duke!"
-
- Jim's eyes bugged out when he heard that; and I
- reckon mine did, too. Then the baldhead says:
- "No! you can't mean it?"
-
- "Yes. My great-grandfather, eldest son of the
- Duke of Bridgewater, fled to this country about the
- end of the last century, to breathe the pure air of free-
- dom; married here, and died, leaving a son, his own
- father dying about the same time. The second son of
- the late duke seized the titles and estates -- the infant
- real duke was ignored. I am the lineal descendant of
- that infant -- I am the rightful Duke of Bridgewater;
- and here am I, forlorn, torn from my high estate,
- hunted of men, despised by the cold world, ragged,
- worn, heart-broken, and degraded to the companion-
- ship of felons on a raft!"
-
- Jim pitied him ever so much, and so did I. We
- tried to comfort him, but he said it warn't much use,
- he couldn't be much comforted; said if we was a mind
- to acknowledge him, that would do him more good
- than most anything else; so we said we would, if he
- would tell us how. He said we ought to bow when
- we spoke to him, and say "Your Grace," or "My
- Lord," or "Your Lordship" -- and he wouldn't mind
- it if we called him plain "Bridgewater," which, he
- said, was a title anyway, and not a name; and one of
- us ought to wait on him at dinner, and do any little
- thing for him he wanted done.
-
- Well, that was all easy, so we done it. All through
- dinner Jim stood around and waited on him, and says,
- "Will yo' Grace have some o' dis or some o' dat?"
- and so on, and a body could see it was mighty pleasing
- to him.
-
- But the old man got pretty silent by and by -- didn't
- have much to say, and didn't look pretty comfortable
- over all that petting that was going on around that
- duke. He seemed to have something on his mind.
- So, along in the afternoon, he says:
-
- "Looky here, Bilgewater," he says, "I'm nation
- sorry for you, but you ain't the only person that's had
- troubles like that."
-
- "No?"
-
- "No you ain't. You ain't the only person that's
- ben snaked down wrongfully out'n a high place."
-
- "Alas!"
-
- "No, you ain't the only person that's had a secret
- of his birth." And, by jings, HE begins to cry.
-
- "Hold! What do you mean?"
-
- "Bilgewater, kin I trust you?" says the old man,
- still sort of sobbing.
-
- "To the bitter death!" He took the old man by
- the hand and squeezed it, and says, "That secret of
- your being: speak!"
-
- "Bilgewater, I am the late Dauphin!"
-
- You bet you, Jim and me stared this time. Then
- the duke says:
-
- "You are what?"
-
- "Yes, my friend, it is too true -- your eyes is look-
- in' at this very moment on the pore disappeared
- Dauphin, Looy the Seventeen, son of Looy the Six-
- teen and Marry Antonette."
-
- "You! At your age! No! You mean you're
- the late Charlemagne; you must be six or seven hun-
- dred years old, at the very least."
-
- "Trouble has done it, Bilgewater, trouble has done
- it; trouble has brung these gray hairs and this prema-
- ture balditude. Yes, gentlemen, you see before you,
- in blue jeans and misery, the wanderin', exiled, tram-
- pled-on, and sufferin' rightful King of France."
-
- Well, he cried and took on so that me and Jim
- didn't know hardly what to do, we was so sorry -- and
- so glad and proud we'd got him with us, too. So we
- set in, like we done before with the duke, and tried to
- comfort HIM. But he said it warn't no use, nothing
- but to be dead and done with it all could do him any
- good; though he said it often made him feel easier and
- better for a while if people treated him according to
- his rights, and got down on one knee to speak to him,
- and always called him "Your Majesty," and waited
- on him first at meals, and didn't set down in his
- presence till he asked them. So Jim and me set to
- majestying him, and doing this and that and t'other
- for him, and standing up till he told us we might set
- down. This done him heaps of good, and so he got
- cheerful and comfortable. But the duke kind of soured
- on him, and didn't look a bit satisfied with the way
- things was going; still, the king acted real friendly
- towards him, and said the duke's great-grandfather
- and all the other Dukes of Bilgewater was a good deal
- thought of by HIS father, and was allowed to come to
- the palace considerable; but the duke stayed huffy a
- good while, till by and by the king says:
-
- "Like as not we got to be together a blamed long
- time on this h-yer raft, Bilgewater, and so what's the
- use o' your bein' sour? It 'll only make things on-
- comfortable. It ain't my fault I warn't born a duke,
- it ain't your fault you warn't born a king -- so what's
- the use to worry? Make the best o' things the way
- you find 'em, says I -- that's my motto. This ain't
- no bad thing that we've struck here -- plenty grub
- and an easy life -- come, give us your hand, duke, and
- le's all be friends."
-
- The duke done it, and Jim and me was pretty glad
- to see it. It took away all the uncomfortableness and
- we felt mighty good over it, because it would a been a
- miserable business to have any unfriendliness on the
- raft; for what you want, above all things, on a raft, is
- for everybody to be satisfied, and feel right and kind
- towards the others.
-
- It didn't take me long to make up my mind that
- these liars warn't no kings nor dukes at all, but just
- low-down humbugs and frauds. But I never said
- nothing, never let on; kept it to myself; it's the best
- way; then you don't have no quarrels, and don't get
- into no trouble. If they wanted us to call them kings
- and dukes, I hadn't no objections, 'long as it would
- keep peace in the family; and it warn't no use to tell
- Jim, so I didn't tell him. If I never learnt nothing
- else out of pap, I learnt that the best way to get along
- with his kind of people is to let them have their own
- way.
-
-
- CHAPTER XX.
-
- THEY asked us considerable many questions; wanted
- to know what we covered up the raft that way
- for, and laid by in the daytime instead of running --
- was Jim a runaway nigger? Says I:
-
- "Goodness sakes! would a runaway nigger run
- SOUTH?"
-
- No, they allowed he wouldn't. I had to account
- for things some way, so I says:
-
- "My folks was living in Pike County, in Missouri,
- where I was born, and they all died off but me and pa
- and my brother Ike. Pa, he 'lowed he'd break up
- and go down and live with Uncle Ben, who's got a
- little one-horse place on the river, forty-four mile
- below Orleans. Pa was pretty poor, and had some
- debts; so when he'd squared up there warn't nothing
- left but sixteen dollars and our nigger, Jim. That
- warn't enough to take us fourteen hundred mile, deck
- passage nor no other way. Well, when the river rose
- pa had a streak of luck one day; he ketched this piece
- of a raft; so we reckoned we'd go down to Orleans on
- it. Pa's luck didn't hold out; a steamboat run over
- the forrard corner of the raft one night, and we all
- went overboard and dove under the wheel; Jim and
- me come up all right, but pa was drunk, and Ike was
- only four years old, so they never come up no more.
- Well, for the next day or two we had considerable
- trouble, because people was always coming out in skiffs
- and trying to take Jim away from me, saying they be-
- lieved he was a runaway nigger. We don't run day-
- times no more now; nights they don't bother us."
-
- The duke says:
-
- "Leave me alone to cipher out a way so we can run
- in the daytime if we want to. I'll think the thing
- over -- I'll invent a plan that'll fix it. We'll let it
- alone for to-day, because of course we don't want to
- go by that town yonder in daylight -- it mightn't be
- healthy."
-
- Towards night it begun to darken up and look like
- rain; the heat lightning was squirting around low down
- in the sky, and the leaves was beginning to shiver -- it
- was going to be pretty ugly, it was easy to see that.
- So the duke and the king went to overhauling our
- wigwam, to see what the beds was like. My bed was
- a straw tickQbetter than Jim's, which was a corn-
- shuck tick; there's always cobs around about in a
- shuck tick, and they poke into you and hurt; and
- when you roll over the dry shucks sound like you was
- rolling over in a pile of dead leaves; it makes such a
- rustling that you wake up. Well, the duke allowed he
- would take my bed; but the king allowed he wouldn't.
- He says:
-
- "I should a reckoned the difference in rank would a
- sejested to you that a corn-shuck bed warn't just fitten
- for me to sleep on. Your Grace 'll take the shuck
- bed yourself."
-
- Jim and me was in a sweat again for a minute, being
- afraid there was going to be some more trouble
- amongst them; so we was pretty glad when the duke
- says:
-
- "'Tis my fate to be always ground into the mire
- under the iron heel of oppression. Misfortune has
- broken my once haughty spirit; I yield, I submit; 'tis
- my fate. I am alone in the world -- let me suffer;
- can bear it."
-
- We got away as soon as it was good and dark. The
- king told us to stand well out towards the middle of
- the river, and not show a light till we got a long ways
- below the town. We come in sight of the little bunch
- of lights by and by -- that was the town, you know --
- and slid by, about a half a mile out, all right. When
- we was three-quarters of a mile below we hoisted up
- our signal lantern; and about ten o'clock it come on
- to rain and blow and thunder and lighten like every-
- thing; so the king told us to both stay on watch till
- the weather got better; then him and the duke crawled
- into the wigwam and turned in for the night. It was
- my watch below till twelve, but I wouldn't a turned in
- anyway if I'd had a bed, because a body don't see
- such a storm as that every day in the week, not by a
- long sight. My souls, how the wind did scream along!
- And every second or two there'd come a glare that lit
- up the white-caps for a half a mile around, and you'd
- see the islands looking dusty through the rain, and the
- trees thrashing around in the wind; then comes a
- H-WHACK! -- bum! bum! bumble-umble-um-bum-bum-
- bum-bum -- and the thunder would go rumbling and
- grumbling away, and quit -- and then RIP comes an-
- other flash and another sockdolager. The waves most
- washed me off the raft sometimes, but I hadn't any
- clothes on, and didn't mind. We didn't have no
- trouble about snags; the lightning was glaring and
- flittering around so constant that we could see them
- plenty soon enough to throw her head this way or that
- and miss them.
-
- I had the middle watch, you know, but I was pretty
- sleepy by that time, so Jim he said he would stand the
- first half of it for me; he was always mighty good
- that way, Jim was. I crawled into the wigwam, but
- the king and the duke had their legs sprawled around
- so there warn't no show for me; so I laid outside -- I
- didn't mind the rain, because it was warm, and the
- waves warn't running so high now. About two they
- come up again, though, and Jim was going to call me;
- but he changed his mind, because he reckoned they
- warn't high enough yet to do any harm; but he was
- mistaken about that, for pretty soon all of a sudden
- along comes a regular ripper and washed me over-
- board. It most killed Jim a-laughing. He was the
- easiest nigger to laugh that ever was, anyway.
-
- I took the watch, and Jim he laid down and snored
- away; and by and by the storm let up for good and
- all; and the first cabin-light that showed I rousted him
- out, and we slid the raft into hiding quarters for the
- day.
-
- The king got out an old ratty deck of cards after
- breakfast, and him and the duke played seven-up a
- while, five cents a game. Then they got tired of it,
- and allowed they would "lay out a campaign," as
- they called it. The duke went down into his carpet-
- bag, and fetched up a lot of little printed bills and
- read them out loud. One bill said, "The celebrated
- Dr. Armand de Montalban, of Paris," would "lecture
- on the Science of Phrenology" at such and such a
- place, on the blank day of blank, at ten cents admis-
- sion, and "furnish charts of character at twenty-five
- cents apiece." The duke said that was HIM. In an-
- other bill he was the "world-renowned Shakespearian
- tragedian, Garrick the Younger, of Drury Lane, Lon-
- don." In other bills he had a lot of other names and
- done other wonderful things, like finding water and
- gold with a "divining-rod," "dissipating witch
- spells," and so on. By and by he says:
-
- "But the histrionic muse is the darling. Have you
- ever trod the boards, Royalty?"
-
- "No," says the king.
-
- "You shall, then, before you're three days older,
- Fallen Grandeur," says the duke. "The first good
- town we come to we'll hire a hall and do the sword
- fight in Richard III. and the balcony scene in Romeo
- and Juliet. How does that strike you?"
-
- "I'm in, up to the hub, for anything that will pay,
- Bilgewater; but, you see, I don't know nothing about
- play-actin', and hain't ever seen much of it. I was too
- small when pap used to have 'em at the palace. Do
- you reckon you can learn me?"
-
- "Easy!"
-
- "All right. I'm jist a-freezn' for something fresh,
- anyway. Le's commence right away."
-
- So the duke he told him all about who Romeo was
- and who Juliet was, and said he was used to being
- Romeo, so the king could be Juliet.
-
- "But if Juliet's such a young gal, duke, my peeled
- head and my white whiskers is goin' to look oncommon
- odd on her, maybe."
-
- "No, don't you worry; these country jakes won't
- ever think of that. Besides, you know, you'll be in
- costume, and that makes all the difference in the
- world; Juliet's in a balcony, enjoying the moonlight
- before she goes to bed, and she's got on her night-
- gown and her ruffled nightcap. Here are the costumes
- for the parts."
-
- He got out two or three curtain-calico suits, which
- he said was meedyevil armor for Richard III. and
- t'other chap, and a long white cotton nightshirt and a
- ruffled nightcap to match. The king was satisfied; so
- the duke got out his book and read the parts over in
- the most splendid spread-eagle way, prancing around
- and acting at the same time, to show how it had got to
- be done; then he give the book to the king and told
- him to get his part by heart.
-
- There was a little one-horse town about three mile
- down the bend, and after dinner the duke said he had
- ciphered out his idea about how to run in daylight
- without it being dangersome for Jim; so he allowed
- he would go down to the town and fix that thing.
- The king allowed he would go, too, and see if he
- couldn't strike something. We was out of coffee, so
- Jim said I better go along with them in the canoe and
- get some.
-
- When we got there there warn't nobody stirring;
- streets empty, and perfectly dead and still, like Sun-
- day. We found a sick nigger sunning himself in a
- back yard, and he said everybody that warn't too
- young or too sick or too old was gone to camp-
- meeting, about two mile back in the woods. The king
- got the directions, and allowed he'd go and work that
- camp-meeting for all it was worth, and I might go,
- too.
-
- The duke said what he was after was a printing-
- office. We found it; a little bit of a concern, up over
- a carpenter shop -- carpenters and printers all gone to
- the meeting, and no doors locked. It was a dirty,
- littered-up place, and had ink marks, and handbills
- with pictures of horses and runaway niggers on them,
- all over the walls. The duke shed his coat and said he
- was all right now. So me and the king lit out for the
- camp-meeting.
-
- We got there in about a half an hour fairly dripping,
- for it was a most awful hot day. There was as much
- as a thousand people there from twenty mile around.
- The woods was full of teams and wagons, hitched
- everywheres, feeding out of the wagon-troughs and
- stomping to keep off the flies. There was sheds made
- out of poles and roofed over with branches, where they
- had lemonade and gingerbread to sell, and piles of
- watermelons and green corn and such-like truck.
-
- The preaching was going on under the same kinds
- of sheds, only they was bigger and held crowds of
- people. The benches was made out of outside slabs
- of logs, with holes bored in the round side to drive
- sticks into for legs. They didn't have no backs.
- The preachers had high platforms to stand on at one
- end of the sheds. The women had on sun-bonnets;
- and some had linsey-woolsey frocks, some gingham
- ones, and a few of the young ones had on calico.
- Some of the young men was barefooted, and some of
- the children didn't have on any clothes but just a tow-
- linen shirt. Some of the old women was knitting, and
- some of the young folks was courting on the sly.
-
- The first shed we come to the preacher was lining
- out a hymn. He lined out two lines, everybody sung
- it, and it was kind of grand to hear it, there was so
- many of them and they done it in such a rousing way;
- then he lined out two more for them to sing -- and so
- on. The people woke up more and more, and sung
- louder and louder; and towards the end some begun
- to groan, and some begun to shout. Then the preacher
- begun to preach, and begun in earnest, too; and went
- weaving first to one side of the platform and then the
- other, and then a-leaning down over the front of it,
- with his arms and his body going all the time, and
- shouting his words out with all his might; and every
- now and then he would hold up his Bible and spread it
- open, and kind of pass it around this way and that,
- shouting, "It's the brazen serpent in the wilderness!
- Look upon it and live!" And people would shout
- out, "Glory! -- A-a-MEN!" And so he went on, and
- the people groaning and crying and saying amen:
-
- "Oh, come to the mourners' bench! come, black
- with sin! (AMEN!) come, sick and sore! (AMEN!)
- come, lame and halt and blind! (AMEN!) come, pore
- and needy, sunk in shame! (A-A-MEN!) come, all
- that's worn and soiled and suffering! -- come with a
- broken spirit! come with a contrite heart! come in
- your rags and sin and dirt! the waters that cleanse is
- free, the door of heaven stands open -- oh, enter in
- and be at rest!" (A-A-MEN! GLORY, GLORY HALLELUJAH!)
-
- And so on. You couldn't make out what the
- preacher said any more, on account of the shouting
- and crying. Folks got up everywheres in the crowd,
- and worked their way just by main strength to the
- mourners' bench, with the tears running down their
- faces; and when all the mourners had got up there to
- the front benches in a crowd, they sung and shouted
- and flung themselves down on the straw, just crazy
- and wild.
-
- Well, the first I knowed the king got a-going, and
- you could hear him over everybody; and next he
- went a-charging up on to the platform, and the
- preacher he begged him to speak to the people, and
- he done it. He told them he was a pirate -- been a
- pirate for thirty years out in the Indian Ocean -- and
- his crew was thinned out considerable last spring in a
- fight, and he was home now to take out some fresh
- men, and thanks to goodness he'd been robbed last
- night and put ashore off of a steamboat without a cent,
- and he was glad of it; it was the blessedest thing that
- ever happened to him, because he was a changed man
- now, and happy for the first time in his life; and,
- poor as he was, he was going to start right off and
- work his way back to the Indian Ocean, and put in the
- rest of his life trying to turn the pirates into the true
- path; for he could do it better than anybody else,
- being acquainted with all pirate crews in that ocean;
- and though it would take him a long time to get
- there without money, he would get there anyway, and
- every time he convinced a pirate he would say to him,
- "Don't you thank me, don't you give me no credit;
- it all belongs to them dear people in Pokeville camp-
- meeting, natural brothers and benefactors of the race,
- and that dear preacher there, the truest friend a pirate
- ever had!"
-
- And then he busted into tears, and so did everybody.
- Then somebody sings out, "Take up a collection for
- him, take up a collection!" Well, a half a dozen
- made a jump to do it, but somebody sings out, "Let
- HIM pass the hat around!" Then everybody said it,
- the preacher too.
-
- So the king went all through the crowd with his hat
- swabbing his eyes, and blessing the people and praising
- them and thanking them for being so good to the poor
- pirates away off there; and every little while the
- prettiest kind of girls, with the tears running down
- their cheeks, would up and ask him would he let them
- kiss him for to remember him by; and he always done
- it; and some of them he hugged and kissed as many
- as five or six times -- and he was invited to stay a
- week; and everybody wanted him to live in their
- houses, and said they'd think it was an honor; but he
- said as this was the last day of the camp-meeting he
- couldn't do no good, and besides he was in a sweat to
- get to the Indian Ocean right off and go to work on
- the pirates.
-
- When we got back to the raft and he come to count
- up he found he had collected eighty-seven dollars and
- seventy-five cents. And then he had fetched away a
- three-gallon jug of whisky, too, that he found under a
- wagon when he was starting home through the woods.
- The king said, take it all around, it laid over any day
- he'd ever put in in the missionarying line. He said it
- warn't no use talking, heathens don't amount to shucks
- alongside of pirates to work a camp-meeting with.
-
- The duke was thinking HE'D been doing pretty well
- till the king come to show up, but after that he didn't
- think so so much. He had set up and printed off two
- little jobs for farmers in that printing-office -- horse
- bills -- and took the money, four dollars. And he
- had got in ten dollars' worth of advertisements for the
- paper, which he said he would put in for four dollars
- if they would pay in advance -- so they done it. The
- price of the paper was two dollars a year, but he took
- in three subscriptions for half a dollar apiece on con-
- dition of them paying him in advance; they were going
- to pay in cordwood and onions as usual, but he said
- he had just bought the concern and knocked down the
- price as low as he could afford it, and was going to
- run it for cash. He set up a little piece of poetry,
- which he made, himself, out of his own head -- three
- verses -- kind of sweet and saddish -- the name of it
- was, "Yes, crush, cold world, this breaking heart" --
- and he left that all set up and ready to print in the
- paper, and didn't charge nothing for it. Well, he
- took in nine dollars and a half, and said he'd done a
- pretty square day's work for it.
-
- Then he showed us another little job he'd printed
- and hadn't charged for, because it was for us. It had
- a picture of a runaway nigger with a bundle on a stick
- over his shoulder, and "$200 reward" under it. The
- reading was all about Jim, and just described him to a
- dot. It said he run away from St. Jacques' planta-
- tion, forty mile below New Orleans, last winter, and
- likely went north, and whoever would catch him and
- send him back he could have the reward and expenses.
-
- "Now," says the duke, "after to-night we can run
- in the daytime if we want to. Whenever we see any-
- body coming we can tie Jim hand and foot with a rope,
- and lay him in the wigwam and show this handbill and
- say we captured him up the river, and were too poor
- to travel on a steamboat, so we got this little raft on
- credit from our friends and are going down to get the
- reward. Handcuffs and chains would look still better
- on Jim, but it wouldn't go well with the story of us
- being so poor. Too much like jewelry. Ropes are
- the correct thing -- we must preserve the unities, as we
- say on the boards."
-
- We all said the duke was pretty smart, and there
- couldn't be no trouble about running daytimes. We
- judged we could make miles enough that night to get
- out of the reach of the powwow we reckoned the duke's
- work in the printing office was going to make in that
- little town; then we could boom right along if we
- wanted to.
-
- We laid low and kept still, and never shoved out till
- nearly ten o'clock; then we slid by, pretty wide away
- from the town, and didn't hoist our lantern till we was
- clear out of sight of it.
-
- When Jim called me to take the watch at four in the
- morning, he says:
-
- "Huck, does you reck'n we gwyne to run acrost
- any mo' kings on dis trip?"
-
- "No," I says, "I reckon not."
-
- "Well," says he, "dat's all right, den. I doan'
- mine one er two kings, but dat's enough. Dis one's
- powerful drunk, en de duke ain' much better."
-
- I found Jim had been trying to get him to talk
- French, so he could hear what it was like; but he said
- he had been in this country so long, and had so much
- trouble, he'd forgot it.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
-
- IT was after sun-up now, but we went right on and
- didn't tie up. The king and the duke turned out
- by and by looking pretty rusty; but after they'd
- jumped overboard and took a swim it chippered them
- up a good deal. After breakfast the king he took a
- seat on the corner of the raft, and pulled off his boots
- and rolled up his britches, and let his legs dangle in
- the water, so as to be comfortable, and lit his pipe, and
- went to getting his Romeo and Juliet by heart. When
- he had got it pretty good him and the duke begun to
- practice it together. The duke had to learn him over
- and over again how to say every speech; and he made
- him sigh, and put his hand on his heart, and after a
- while he said he done it pretty well; "only," he says,
- "you mustn't bellow out ROMEO! that way, like a
- bull -- you must say it soft and sick and languishy,
- so -- R-o-o-meo! that is the idea; for Juliet's a dear
- sweet mere child of a girl, you know, and she doesn't
- bray like a jackass."
-
- Well, next they got out a couple of long swords that
- the duke made out of oak laths, and begun to practice
- the sword fight -- the duke called himself Richard
- III.; and the way they laid on and pranced around
- the raft was grand to see. But by and by the king
- tripped and fell overboard, and after that they took a
- rest, and had a talk about all kinds of adventures
- they'd had in other times along the river.
-
- After dinner the duke says:
-
- "Well, Capet, we'll want to make this a first-class
- show, you know, so I guess we'll add a little more to
- it. We want a little something to answer encores
- with, anyway."
-
- "What's onkores, Bilgewater?"
-
- The duke told him, and then says:
-
- "I'll answer by doing the Highland fling or the
- sailor's hornpipe; and you -- well, let me see -- oh,
- I've got it -- you can do Hamlet's soliloquy."
-
- "Hamlet's which?"
-
- "Hamlet's soliloquy, you know; the most celebrated
- thing in Shakespeare. Ah, it's sublime, sublime! Al-
- ways fetches the house. I haven't got it in the book
- -- I've only got one volume -- but I reckon I can
- piece it out from memory. I'll just walk up and down
- a minute, and see if I can call it back from recollec-
- tion's vaults."
-
- So he went to marching up and down, thinking, and
- frowning horrible every now and then; then he would
- hoist up his eyebrows; next he would squeeze his hand
- on his forehead and stagger back and kind of moan;
- next he would sigh, and next he'd let on to drop a
- tear. It was beautiful to see him. By and by he got
- it. He told us to give attention. Then he strikes a
- most noble attitude, with one leg shoved forwards, and
- his arms stretched away up, and his head tilted back,
- looking up at the sky; and then he begins to rip and
- rave and grit his teeth; and after that, all through his
- speech, he howled, and spread around, and swelled up
- his chest, and just knocked the spots out of any acting
- ever I see before. This is the speech -- I learned it,
- easy enough, while he was learning it to the king:
-
- To be, or not to be; that is the bare bodkin
- That makes calamity of so long life;
- For who would fardels bear, till Birnam Wood do
- come to Dunsinane,
- But that the fear of something after death
- Murders the innocent sleep,
- Great nature's second course,
- And makes us rather sling the arrows of outrageous fortune
- Than fly to others that we know not of.
- There's the respect must give us pause:
- Wake Duncan with thy knocking! I would thou couldst;
- For who would bear the whips and scorns of time,
- The oppressor's wrong, the proud man's contumely,
- The law's delay, and the quietus which his
- pangs might take,
- In the dead waste and middle of the night,
- when churchyards yawn
- In customary suits of solemn black,
- But that the undiscovered country from whose
- bourne no traveler returns,
- Breathes forth contagion on the world,
- And thus the native hue of resolution, like
- the poor cat i' the adage,
- Is sicklied o'er with care,
- And all the clouds that lowered o'er our housetops,
- With this regard their currents turn awry,
- And lose the name of action.
- 'Tis a consummation devoutly to be wished.
- But soft you, the fair Ophelia:
- Ope not thy ponderous and marble jaws,
- But get thee to a nunnery -- go!
-
- Well, the old man he liked that speech, and he
- mighty soon got it so he could do it first-rate. It
- seemed like he was just born for it; and when he had
- his hand in and was excited, it was perfectly lovely
- the way he would rip and tear and rair up behind
- when he was getting it off.
-
- The first chance we got the duke he had some show-
- bills printed; and after that, for two or three days as
- we floated along, the raft was a most uncommon lively
- place, for there warn't nothing but sword fighting and
- rehearsing -- as the duke called it -- going on all the
- time. One morning, when we was pretty well down
- the State of Arkansaw, we come in sight of a little
- one-horse town in a big bend; so we tied up about
- three-quarters of a mile above it, in the mouth of a
- crick which was shut in like a tunnel by the cypress
- trees, and all of us but Jim took the canoe and went
- down there to see if there was any chance in that place
- for our show.
-
- We struck it mighty lucky; there was going to be a
- circus there that afternoon, and the country people was
- already beginning to come in, in all kinds of old
- shackly wagons, and on horses. The circus would
- leave before night, so our show would have a pretty
- good chance. The duke he hired the courthouse, and
- we went around and stuck up our bills. They read
- like this:
-
- Shaksperean Revival ! ! !
- Wonderful Attraction!
- For One Night Only!
- The world renowned tragedians,
- David Garrick the Younger, of Drury Lane Theatre London,
- and
- Edmund Kean the elder, of the Royal Haymarket Theatre,
- Whitechapel, Pudding Lane, Piccadilly, London, and the
- Royal Continental Theatres, in their sublime
- Shaksperean Spectacle entitled
- The Balcony Scene
- in
- Romeo and Juliet ! ! !
- Romeo...................Mr. Garrick
- Juliet..................Mr. Kean
- Assisted by the whole strength of the company!
- New costumes, new scenes, new appointments!
- Also:
- The thrilling, masterly, and blood-curdling
- Broad-sword conflict
- In Richard III. ! ! !
- Richard III.............Mr. Garrick
- Richmond................Mr. Kean
- Also:
- (by special request)
- Hamlet's Immortal Soliloquy ! !
- By The Illustrious Kean!
- Done by him 300 consecutive nights in Paris!
- For One Night Only,
- On account of imperative European engagements!
- Admission 25 cents; children and servants, 10 cents.
-
- Then we went loafing around town. The stores and
- houses was most all old, shackly, dried up frame con-
- cerns that hadn't ever been painted; they was set up
- three or four foot above ground on stilts, so as to be
- out of reach of the water when the river was over-
- flowed. The houses had little gardens around them,
- but they didn't seem to raise hardly anything in them
- but jimpson-weeds, and sunflowers, and ash piles, and
- old curled-up boots and shoes, and pieces of bottles,
- and rags, and played-out tinware. The fences was
- made of different kinds of boards, nailed on at dif-
- ferent times; and they leaned every which way, and
- had gates that didn't generly have but one hinge -- a
- leather one. Some of the fences had been white-
- washed some time or another, but the duke said it was
- in Clumbus' time, like enough. There was generly
- hogs in the garden, and people driving them out.
-
- All the stores was along one street. They had
- white domestic awnings in front, and the country peo-
- ple hitched their horses to the awning-posts. There
- was empty drygoods boxes under the awnings, and
- loafers roosting on them all day long, whittling them
- with their Barlow knives; and chawing tobacco, and
- gaping and yawning and stretching -- a mighty ornery
- lot. They generly had on yellow straw hats most as
- wide as an umbrella, but didn't wear no coats nor
- waistcoats, they called one another Bill, and Buck,
- and Hank, and Joe, and Andy, and talked lazy and
- drawly, and used considerable many cuss words.
- There was as many as one loafer leaning up against
- every awning-post, and he most always had his hands
- in his britches-pockets, except when he fetched them
- out to lend a chaw of tobacco or scratch. What a
- body was hearing amongst them all the time was:
-
- "Gimme a chaw 'v tobacker, Hank "
-
- "Cain't; I hain't got but one chaw left. Ask Bill."
-
- Maybe Bill he gives him a chaw; maybe he lies and
- says he ain't got none. Some of them kinds of
- loafers never has a cent in the world, nor a chaw of
- tobacco of their own. They get all their chawing by
- borrowing; they say to a fellow, "I wisht you'd len'
- me a chaw, Jack, I jist this minute give Ben Thompson
- the last chaw I had" -- which is a lie pretty much
- everytime; it don't fool nobody but a stranger; but
- Jack ain't no stranger, so he says:
-
- "YOU give him a chaw, did you? So did your
- sister's cat's grandmother. You pay me back the
- chaws you've awready borry'd off'n me, Lafe Buckner,
- then I'll loan you one or two ton of it, and won't
- charge you no back intrust, nuther."
-
- "Well, I DID pay you back some of it wunst."
-
- "Yes, you did -- 'bout six chaws. You borry'd
- store tobacker and paid back nigger-head."
-
- Store tobacco is flat black plug, but these fellows
- mostly chaws the natural leaf twisted. When they
- borrow a chaw they don't generly cut it off with a
- knife, but set the plug in between their teeth, and gnaw
- with their teeth and tug at the plug with their hands
- till they get it in two; then sometimes the one that
- owns the tobacco looks mournful at it when it's
- handed back, and says, sarcastic:
-
- "Here, gimme the CHAW, and you take the PLUG."
-
- All the streets and lanes was just mud; they warn't
- nothing else BUT mud -- mud as black as tar and nigh
- about a foot deep in some places, and two or three
- inches deep in ALL the places. The hogs loafed and
- grunted around everywheres. You'd see a muddy
- sow and a litter of pigs come lazying along the street
- and whollop herself right down in the way, where folks
- had to walk around her, and she'd stretch out and shut
- her eyes and wave her ears whilst the pigs was milking
- her, and look as happy as if she was on salary. And
- pretty soon you'd hear a loafer sing out, "Hi! SO
- boy! sick him, Tige!" and away the sow would go,
- squealing most horrible, with a dog or two swinging to
- each ear, and three or four dozen more a-coming; and
- then you would see all the loafers get up and watch
- the thing out of sight, and laugh at the fun and look
- grateful for the noise. Then they'd settle back again
- till there was a dog fight. There couldn't anything
- wake them up all over, and make them happy all over,
- like a dog fight -- unless it might be putting turpentine
- on a stray dog and setting fire to him, or tying a tin
- pan to his tail and see him run himself to death.
-
- On the river front some of the houses was sticking
- out over the bank, and they was bowed and bent, and
- about ready to tumble in, The people had moved out
- of them. The bank was caved away under one corner
- of some others, and that corner was hanging over.
- People lived in them yet, but it was dangersome, be-
- cause sometimes a strip of land as wide as a house
- caves in at a time. Sometimes a belt of land a quarter
- of a mile deep will start in and cave along and cave
- along till it all caves into the river in one summer.
- Such a town as that has to be always moving back,
- and back, and back, because the river's always gnawing
- at it.
-
- The nearer it got to noon that day the thicker and
- thicker was the wagons and horses in the streets, and
- more coming all the time. Families fetched their
- dinners with them from the country, and eat them in
- the wagons. There was considerable whisky drinking
- going on, and I seen three fights. By and by some-
- body sings out:
-
- "Here comes old Boggs! -- in from the country for
- his little old monthly drunk; here he comes, boys!"
-
- All the loafers looked glad; I reckoned they was
- used to having fun out of Boggs. One of them says:
-
- "Wonder who he's a-gwyne to chaw up this time.
- If he'd a-chawed up all the men he's ben a-gwyne to
- chaw up in the last twenty year he'd have considerable
- ruputation now."
-
- Another one says, "I wisht old Boggs 'd threaten
- me, 'cuz then I'd know I warn't gwyne to die for a
- thousan' year."
-
- Boggs comes a-tearing along on his horse, whooping
- and yelling like an Injun, and singing out:
-
- "Cler the track, thar. I'm on the waw-path, and
- the price uv coffins is a-gwyne to raise."
-
- He was drunk, and weaving about in his saddle; he
- was over fifty year old, and had a very red face.
- Everybody yelled at him and laughed at him and sassed
- him, and he sassed back, and said he'd attend to them
- and lay them out in their regular turns, but he couldn't
- wait now because he'd come to town to kill old
- Colonel Sherburn, and his motto was, "Meat first,
- and spoon vittles to top off on."
-
- He see me, and rode up and says:
-
- "Whar'd you come f'm, boy? You prepared to
- die?"
-
- Then he rode on. I was scared, but a man says:
-
- "He don't mean nothing; he's always a-carryin'
- on like that when he's drunk. He's the best natured-
- est old fool in Arkansaw -- never hurt nobody, drunk
- nor sober."
-
- Boggs rode up before the biggest store in town, and
- bent his head down so he could see under the curtain
- of the awning and yells:
-
- "Come out here, Sherburn! Come out and meet
- the man you've swindled. You're the houn' I'm after,
- and I'm a-gwyne to have you, too!"
-
- And so he went on, calling Sherburn everything he
- could lay his tongue to, and the whole street packed
- with people listening and laughing and going on. By
- and by a proud-looking man about fifty-five -- and he
- was a heap the best dressed man in that town, too --
- steps out of the store, and the crowd drops back on
- each side to let him come. He says to Boggs, mighty
- ca'm and slow -- he says:
-
- "I'm tired of this, but I'll endure it till one o'clock.
- Till one o'clock, mind -- no longer. If you open your
- mouth against me only once after that time you can't
- travel so far but I will find you."
-
- Then he turns and goes in. The crowd looked
- mighty sober; nobody stirred, and there warn't no
- more laughing. Boggs rode off blackguarding Sher-
- burn as loud as he could yell, all down the street; and
- pretty soon back he comes and stops before the store,
- still keeping it up. Some men crowded around him
- and tried to get him to shut up, but he wouldn't; they
- told him it would be one o'clock in about fifteen min-
- utes, and so he MUST go home -- he must go right
- away. But it didn't do no good. He cussed away
- with all his might, and throwed his hat down in the
- mud and rode over it, and pretty soon away he went
- a-raging down the street again, with his gray hair a-
- flying. Everybody that could get a chance at him
- tried their best to coax him off of his horse so they
- could lock him up and get him sober; but it warn't no
- use -- up the street he would tear again, and give
- Sherburn another cussing. By and by somebody says:
-
- "Go for his daughter! -- quick, go for his daughter;
- sometimes he'll listen to her. If anybody can persuade
- him, she can."
-
- So somebody started on a run. I walked down
- street a ways and stopped. In about five or ten min-
- utes here comes Boggs again, but not on his horse.
- He was a-reeling across the street towards me, bare-
- headed, with a friend on both sides of him a-holt of
- his arms and hurrying him along. He was quiet, and
- looked uneasy; and he warn't hanging back any, but
- was doing some of the hurrying himself. Somebody
- sings out:
-
- "Boggs!"
-
- I looked over there to see who said it, and it was
- that Colonel Sherburn. He was standing perfectly
- still in the street, and had a pistol raised in his right
- hand -- not aiming it, but holding it out with the barrel
- tilted up towards the sky. The same second I see a
- young girl coming on the run, and two men with her.
- Boggs and the men turned round to see who called
- him, and when they see the pistol the men jumped
- to one side, and the pistol-barrel come down slow
- and steady to a level -- both barrels cocked. Boggs
- throws up both of his hands and says, "O Lord, don't
- shoot!" Bang! goes the first shot, and he staggers
- back, clawing at the air -- bang! goes the second one,
- and he tumbles backwards on to the ground, heavy
- and solid, with his arms spread out. That young girl
- screamed out and comes rushing, and down she throws
- herself on her father, crying, and saying, "Oh, he's
- killed him, he's killed him!" The crowd closed up
- around them, and shouldered and jammed one another,
- with their necks stretched, trying to see, and people
- on the inside trying to shove them back and shouting,
- "Back, back! give him air, give him air!"
-
- Colonel Sherburn he tossed his pistol on to the
- ground, and turned around on his heels and walked off.
-
- They took Boggs to a little drug store, the crowd
- pressing around just the same, and the whole town
- following, and I rushed and got a good place at the
- window, where I was close to him and could see in.
- They laid him on the floor and put one large Bible
- under his head, and opened another one and spread it
- on his breast; but they tore open his shirt first, and I
- seen where one of the bullets went in. He made
- about a dozen long gasps, his breast lifting the Bible
- up when he drawed in his breath, and letting it down
- again when he breathed it out -- and after that he laid
- still; he was dead. Then they pulled his daughter
- away from him, screaming and crying, and took her
- off. She was about sixteen, and very sweet and gentle
- looking, but awful pale and scared.
-
- Well, pretty soon the whole town was there, squirm-
- ing and scrouging and pushing and shoving to get at
- the window and have a look, but people that had the
- places wouldn't give them up, and folks behind them
- was saying all the time, "Say, now, you've looked
- enough, you fellows; 'tain't right and 'tain't fair for
- you to stay thar all the time, and never give nobody a
- chance; other folks has their rights as well as you."
-
- There was considerable jawing back, so I slid out,
- thinking maybe there was going to be trouble. The
- streets was full, and everybody was excited. Every-
- body that seen the shooting was telling how it hap-
- pened, and there was a big crowd packed around each
- one of these fellows, stretching their necks and listen-
- ing. One long, lanky man, with long hair and a big
- white fur stovepipe hat on the back of his head, and a
- crooked-handled cane, marked out the places on the
- ground where Boggs stood and where Sherburn stood,
- and the people following him around from one place
- to t'other and watching everything he done, and bob-
- bing their heads to show they understood, and stoop-
- ing a little and resting their hands on their thighs to
- watch him mark the places on the ground with his
- cane; and then he stood up straight and stiff where
- Sherburn had stood, frowning and having his hat-brim
- down over his eyes, and sung out, "Boggs!" and then
- fetched his cane down slow to a level, and says
- "Bang!" staggered backwards, says "Bang!" again,
- and fell down flat on his back. The people that had
- seen the thing said he done it perfect; said it was just
- exactly the way it all happened. Then as much as a
- dozen people got out their bottles and treated him.
-
- Well, by and by somebody said Sherburn ought to
- be lynched. In about a minute everybody was saying
- it; so away they went, mad and yelling, and snatching
- down every clothes-line they come to to do the hang-
- ing with.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
-
- THEY swarmed up towards Sherburn's house, a-
- whooping and raging like Injuns, and everything
- had to clear the way or get run over and tromped to
- mush, and it was awful to see. Children was heeling
- it ahead of the mob, screaming and trying to get out
- of the way; and every window along the road was full
- of women's heads, and there was nigger boys in every
- tree, and bucks and wenches looking over every fence;
- and as soon as the mob would get nearly to them they
- would break and skaddle back out of reach. Lots of
- the women and girls was crying and taking on, scared
- most to death.
-
- They swarmed up in front of Sherburn's palings as
- thick as they could jam together, and you couldn't
- hear yourself think for the noise. It was a little
- twenty-foot yard. Some sung out "Tear down the
- fence! tear down the fence!" Then there was a
- racket of ripping and tearing and smashing, and down
- she goes, and the front wall of the crowd begins to
- roll in like a wave.
-
- Just then Sherburn steps out on to the roof of his
- little front porch, with a double-barrel gun in his hand,
- and takes his stand, perfectly ca'm and deliberate, not
- saying a word. The racket stopped, and the wave
- sucked back.
-
- Sherburn never said a word -- just stood there, look-
- ing down. The stillness was awful creepy and uncom-
- fortable. Sherburn run his eye slow along the crowd;
- and wherever it struck the people tried a little to out-
- gaze him, but they couldn't; they dropped their eyes
- and looked sneaky. Then pretty soon Sherburn sort
- of laughed; not the pleasant kind, but the kind that
- makes you feel like when you are eating bread that's
- got sand in it.
-
- Then he says, slow and scornful:
-
- "The idea of YOU lynching anybody! It's amusing.
- The idea of you thinking you had pluck enough to
- lynch a MAN! Because you're brave enough to tar and
- feather poor friendless cast-out women that come along
- here, did that make you think you had grit enough to
- lay your hands on a MAN? Why, a MAN'S safe in the
- hands of ten thousand of your kind -- as long as it's
- daytime and you're not behind him.
-
- "Do I know you? I know you clear through
- was born and raised in the South, and I've lived in the
- North; so I know the average all around. The
- average man's a coward. In the North he lets anybody
- walk over him that wants to, and goes home and prays
- for a humble spirit to bear it. In the South one man
- all by himself, has stopped a stage full of men in the
- daytime, and robbed the lot. Your newspapers call
- you a brave people so much that you think you are
- braver than any other people -- whereas you're just AS
- brave, and no braver. Why don't your juries hang
- murderers? Because they're afraid the man's friends
- will shoot them in the back, in the dark -- and it's just
- what they WOULD do.
-
- "So they always acquit; and then a MAN goes in
- the night, with a hundred masked cowards at his back
- and lynches the rascal. Your mistake is, that you
- didn't bring a man with you; that's one mistake, and
- the other is that you didn't come in the dark and fetch
- your masks. You brought PART of a man -- Buck
- Harkness, there -- and if you hadn't had him to start
- you, you'd a taken it out in blowing.
-
- "You didn't want to come. The average man
- don't like trouble and danger. YOU don't like trouble
- and danger. But if only HALF a man -- like Buck
- Harkness, there -- shouts 'Lynch him! lynch him!'
- you're afraid to back down -- afraid you'll be found
- out to be what you are -- COWARDS -- and so you raise
- a yell, and hang yourselves on to that half-a-man's
- coat-tail, and come raging up here, swearing what big
- things you're going to do. The pitifulest thing out is
- a mob; that's what an army is -- a mob; they don't
- fight with courage that's born in them, but with cour-
- age that's borrowed from their mass, and from their
- officers. But a mob without any MAN at the head of
- it is BENEATH pitifulness. Now the thing for YOU to do
- is to droop your tails and go home and crawl in a
- hole. If any real lynching's going to be done it will
- be done in the dark, Southern fashion; and when they
- come they'll bring their masks, and fetch a MAN along.
- Now LEAVE -- and take your half-a-man with you" --
- tossing his gun up across his left arm and cocking it
- when he says this.
-
- The crowd washed back sudden, and then broke all
- apart, and went tearing off every which way, and Buck
- Harkness he heeled it after them, looking tolerable cheap.
- I could a stayed if I wanted to, but I didn't want to.
-
- I went to the circus and loafed around the back side
- till the watchman went by, and then dived in under the
- tent. I had my twenty-dollar gold piece and some
- other money, but I reckoned I better save it, because
- there ain't no telling how soon you are going to need
- it, away from home and amongst strangers that way.
- You can't be too careful. I ain't opposed to spending
- money on circuses when there ain't no other way, but
- there ain't no use in WASTING it on them.
-
- It was a real bully circus. It was the splendidest
- sight that ever was when they all come riding in, two
- and two, a gentleman and lady, side by side, the men
- just in their drawers and undershirts, and no shoes nor
- stirrups, and resting their hands on their thighs easy
- and comfortable -- there must a been twenty of them
- -- and every lady with a lovely complexion, and per-
- fectly beautiful, and looking just like a gang of real
- sure-enough queens, and dressed in clothes that cost
- millions of dollars, and just littered with diamonds. It
- was a powerful fine sight; I never see anything so
- lovely. And then one by one they got up and stood,
- and went a-weaving around the ring so gentle and
- wavy and graceful, the men looking ever so tall and airy
- and straight, with their heads bobbing and skimming
- along, away up there under the tent-roof, and every
- lady's rose-leafy dress flapping soft and silky around
- her hips, and she looking like the most loveliest parasol.
-
- And then faster and faster they went, all of them
- dancing, first one foot out in the air and then the other,
- the horses leaning more and more, and the ringmaster
- going round and round the center-pole, cracking his
- whip and shouting "Hi! -- hi!" and the clown crack-
- ing jokes behind him; and by and by all hands dropped
- the reins, and every lady put her knuckles on her hips
- and every gentleman folded his arms, and then how
- the horses did lean over and hump themselves! And
- so one after the other they all skipped off into the
- ring, and made the sweetest bow I ever see, and then
- scampered out, and everybody clapped their hands and
- went just about wild.
-
- Well, all through the circus they done the most
- astonishing things; and all the time that clown carried
- on so it most killed the people. The ringmaster
- couldn't ever say a word to him but he was back at
- him quick as a wink with the funniest things a body
- ever said; and how he ever COULD think of so many of
- them, and so sudden and so pat, was what I couldn't
- noway understand. Why, I couldn't a thought of
- them in a year. And by and by a drunk man tried to
- get into the ring -- said he wanted to ride; said he
- could ride as well as anybody that ever was. They
- argued and tried to keep him out, but he wouldn't
- listen, and the whole show come to a standstill. Then
- the people begun to holler at him and make fun of
- him, and that made him mad, and he begun to rip
- and tear; so that stirred up the people, and a lot of
- men begun to pile down off of the benches and swarm
- towards the ring, saying, "Knock him down! throw
- him out!" and one or two women begun to scream.
- So, then, the ringmaster he made a little speech, and
- said he hoped there wouldn't be no disturbance, and if
- the man would promise he wouldn't make no more
- trouble he would let him ride if he thought he could
- stay on the horse. So everybody laughed and said all
- right, and the man got on. The minute he was on,
- the horse begun to rip and tear and jump and cavort
- around, with two circus men hanging on to his bridle
- trying to hold him, and the drunk man hanging on to
- his neck, and his heels flying in the air every jump,
- and the whole crowd of people standing up shouting
- and laughing till tears rolled down. And at last, sure
- enough, all the circus men could do, the horse broke
- loose, and away he went like the very nation, round
- and round the ring, with that sot laying down on him
- and hanging to his neck, with first one leg hanging
- most to the ground on one side, and then t'other one
- on t'other side, and the people just crazy. It warn't
- funny to me, though; I was all of a tremble to see his
- danger. But pretty soon he struggled up astraddle
- and grabbed the bridle, a-reeling this way and that; and
- the next minute he sprung up and dropped the bridle
- and stood! and the horse a-going like a house afire
- too. He just stood up there, a-sailing around as easy
- and comfortable as if he warn't ever drunk in his life
- -- and then he begun to pull off his clothes and sling
- them. He shed them so thick they kind of clogged
- up the air, and altogether he shed seventeen suits.
- And, then, there he was, slim and handsome, and
- dressed the gaudiest and prettiest you ever saw, and
- he lit into that horse with his whip and made him fairly
- hum -- and finally skipped off, and made his bow and
- danced off to the dressing-room, and everybody just
- a-howling with pleasure and astonishment.
-
- Then the ringmaster he see how he had been fooled,
- and he WAS the sickest ringmaster you ever see, I
- reckon. Why, it was one of his own men! He had
- got up that joke all out of his own head, and never let
- on to nobody. Well, I felt sheepish enough to be
- took in so, but I wouldn't a been in that ringmaster's
- place, not for a thousand dollars. I don't know;
- there may be bullier circuses than what that one was,
- but I never struck them yet. Anyways, it was plenty
- good enough for ME; and wherever I run across it, it
- can have all of MY custom every time.
-
- Well, that night we had OUR show; but there warn't
- only about twelve people there -- just enough to pay
- expenses. And they laughed all the time, and that
- made the duke mad; and everybody left, anyway,
- before the show was over, but one boy which was
- asleep. So the duke said these Arkansaw lunkheads
- couldn't come up to Shakespeare; what they wanted
- was low comedy -- and maybe something ruther worse
- than low comedy, he reckoned. He said he could
- size their style. So next morning he got some big
- sheets of wrapping paper and some black paint, and
- drawed off some handbills, and stuck them up all over
- the village. The bills said:
-
- AT THE COURT HOUSE!
- FOR 3 NIGHTS ONLY!
- The World-Renowned Tragedians
- DAVID GARRICK THE YOUNGER!
- AND
- EDMUND KEAN THE ELDER!
- Of the London and Continental
- Theatres,
- In their Thrilling Tragedy of
- THE KING'S CAMELEOPARD,
- OR
- THE ROYAL NONESUCH ! ! !
- Admission 50 cents.
-
- Then at the bottom was the biggest line of all, which
- said:
-
- LADIES AND CHILDREN NOT ADMITTED.
-
- "There," says he, "if that line don't fetch them, I
- don't know Arkansaw!"
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
-
- WELL, all day him and the king was hard at it,
- rigging up a stage and a curtain and a row of
- candles for footlights; and that night the house was
- jam full of men in no time. When the place couldn't
- hold no more, the duke he quit tending door and went
- around the back way and come on to the stage and
- stood up before the curtain and made a little speech,
- and praised up this tragedy, and said it was the most
- thrillingest one that ever was; and so he went on a-
- bragging about the tragedy, and about Edmund Kean
- the Elder, which was to play the main principal part
- in it; and at last when he'd got everybody's expecta-
- tions up high enough, he rolled up the curtain, and
- the next minute the king come a-prancing out on all
- fours, naked; and he was painted all over, ring-
- streaked-and-striped, all sorts of colors, as splendid
- as a rainbow. And -- but never mind the rest of his
- outfit; it was just wild, but it was awful funny. The
- people most killed themselves laughing; and when the
- king got done capering and capered off behind the
- scenes, they roared and clapped and stormed and haw-
- hawed till he come back and done it over again, and
- after that they made him do it another time. Well, it
- would make a cow laugh to see the shines that old
- idiot cut.
-
- Then the duke he lets the curtain down, and bows to
- the people, and says the great tragedy will be per-
- formed only two nights more, on accounts of pressing
- London engagements, where the seats is all sold already
- for it in Drury Lane; and then he makes them another
- bow, and says if he has succeeded in pleasing them
- and instructing them, he will be deeply obleeged if
- they will mention it to their friends and get them to
- come and see it.
-
- Twenty people sings out:
-
- "What, is it over? Is that ALL?"
-
- The duke says yes. Then there was a fine time.
- Everybody sings out, "Sold!" and rose up mad, and
- was a-going for that stage and them tragedians. But a
- big, fine looking man jumps up on a bench and
- shouts:
-
- "Hold on! Just a word, gentlemen." They stopped
- to listen. "We are sold -- mighty badly sold. But
- we don't want to be the laughing stock of this whole
- town, I reckon, and never hear the last of this thing as
- long as we live. NO. What we want is to go out of
- here quiet, and talk this show up, and sell the REST of
- the town! Then we'll all be in the same boat. Ain't
- that sensible?" ("You bet it is! -- the jedge is
- right!" everybody sings out.) "All right, then --
- not a word about any sell. Go along home, and ad-
- vise everybody to come and see the tragedy."
-
- Next day you couldn't hear nothing around that
- town but how splendid that show was. House was
- jammed again that night, and we sold this crowd the
- same way. When me and the king and the duke got
- home to the raft we all had a supper; and by and by,
- about midnight, they made Jim and me back her out
- and float her down the middle of the river, and fetch
- her in and hide her about two mile below town.
-
- The third night the house was crammed again -- and
- they warn't new-comers this time, but people that was
- at the show the other two nights. I stood by the duke
- at the door, and I see that every man that went in had
- his pockets bulging, or something muffled up under
- his coat -- and I see it warn't no perfumery, neither,
- not by a long sight. I smelt sickly eggs by the barrel,
- and rotten cabbages, and such things; and if I know
- the signs of a dead cat being around, and I bet I do,
- there was sixty-four of them went in. I shoved in
- there for a minute, but it was too various for me; I
- couldn't stand it. Well, when the place couldn't hold
- no more people the duke he give a fellow a quarter
- and told him to tend door for him a minute, and then
- he started around for the stage door, I after him; but
- the minute we turned the corner and was in the dark
- he says:
-
- "Walk fast now till you get away from the houses,
- and then shin for the raft like the dickens was after
- you!"
-
- I done it, and he done the same. We struck the
- raft at the same time, and in less than two seconds we
- was gliding down stream, all dark and still, and edging
- towards the middle of the river, nobody saying a word.
- I reckoned the poor king was in for a gaudy time of it
- with the audience, but nothing of the sort; pretty
- soon he crawls out from under the wigwam, and says:
-
- "Well, how'd the old thing pan out this time,
- duke?" He hadn't been up-town at all.
-
- We never showed a light till we was about ten mile
- below the village. Then we lit up and had a supper,
- and the king and the duke fairly laughed their bones
- loose over the way they'd served them people. The
- duke says:
-
- "Greenhorns, flatheads! I knew the first house
- would keep mum and let the rest of the town get roped
- in; and I knew they'd lay for us the third night, and
- consider it was THEIR turn now. Well, it IS their turn,
- and I'd give something to know how much they'd take
- for it. I WOULD just like to know how they're putting
- in their opportunity. They can turn it into a picnic if
- they want to -- they brought plenty provisions."
-
- Them rapscallions took in four hundred and sixty-
- five dollars in that three nights. I never see money
- hauled in by the wagon-load like that before.
- By and by, when they was asleep and snoring, Jim
- says:
-
- "Don't it s'prise you de way dem kings carries on,
- Huck?"
-
- "No," I says, "it don't."
-
- "Why don't it, Huck?"
-
- "Well, it don't, because it's in the breed. I reckon
- they're all alike,"
-
- "But, Huck, dese kings o' ourn is reglar rapscal-
- lions; dat's jist what dey is; dey's reglar rapscallions."
-
- "Well, that's what I'm a-saying; all kings is
- mostly rapscallions, as fur as I can make out."
-
- "Is dat so?"
-
- "You read about them once -- you'll see. Look
- at Henry the Eight; this 'n 's a Sunday-school Super-
- intendent to HIM. And look at Charles Second, and
- Louis Fourteen, and Louis Fifteen, and James Second,
- and Edward Second, and Richard Third, and forty
- more; besides all them Saxon heptarchies that used
- to rip around so in old times and raise Cain. My,
- you ought to seen old Henry the Eight when he was
- in bloom. He WAS a blossom. He used to marry a
- new wife every day, and chop off her head next morn-
- ing. And he would do it just as indifferent as if he
- was ordering up eggs. 'Fetch up Nell Gwynn,' he
- says. They fetch her up. Next morning, 'Chop off
- her head!' And they chop it off. 'Fetch up Jane
- Shore,' he says; and up she comes, Next morning,
- 'Chop off her head' -- and they chop it off. 'Ring
- up Fair Rosamun.' Fair Rosamun answers the bell.
- Next morning, 'Chop off her head.' And he made
- every one of them tell him a tale every night; and he
- kept that up till he had hogged a thousand and one
- tales that way, and then he put them all in a book,
- and called it Domesday Book -- which was a good
- name and stated the case. You don't know kings,
- Jim, but I know them; and this old rip of ourn is one
- of the cleanest I've struck in history. Well, Henry
- he takes a notion he wants to get up some trouble with
- this country. How does he go at it -- give notice? --
- give the country a show? No. All of a sudden he
- heaves all the tea in Boston Harbor overboard, and
- whacks out a declaration of independence, and dares
- them to come on. That was HIS style -- he never give
- anybody a chance. He had suspicions of his father,
- the Duke of Wellington. Well, what did he do? Ask
- him to show up? No -- drownded him in a butt of
- mamsey, like a cat. S'pose people left money laying
- around where he was -- what did he do? He collared
- it. S'pose he contracted to do a thing, and you paid
- him, and didn't set down there and see that he done
- it -- what did he do? He always done the other thing.
- S'pose he opened his mouth -- what then? If he
- didn't shut it up powerful quick he'd lose a lie every
- time. That's the kind of a bug Henry was; and if
- we'd a had him along 'stead of our kings he'd a fooled
- that town a heap worse than ourn done. I don't say
- that ourn is lambs, because they ain't, when you come
- right down to the cold facts; but they ain't nothing to
- THAT old ram, anyway. All I say is, kings is kings,
- and you got to make allowances. Take them all
- around, they're a mighty ornery lot. It's the way
- they're raised."
-
- "But dis one do SMELL so like de nation, Huck."
-
- "Well, they all do, Jim. We can't help the way a
- king smells; history don't tell no way."
-
- "Now de duke, he's a tolerble likely man in some
- ways."
-
- "Yes, a duke's different. But not very different.
- This one's a middling hard lot for a duke. When
- he's drunk there ain't no near-sighted man could tell
- him from a king."
-
- "Well, anyways, I doan' hanker for no mo' un um,
- Huck. Dese is all I kin stan'."
-
- "It's the way I feel, too, Jim. But we've got them
- on our hands, and we got to remember what they are,
- and make allowances. Sometimes I wish we could
- hear of a country that's out of kings."
-
- What was the use to tell Jim these warn't real kings
- and dukes? It wouldn't a done no good; and, be-
- sides, it was just as I said: you couldn't tell them from
- the real kind.
-
- I went to sleep, and Jim didn't call me when it was
- my turn. He often done that. When I waked up
- just at daybreak he was sitting there with his head
- down betwixt his knees, moaning and mourning to
- himself. I didn't take notice nor let on. I knowed
- what it was about. He was thinking about his wife
- and his children, away up yonder, and he was low and
- homesick; because he hadn't ever been away from
- home before in his life; and I do believe he cared just
- as much for his people as white folks does for their'n.
- It don't seem natural, but I reckon it's so. He was
- often moaning and mourning that way nights, when
- he judged I was asleep, and saying, "Po' little 'Liza-
- beth! po' little Johnny! it's mighty hard; I spec' I
- ain't ever gwyne to see you no mo', no mo'!" He
- was a mighty good nigger, Jim was.
-
- But this time I somehow got to talking to him about
- his wife and young ones; and by and by he says:
-
- "What makes me feel so bad dis time 'uz bekase I
- hear sumpn over yonder on de bank like a whack, er
- a slam, while ago, en it mine me er de time I treat my
- little 'Lizabeth so ornery. She warn't on'y 'bout fo'
- year ole, en she tuck de sk'yarlet fever, en had a
- powful rough spell; but she got well, en one day she
- was a-stannin' aroun', en I says to her, I says:
-
- "'Shet de do'.'
-
- "She never done it; jis' stood dah, kiner smilin' up
- at me. It make me mad; en I says agin, mighty loud,
- I says:
-
- "'Doan' you hear me? Shet de do'!'
-
- "She jis stood de same way, kiner smilin' up. I
- was a-bilin'! I says:
-
- "'I lay I MAKE you mine!'
-
- "En wid dat I fetch' her a slap side de head dat
- sont her a-sprawlin'. Den I went into de yuther
- room, en 'uz gone 'bout ten minutes; en when I
- come back dah was dat do' a-stannin' open YIT, en
- dat chile stannin' mos' right in it, a-lookin' down and
- mournin', en de tears runnin' down. My, but I WUZ
- mad! I was a-gwyne for de chile, but jis' den -- it
- was a do' dat open innerds -- jis' den, 'long come de
- wind en slam it to, behine de chile, ker-BLAM! -- en my
- lan', de chile never move'! My breff mos' hop outer
- me; en I feel so -- so -- I doan' know HOW I feel. I
- crope out, all a-tremblin', en crope aroun' en open de
- do' easy en slow, en poke my head in behine de chile,
- sof' en still, en all uv a sudden I says POW! jis' as
- loud as I could yell. SHE NEVER BUDGE! Oh, Huck, I
- bust out a-cryin' en grab her up in my arms, en say,
- 'Oh, de po' little thing! De Lord God Amighty
- fogive po' ole Jim, kaze he never gwyne to fogive his-
- self as long's he live!' Oh, she was plumb deef en
- dumb, Huck, plumb deef en dumb -- en I'd ben a-
- treat'n her so!"
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV.
-
- NEXT day, towards night, we laid up under a little
- willow towhead out in the middle, where there
- was a village on each side of the river, and the duke
- and the king begun to lay out a plan for working them
- towns. Jim he spoke to the duke, and said he hoped
- it wouldn't take but a few hours, because it got mighty
- heavy and tiresome to him when he had to lay all day
- in the wigwam tied with the rope. You see, when we
- left him all alone we had to tie him, because if any-
- body happened on to him all by himself and not tied
- it wouldn't look much like he was a runaway nigger,
- you know. So the duke said it WAS kind of hard to
- have to lay roped all day, and he'd cipher out some
- way to get around it.
-
- He was uncommon bright, the duke was, and he
- soon struck it. He dressed Jim up in King Lear's
- outfit -- it was a long curtain-calico gown, and a white
- horse-hair wig and whiskers; and then he took his
- theater paint and painted Jim's face and hands and
- ears and neck all over a dead, dull, solid blue, like a
- man that's been drownded nine days. Blamed if he
- warn't the horriblest looking outrage I ever see. Then
- the duke took and wrote out a sign on a shingle so:
-
- Sick Arab -- but harmless when not out of his head.
-
- And he nailed that shingle to a lath, and stood the
- lath up four or five foot in front of the wigwam. Jim
- was satisfied. He said it was a sight better than lying
- tied a couple of years every day, and trembling all
- over every time there was a sound. The duke told
- him to make himself free and easy, and if anybody
- ever come meddling around, he must hop out of the
- wigwam, and carry on a little, and fetch a howl or two
- like a wild beast, and he reckoned they would light out
- and leave him alone. Which was sound enough judg-
- ment; but you take the average man, and he wouldn't
- wait for him to howl. Why, he didn't only look like
- he was dead, he looked considerable more than that.
-
- These rapscallions wanted to try the Nonesuch again,
- because there was so much money in it, but they
- judged it wouldn't be safe, because maybe the news
- might a worked along down by this time. They
- couldn't hit no project that suited exactly; so at last
- the duke said he reckoned he'd lay off and work his
- brains an hour or two and see if he couldn't put up
- something on the Arkansaw village; and the king he
- allowed he would drop over to t'other village without
- any plan, but just trust in Providence to lead him the
- profitable way -- meaning the devil, I reckon. We
- had all bought store clothes where we stopped last;
- and now the king put his'n on, and he told me to put
- mine on. I done it, of course. The king's duds was
- all black, and he did look real swell and starchy. I
- never knowed how clothes could change a body be-
- fore. Why, before, he looked like the orneriest old
- rip that ever was; but now, when he'd take off his new
- white beaver and make a bow and do a smile, he
- looked that grand and good and pious that you'd say
- he had walked right out of the ark, and maybe was old
- Leviticus himself. Jim cleaned up the canoe, and I
- got my paddle ready. There was a big steamboat lay-
- ing at the shore away up under the point, about three
- mile above the town -- been there a couple of hours,
- taking on freight. Says the king:
-
- "Seein' how I'm dressed, I reckon maybe I better
- arrive down from St. Louis or Cincinnati, or some
- other big place. Go for the steamboat, Huckleberry;
- we'll come down to the village on her."
-
- I didn't have to be ordered twice to go and take a
- steamboat ride. I fetched the shore a half a mile
- above the village, and then went scooting along the
- bluff bank in the easy water. Pretty soon we come to
- a nice innocent-looking young country jake setting on
- a log swabbing the sweat off of his face, for it was
- powerful warm weather; and he had a couple of big
- carpet-bags by him.
-
- "Run her nose in shore," says the king. I done
- it. "Wher' you bound for, young man?"
-
- "For the steamboat; going to Orleans."
-
- "Git aboard," says the king. "Hold on a minute,
- my servant 'll he'p you with them bags. Jump out
- and he'p the gentleman, Adolphus" -- meaning me, I
- see.
-
- I done so, and then we all three started on again.
- The young chap was mighty thankful; said it was
- tough work toting his baggage such weather. He
- asked the king where he was going, and the king told
- him he'd come down the river and landed at the other
- village this morning, and now he was going up a few
- mile to see an old friend on a farm up there. The
- young fellow says:
-
- "When I first see you I says to myself, 'It's Mr.
- Wilks, sure, and he come mighty near getting here in
- time.' But then I says again, 'No, I reckon it ain't
- him, or else he wouldn't be paddling up the river.'
- You AIN'T him, are you?"
-
- "No, my name's Blodgett -- Elexander Blodgett --
- REVEREND Elexander Blodgett, I s'pose I must say, as
- I'm one o' the Lord's poor servants. But still I'm
- jist as able to be sorry for Mr. Wilks for not arriving
- in time, all the same, if he's missed anything by it --
- which I hope he hasn't."
-
- "Well, he don't miss any property by it, because
- he'll get that all right; but he's missed seeing his
- brother Peter die -- which he mayn't mind, nobody
- can tell as to that -- but his brother would a give
- anything in this world to see HIM before he died;
- never talked about nothing else all these three weeks;
- hadn't seen him since they was boys together -- and
- hadn't ever seen his brother William at all -- that's the
- deef and dumb one -- William ain't more than thirty
- or thirty-five. Peter and George were the only ones
- that come out here; George was the married brother;
- him and his wife both died last year. Harvey and
- William's the only ones that's left now; and, as I was
- saying, they haven't got here in time."
-
- "Did anybody send 'em word?"
-
- "Oh, yes; a month or two ago, when Peter was
- first took; because Peter said then that he sorter felt
- like he warn't going to get well this time. You see,
- he was pretty old, and George's g'yirls was too young
- to be much company for him, except Mary Jane, the
- red-headed one; and so he was kinder lonesome after
- George and his wife died, and didn't seem to care
- much to live. He most desperately wanted to see
- Harvey -- and William, too, for that matter -- because
- he was one of them kind that can't bear to make a
- will. He left a letter behind for Harvey, and said
- he'd told in it where his money was hid, and how he
- wanted the rest of the property divided up so George's
- g'yirls would be all right -- for George didn't leave
- nothing. And that letter was all they could get him
- to put a pen to."
-
- "Why do you reckon Harvey don't come? Wher'
- does he live?"
-
- "Oh, he lives in England -- Sheffield -- preaches
- there -- hasn't ever been in this country. He hasn't
- had any too much time -- and besides he mightn't a
- got the letter at all, you know."
-
- "Too bad, too bad he couldn't a lived to see his
- brothers, poor soul. You going to Orleans, you say?"
-
- "Yes, but that ain't only a part of it. I'm going
- in a ship, next Wednesday, for Ryo Janeero, where
- my uncle lives."
-
- "It's a pretty long journey. But it'll be lovely;
- wisht I was a-going. Is Mary Jane the oldest? How
- old is the others?"
-
- "Mary Jane's nineteen, Susan's fifteen, and Joanna's
- about fourteen -- that's the one that gives herself to
- good works and has a hare-lip."
-
- "Poor things! to be left alone in the cold world
- so."
-
- "Well, they could be worse off. Old Peter had
- friends, and they ain't going to let them come to no
- harm. There's Hobson, the Babtis' preacher; and
- Deacon Lot Hovey, and Ben Rucker, and Abner
- Shackleford, and Levi Bell, the lawyer; and Dr. Rob-
- inson, and their wives, and the widow Bartley, and --
- well, there's a lot of them; but these are the ones that
- Peter was thickest with, and used to write about some-
- times, when he wrote home; so Harvey 'll know where
- to look for friends when he gets here."
-
- Well, the old man went on asking questions till he
- just fairly emptied that young fellow. Blamed if he
- didn't inquire about everybody and everything in that
- blessed town, and all about the Wilkses; and about
- Peter's business -- which was a tanner; and about
- George's -- which was a carpenter; and about Har-
- vey's -- which was a dissentering minister; and so on,
- and so on. Then he says:
-
- "What did you want to walk all the way up to the
- steamboat for?"
-
- "Because she's a big Orleans boat, and I was afeard
- she mightn't stop there. When they're deep they
- won't stop for a hail. A Cincinnati boat will, but this
- is a St. Louis one."
-
- "Was Peter Wilks well off?"
-
- "Oh, yes, pretty well off. He had houses and
- land, and it's reckoned he left three or four thousand
- in cash hid up som'ers."
-
- "When did you say he died?"
-
- "I didn't say, but it was last night."
-
- "Funeral to-morrow, likely?"
-
- "Yes, 'bout the middle of the day."
-
- "Well, it's all terrible sad; but we've all got to go,
- one time or another. So what we want to do is to be
- prepared; then we're all right."
-
- "Yes, sir, it's the best way. Ma used to always
- say that."
-
- When we struck the boat she was about done load-
- ing, and pretty soon she got off. The king never said
- nothing about going aboard, so I lost my ride, after
- all. When the boat was gone the king made me pad-
- dle up another mile to a lonesome place, and then he
- got ashore and says:
-
- "Now hustle back, right off, and fetch the duke up
- here, and the new carpet-bags. And if he's gone over
- to t'other side, go over there and git him. And tell
- him to git himself up regardless. Shove along, now."
-
- I see what HE was up to; but I never said nothing,
- of course. When I got back with the duke we hid the
- canoe, and then they set down on a log, and the king
- told him everything, just like the young fellow had
- said it -- every last word of it. And all the time he
- was a-doing it he tried to talk like an Englishman;
- and he done it pretty well, too, for a slouch. I can't
- imitate him, and so I ain't a-going to try to; but he
- really done it pretty good. Then he says:
-
- "How are you on the deef and dumb, Bilgewater?"
-
- The duke said, leave him alone for that; said he had
- played a deef and dumb person on the histronic boards.
- So then they waited for a steamboat.
-
- About the middle of the afternoon a couple of little
- boats come along, but they didn't come from high
- enough up the river; but at last there was a big one,
- and they hailed her. She sent out her yawl, and we
- went aboard, and she was from Cincinnati; and when
- they found we only wanted to go four or five mile
- they was booming mad, and gave us a cussing, and
- said they wouldn't land us. But the king was ca'm.
- He says:
-
- "If gentlemen kin afford to pay a dollar a mile
- apiece to be took on and put off in a yawl, a steam-
- boat kin afford to carry 'em, can't it?"
-
- So they softened down and said it was all right;
- and when we got to the village they yawled us ashore.
- About two dozen men flocked down when they see the
- yawl a-coming, and when the king says:
-
- "Kin any of you gentlemen tell me wher' Mr. Peter
- Wilks lives?" they give a glance at one another, and
- nodded their heads, as much as to say, "What d' I
- tell you?" Then one of them says, kind of soft and
- gentle:
-
- "I'm sorry. sir, but the best we can do is to tell
- you where he DID live yesterday evening."
-
- Sudden as winking the ornery old cretur went an
- to smash, and fell up against the man, and put his
- chin on his shoulder, and cried down his back, and
- says:
-
- "Alas, alas, our poor brother -- gone, and we never
- got to see him; oh, it's too, too hard!"
-
- Then he turns around, blubbering, and makes a lot
- of idiotic signs to the duke on his hands, and blamed
- if he didn't drop a carpet-bag and bust out a-crying.
- If they warn't the beatenest lot, them two frauds, that
- ever I struck.
-
- Well, the men gathered around and sympathized
- with them, and said all sorts of kind things to them,
- and carried their carpet-bags up the hill for them, and
- let them lean on them and cry, and told the king all
- about his brother's last moments, and the king he told
- it all over again on his hands to the duke, and both of
- them took on about that dead tanner like they'd lost
- the twelve disciples. Well, if ever I struck anything
- like it, I'm a nigger. It was enough to make a body
- ashamed of the human race.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV.
-
- THE news was all over town in two minutes, and
- you could see the people tearing down on the
- run from every which way, some of them putting on
- their coats as they come. Pretty soon we was in the
- middle of a crowd, and the noise of the tramping was
- like a soldier march. The windows and dooryards was
- full; and every minute somebody would say, over a
- fence:
-
- "Is it THEM?"
-
- And somebody trotting along with the gang would
- answer back and say:
-
- "You bet it is."
-
- When we got to the house the street in front of it
- was packed, and the three girls was standing in the
- door. Mary Jane WAS red-headed, but that don't make
- no difference, she was most awful beautiful, and her
- face and her eyes was all lit up like glory, she was so
- glad her uncles was come. The king he spread his
- arms, and Marsy Jane she jumped for them, and the
- hare-lip jumped for the duke, and there they HAD it!
- Everybody most, leastways women, cried for joy to
- see them meet again at last and have such good times.
-
- Then the king he hunched the duke private -- I see
- him do it -- and then he looked around and see the
- coffin, over in the corner on two chairs; so then him
- and the duke, with a hand across each other's shoul-
- der, and t'other hand to their eyes, walked slow and
- solemn over there, everybody dropping back to give
- them room, and all the talk and noise stopping, people
- saying "Sh!" and all the men taking their hats off and
- drooping their heads, so you could a heard a pin fall.
- And when they got there they bent over and looked in
- the coffin, and took one sight, and then they bust out
- a-crying so you could a heard them to Orleans, most;
- and then they put their arms around each other's
- necks, and hung their chins over each other's shoul-
- ders; and then for three minutes, or maybe four, I
- never see two men leak the way they done. And,
- mind you, everybody was doing the same; and the
- place was that damp I never see anything like it.
- Then one of them got on one side of the coffin, and
- t'other on t'other side, and they kneeled down and
- rested their foreheads on the coffin, and let on to pray
- all to themselves. Well, when it come to that it
- worked the crowd like you never see anything like it,
- and everybody broke down and went to sobbing right
- out loud -- the poor girls, too; and every woman,
- nearly, went up to the girls, without saying a word,
- and kissed them, solemn, on the forehead, and then
- put their hand on their head, and looked up towards
- the sky, with the tears running down, and then busted
- out and went off sobbing and swabbing, and give the
- next woman a show. I never see anything so dis-
- gusting.
-
- Well, by and by the king he gets up and comes for-
- ward a little, and works himself up and slobbers out a
- speech, all full of tears and flapdoodle about its being
- a sore trial for him and his poor brother to lose the
- diseased, and to miss seeing diseased alive after the
- long journey of four thousand mile, but it's a trial
- that's sweetened and sanctified to us by this dear sym-
- pathy and these holy tears, and so he thanks them out
- of his heart and out of his brother's heart, because out
- of their mouths they can't, words being too weak and
- cold, and all that kind of rot and slush, till it was just
- sickening; and then he blubbers out a pious goody-
- goody Amen, and turns himself loose and goes to cry-
- ing fit to bust.
-
- And the minute the words were out of his mouth
- somebody over in the crowd struck up the doxolojer,
- and everybody joined in with all their might, and it
- just warmed you up and made you feel as good as
- church letting out. Music is a good thing; and after
- all that soul-butter and hogwash I never see it freshen
- up things so, and sound so honest and bully.
-
- Then the king begins to work his jaw again, and
- says how him and his nieces would be glad if a few of
- the main principal friends of the family would take
- supper here with them this evening, and help set up
- with the ashes of the diseased; and says if his poor
- brother laying yonder could speak he knows who he
- would name, for they was names that was very dear to
- him, and mentioned often in his letters; and so he will
- name the same, to wit, as follows, vizz.: -- Rev. Mr.
- Hobson, and Deacon Lot Hovey, and Mr. Ben Rucker,
- and Abner Shackleford, and Levi Bell, and Dr. Robin-
- son, and their wives, and the widow Bartley.
-
- Rev. Hobson and Dr. Robinson was down to the
- end of the town a-hunting together -- that is, I mean
- the doctor was shipping a sick man to t'other world,
- and the preacher was pinting him right. Lawyer Bell
- was away up to Louisville on business. But the rest
- was on hand, and so they all come and shook hands
- with the king and thanked him and talked to him; and
- then they shook hands with the duke and didn't say
- nothing, but just kept a-smiling and bobbing their
- heads like a passel of sapheads whilst he made all sorts
- of signs with his hands and said "Goo-goo -- goo-goo-
- goo" all the time, like a baby that can't talk.
-
- So the king he blattered along, and managed to
- inquire about pretty much everybody and dog in town,
- by his name, and mentioned all sorts of little things
- that happened one time or another in the town, or to
- George's family, or to Peter. And he always let on
- that Peter wrote him the things; but that was a lie:
- he got every blessed one of them out of that young
- flathead that we canoed up to the steamboat.
-
- Then Mary Jane she fetched the letter her father
- left behind, and the king he read it out loud and cried
- over it. It give the dwelling-house and three thousand
- dollars, gold, to the girls; and it give the tanyard
- (which was doing a good business), along with some
- other houses and land (worth about seven thousand),
- and three thousand dollars in gold to Harvey and
- William, and told where the six thousand cash was hid
- down cellar. So these two frauds said they'd go and
- fetch it up, and have everything square and above-
- board; and told me to come with a candle. We shut
- the cellar door behind us, and when they found the
- bag they spilt it out on the floor, and it was a lovely
- sight, all them yaller-boys. My, the way the king's
- eyes did shine! He slaps the duke on the shoulder
- and says:
-
- "Oh, THIS ain't bully nor noth'n! Oh, no, I reckon
- not! Why, Biljy, it beats the Nonesuch, DON'T it?"
-
- The duke allowed it did. They pawed the yaller-
- boys, and sifted them through their fingers and let
- them jingle down on the floor; and the king says:
-
- "It ain't no use talkin'; bein' brothers to a rich
- dead man and representatives of furrin heirs that's got
- left is the line for you and me, Bilge. Thish yer
- comes of trust'n to Providence. It's the best way, in
- the long run. I've tried 'em all, and ther' ain't no
- better way."
-
- Most everybody would a been satisfied with the pile,
- and took it on trust; but no, they must count it. So
- they counts it, and it comes out four hundred and
- fifteen dollars short. Says the king:
-
- "Dern him, I wonder what he done with that four
- hundred and fifteen dollars?"
-
- They worried over that awhile, and ransacked all
- around for it. Then the duke says:
-
- "Well, he was a pretty sick man, and likely he
- made a mistake -- I reckon that's the way of it. The
- best way's to let it go, and keep still about it. We
- can spare it."
-
- "Oh, shucks, yes, we can SPARE it. I don't k'yer
- noth'n 'bout that -- it's the COUNT I'm thinkin' about.
- We want to be awful square and open and above-board
- here, you know. We want to lug this h-yer money
- up stairs and count it before everybody -- then ther'
- ain't noth'n suspicious. But when the dead man says
- ther's six thous'n dollars, you know, we don't want
- to --"
-
- "Hold on," says the duke. "Le's make up the
- deffisit," and he begun to haul out yaller-boys out of
- his pocket.
-
- "It's a most amaz'n' good idea, duke -- you HAVE
- got a rattlin' clever head on you," says the king.
- "Blest if the old Nonesuch ain't a heppin' us out
- agin," and HE begun to haul out yaller-jackets and
- stack them up.
-
- It most busted them, but they made up the six
- thousand clean and clear.
-
- "Say," says the duke, "I got another idea. Le's
- go up stairs and count this money, and then take and
- GIVE IT TO THE GIRLS."
-
- "Good land, duke, lemme hug you! It's the most
- dazzling idea 'at ever a man struck. You have cert'nly
- got the most astonishin' head I ever see. Oh, this is
- the boss dodge, ther' ain't no mistake 'bout it. Let
- 'em fetch along their suspicions now if they want to --
- this 'll lay 'em out."
-
- When we got up-stairs everybody gethered around
- the table, and the king he counted it and stacked it up,
- three hundred dollars in a pile -- twenty elegant little
- piles. Everybody looked hungry at it, and licked their
- chops. Then they raked it into the bag again, and I
- see the king begin to swell himself up for another
- speech. He says:
-
- "Friends all, my poor brother that lays yonder has
- done generous by them that's left behind in the vale of
- sorrers. He has done generous by these yer poor
- little lambs that he loved and sheltered, and that's left
- fatherless and motherless. Yes, and we that knowed
- him knows that he would a done MORE generous by 'em
- if he hadn't ben afeard o' woundin' his dear William
- and me. Now, WOULDN'T he? Ther' ain't no question
- 'bout it in MY mind. Well, then, what kind o' brothers
- would it be that 'd stand in his way at sech a time?
- And what kind o' uncles would it be that 'd rob -- yes,
- ROB -- sech poor sweet lambs as these 'at he loved so at
- sech a time? If I know William -- and I THINK I do --
- he -- well, I'll jest ask him." He turns around and
- begins to make a lot of signs to the duke with his
- hands, and the duke he looks at him stupid and leather-
- headed a while; then all of a sudden he seems to catch
- his meaning, and jumps for the king, goo-gooing with
- all his might for joy, and hugs him about fifteen times
- before he lets up. Then the king says, "I knowed
- it; I reckon THAT 'll convince anybody the way HE feels
- about it. Here, Mary Jane, Susan, Joanner, take the
- money -- take it ALL. It's the gift of him that lays
- yonder, cold but joyful."
-
- Mary Jane she went for him, Susan and the hare-lip
- went for the duke, and then such another hugging and
- kissing I never see yet. And everybody crowded up
- with the tears in their eyes, and most shook the hands
- off of them frauds, saying all the time:
-
- "You DEAR good souls! -- how LOVELY! -- how COULD
- you!"
-
- Well, then, pretty soon all hands got to talking
- about the diseased again, and how good he was, and
- what a loss he was, and all that; and before long a big
- iron-jawed man worked himself in there from outside,
- and stood a-listening and looking, and not saying any-
- thing; and nobody saying anything to him either,
- because the king was talking and they was all busy
- listening. The king was saying -- in the middle of
- something he'd started in on --
-
- "-- they bein' partickler friends o' the diseased.
- That's why they're invited here this evenin'; but to-
- morrow we want ALL to come -- everybody; for he
- respected everybody, he liked everybody, and so it's
- fitten that his funeral orgies sh'd be public."
-
- And so he went a-mooning on and on, liking to hear
- himself talk, and every little while he fetched in his
- funeral orgies again, till the duke he couldn't stand it
- no more; so he writes on a little scrap of paper,
- "OBSEQUIES, you old fool," and folds it up, and goes
- to goo-gooing and reaching it over people's heads to
- him. The king he reads it and puts it in his pocket,
- and says:
-
- "Poor William, afflicted as he is, his HEART'S aluz
- right. Asks me to invite everybody to come to the
- funeral -- wants me to make 'em all welcome. But he
- needn't a worried -- it was jest what I was at."
-
- Then he weaves along again, perfectly ca'm, and
- goes to dropping in his funeral orgies again every now
- and then, just like he done before. And when he
- done it the third time he says:
-
- "I say orgies, not because it's the common term,
- because it ain't -- obsequies bein' the common term --
- but because orgies is the right term. Obsequies ain't
- used in England no more now -- it's gone out. We
- say orgies now in England. Orgies is better, because
- it means the thing you're after more exact. It's a
- word that's made up out'n the Greek ORGO, outside,
- open, abroad; and the Hebrew JEESUM, to plant, cover
- up; hence inTER. So, you see, funeral orgies is an
- open er public funeral."
-
- He was the WORST I ever struck. Well, the iron-
- jawed man he laughed right in his face. Everybody
- was shocked. Everybody says, "Why, DOCTOR!" and
- Abner Shackleford says:
-
- "Why, Robinson, hain't you heard the news? This
- is Harvey Wilks."
-
- The king he smiled eager, and shoved out his
- flapper, and says:
-
- "Is it my poor brother's dear good friend and phy-
- sician? I --"
-
- "Keep your hands off of me!" says the doctor.
- "YOU talk like an Englishman, DON'T you? It's the
- worst imitation I ever heard. YOU Peter Wilks's
- brother! You're a fraud, that's what you are!"
-
- Well, how they all took on! They crowded around
- the doctor and tried to quiet him down, and tried to
- explain to him and tell him how Harvey 'd showed in
- forty ways that he WAS Harvey, and knowed every-
- body by name, and the names of the very dogs, and
- begged and BEGGED him not to hurt Harvey's feelings
- and the poor girl's feelings, and all that. But it warn't
- no use; he stormed right along, and said any man that
- pretended to be an Englishman and couldn't imitate
- the lingo no better than what he did was a fraud and a
- liar. The poor girls was hanging to the king and cry-
- ing; and all of a sudden the doctor ups and turns on
- THEM. He says:
-
- "I was your father's friend, and I'm your friend;
- and I warn you as a friend, and an honest one that
- wants to protect you and keep you out of harm and
- trouble, to turn your backs on that scoundrel and have
- nothing to do with him, the ignorant tramp, with his
- idiotic Greek and Hebrew, as he calls it. He is the
- thinnest kind of an impostor -- has come here with a
- lot of empty names and facts which he picked up
- somewheres, and you take them for PROOFS, and are
- helped to fool yourselves by these foolish friends here,
- who ought to know better. Mary Jane Wilks, you
- know me for your friend, and for your unselfish friend,
- too. Now listen to me; turn this pitiful rascal out --
- I BEG you to do it. Will you?"
-
- Mary Jane straightened herself up, and my, but she
- was handsome! She says:
-
- "HERE is my answer." She hove up the bag of
- money and put it in the king's hands, and says,
- "Take this six thousand dollars, and invest for me
- and my sisters any way you want to, and don't give
- us no receipt for it."
-
- Then she put her arm around the king on one side,
- and Susan and the hare-lip done the same on the
- other. Everybody clapped their hands and stomped
- on the floor like a perfect storm, whilst the king held
- up his head and smiled proud. The doctor says:
-
- "All right; I wash MY hands of the matter. But I
- warn you all that a time 's coming when you're going
- to feel sick whenever you think of this day." And
- away he went.
-
- "All right, doctor," says the king, kinder mocking
- him; "we'll try and get 'em to send for you;" which
- made them all laugh, and they said it was a prime
- good hit.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI.
-
- WELL, when they was all gone the king he asks
- Mary Jane how they was off for spare rooms,
- and she said she had one spare room, which would do
- for Uncle William, and she'd give her own room to
- Uncle Harvey, which was a little bigger, and she would
- turn into the room with her sisters and sleep on a cot;
- and up garret was a little cubby, with a pallet in it.
- The king said the cubby would do for his valley --
- meaning me.
-
- So Mary Jane took us up, and she showed them
- their rooms, which was plain but nice. She said she'd
- have her frocks and a lot of other traps took out of
- her room if they was in Uncle Harvey's way, but he
- said they warn't. The frocks was hung along the wall,
- and before them was a curtain made out of calico that
- hung down to the floor. There was an old hair trunk
- in one corner, and a guitar-box in another, and all
- sorts of little knickknacks and jimcracks around, like
- girls brisken up a room with. The king said it was all
- the more homely and more pleasanter for these fixings,
- and so don't disturb them. The duke's room was
- pretty small, but plenty good enough, and so was my
- cubby.
-
- That night they had a big supper, and all them men
- and women was there, and I stood behind the king and
- the duke's chairs and waited on them, and the niggers
- waited on the rest. Mary Jane she set at the head of
- the table, with Susan alongside of her, and said how
- bad the biscuits was, and how mean the preserves was,
- and how ornery and tough the fried chickens was --
- and all that kind of rot, the way women always do for
- to force out compliments; and the people all knowed
- everything was tiptop, and said so -- said "How DO
- you get biscuits to brown so nice?" and "Where, for
- the land's sake, DID you get these amaz'n pickles?"
- and all that kind of humbug talky-talk, just the way
- people always does at a supper, you know.
-
- And when it was all done me and the hare-lip had
- supper in the kitchen off of the leavings, whilst the others
- was helping the niggers clean up the things. The
- hare-lip she got to pumping me about England, and
- blest if I didn't think the ice was getting mighty thin
- sometimes. She says:
-
- "Did you ever see the king?"
-
- "Who? William Fourth? Well, I bet I have -- he
- goes to our church." I knowed he was dead years
- ago, but I never let on. So when I says he goes to
- our church, she says:
-
- "What -- regular?"
-
- "Yes -- regular. His pew's right over opposite
- ourn -- on t'other side the pulpit."
-
- "I thought he lived in London?"
-
- "Well, he does. Where WOULD he live?"
-
- "But I thought YOU lived in Sheffield?"
-
- I see I was up a stump. I had to let on to get
- choked with a chicken bone, so as to get time to think
- how to get down again. Then I says:
-
- "I mean he goes to our church regular when he's in
- Sheffield. That's only in the summer time, when he
- comes there to take the sea baths."
-
- "Why, how you talk -- Sheffield ain't on the sea."
-
- "Well, who said it was?"
-
- "Why, you did."
-
- "I DIDN'T nuther."
-
- "You did!"
-
- "I didn't."
-
- "You did."
-
- "I never said nothing of the kind."
-
- "Well, what DID you say, then?"
-
- "Said he come to take the sea BATHS -- that's what I
- said."
-
- "Well, then, how's he going to take the sea baths if
- it ain't on the sea?"
-
- "Looky here," I says; "did you ever see any
- Congress-water?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Well, did you have to go to Congress to get
- it?"
-
- "Why, no."
-
- "Well, neither does William Fourth have to go to
- the sea to get a sea bath."
-
- "How does he get it, then?"
-
- "Gets it the way people down here gets Congress-
- water -- in barrels. There in the palace at Sheffield
- they've got furnaces, and he wants his water hot.
- They can't bile that amount of water away off there at
- the sea. They haven't got no conveniences for it."
-
- "Oh, I see, now. You might a said that in the first
- place and saved time."
-
- When she said that I see I was out of the woods
- again, and so I was comfortable and glad. Next, she
- says:
-
- "Do you go to church, too?"
-
- "Yes -- regular."
-
- "Where do you set?"
-
- "Why, in our pew."
-
- "WHOSE pew?"
-
- "Why, OURN -- your Uncle Harvey's."
-
- "His'n? What does HE want with a pew?"
-
- "Wants it to set in. What did you RECKON he wanted
- with it?"
-
- "Why, I thought he'd be in the pulpit."
-
- Rot him, I forgot he was a preacher. I see I was
- up a stump again, so I played another chicken bone
- and got another think. Then I says:
-
- "Blame it, do you suppose there ain't but one
- preacher to a church?"
-
- "Why, what do they want with more?"
-
- "What! -- to preach before a king? I never did
- see such a girl as you. They don't have no less than
- seventeen."
-
- "Seventeen! My land! Why, I wouldn't set out
- such a string as that, not if I NEVER got to glory. It
- must take 'em a week."
-
- "Shucks, they don't ALL of 'em preach the same
- day -- only ONE of 'em."
-
-
- "Well, then, what does the rest of 'em do?"
-
- "Oh, nothing much. Loll around, pass the plate
- -- and one thing or another. But mainly they don't
- do nothing."
-
- "Well, then, what are they FOR?"
-
- "Why, they're for STYLE. Don't you know noth-
- ing?"
-
- "Well, I don't WANT to know no such foolishness as
- that. How is servants treated in England? Do they
- treat 'em better 'n we treat our niggers?"
-
- "NO! A servant ain't nobody there. They treat
- them worse than dogs."
-
- "Don't they give 'em holidays, the way we do,
- Christmas and New Year's week, and Fourth of July?"
-
- "Oh, just listen! A body could tell YOU hain't ever
- been to England by that. Why, Hare-l -- why, Joanna,
- they never see a holiday from year's end to year's
- end; never go to the circus, nor theater, nor nigger
- shows, nor nowheres."
-
- "Nor church?"
-
- "Nor church."
-
- "But YOU always went to church."
-
- Well, I was gone up again. I forgot I was the old
- man's servant. But next minute I whirled in on a
- kind of an explanation how a valley was different from
- a common servant and HAD to go to church whether
- he wanted to or not, and set with the family, on ac-
- count of its being the law. But I didn't do it pretty
- good, and when I got done I see she warn't satisfied.
- She says:
-
- "Honest injun, now, hain't you been telling me a
- lot of lies?"
-
- "Honest injun," says I.
-
- "None of it at all?"
-
- "None of it at all. Not a lie in it," says I.
-
- "Lay your hand on this book and say it."
-
- I see it warn't nothing but a dictionary, so I laid my
- hand on it and said it. So then she looked a little
- better satisfied, and says:
-
- "Well, then, I'll believe some of it; but I hope to
- gracious if I'll believe the rest."
-
- "What is it you won't believe, Joe?" says Mary
- Jane, stepping in with Susan behind her. "It ain't
- right nor kind for you to talk so to him, and him a
- stranger and so far from his people. How would you
- like to be treated so?"
-
- "That's always your way, Maim -- always sailing in
- to help somebody before they're hurt. I hain't done
- nothing to him. He's told some stretchers, I reckon,
- and I said I wouldn't swallow it all; and that's every
- bit and grain I DID say. I reckon he can stand a little
- thing like that, can't he?"
-
- "I don't care whether 'twas little or whether 'twas
- big; he's here in our house and a stranger, and it
- wasn't good of you to say it. If you was in his place
- it would make you feel ashamed; and so you oughtn't
- to say a thing to another person that will make THEM
- feel ashamed."
-
- "Why, Maim, he said --"
-
- "It don't make no difference what he SAID -- that
- ain't the thing. The thing is for you to treat him
- KIND, and not be saying things to make him remember
- he ain't in his own country and amongst his own
- folks."
-
- I says to myself, THIS is a girl that I'm letting that
- old reptle rob her of her money!
-
- Then Susan SHE waltzed in; and if you'll believe
- me, she did give Hare-lip hark from the tomb!
-
- Says I to myself, and this is ANOTHER one that I'm
- letting him rob her of her money!
-
- Then Mary Jane she took another inning, and went
- in sweet and lovely again -- which was her way; but
- when she got done there warn't hardly anything left o'
- poor Hare-lip. So she hollered.
-
- "All right, then," says the other girls; "you just
- ask his pardon."
-
- She done it, too; and she done it beautiful. She
- done it so beautiful it was good to hear; and I wished
- I could tell her a thousand lies, so she could do it
- again.
-
- I says to myself, this is ANOTHER one that I'm letting
- him rob her of her money. And when she got through
- they all jest laid theirselves out to make me feel at
- home and know I was amongst friends. I felt so
- ornery and low down and mean that I says to myself,
- my mind's made up; I'll hive that money for them or
- bust.
-
- So then I lit out -- for bed, I said, meaning some
- time or another. When I got by myself I went to
- thinking the thing over. I says to myself, shall I go
- to that doctor, private, and blow on these frauds?
- No -- that won't do. He might tell who told him;
- then the king and the duke would make it warm for
- me. Shall I go, private, and tell Mary Jane? No --
- I dasn't do it. Her face would give them a hint,
- sure; they've got the money, and they'd slide right
- out and get away with it. If she was to fetch in help
- I'd get mixed up in the business before it was done
- with, I judge. No; there ain't no good way but one.
- I got to steal that money, somehow; and I got to
- steal it some way that they won't suspicion that I done
- it. They've got a good thing here, and they ain't
- a-going to leave till they've played this family and this
- town for all they're worth, so I'll find a chance time
- enough. I'll steal it and hide it; and by and by,
- when I'm away down the river, I'll write a letter and
- tell Mary Jane where it's hid. But I better hive it to-
- night if I can, because the doctor maybe hasn't let up
- as much as he lets on he has; he might scare them
- out of here yet.
-
- So, thinks I, I'll go and search them rooms. Up-
- stairs the hall was dark, but I found the duke's room,
- and started to paw around it with my hands; but I
- recollected it wouldn't be much like the king to let
- anybody else take care of that money but his own self;
- so then I went to his room and begun to paw around
- there. But I see I couldn't do nothing without a
- candle, and I dasn't light one, of course. So I judged
- I'd got to do the other thing -- lay for them and
- eavesdrop. About that time I hears their footsteps
- coming, and was going to skip under the bed; I
- reached for it, but it wasn't where I thought it would
- be; but I touched the curtain that hid Mary Jane's
- frocks, so I jumped in behind that and snuggled in
- amongst the gowns, and stood there perfectly still.
-
- They come in and shut the door; and the first thing
- the duke done was to get down and look under the
- bed. Then I was glad I hadn't found the bed when I
- wanted it. And yet, you know, it's kind of natural to
- hide under the bed when you are up to anything
- private. They sets down then, and the king says:
-
- "Well, what is it? And cut it middlin' short, be-
- cause it's better for us to be down there a-whoopin'
- up the mournin' than up here givin' 'em a chance to
- talk us over."
-
- "Well, this is it, Capet. I ain't easy; I ain't com-
- fortable. That doctor lays on my mind. I wanted to
- know your plans. I've got a notion, and I think it's a
- sound one."
-
- "What is it, duke?"
-
- "That we better glide out of this before three in the
- morning, and clip it down the river with what we've
- got. Specially, seeing we got it so easy -- GIVEN back
- to us, flung at our heads, as you may say, when of
- course we allowed to have to steal it back. I'm for
- knocking off and lighting out."
-
- That made me feel pretty bad. About an hour or
- two ago it would a been a little different, but now it
- made me feel bad and disappointed, The king rips out
- and says:
-
- "What! And not sell out the rest o' the property?
- March off like a passel of fools and leave eight or nine
- thous'n' dollars' worth o' property layin' around jest
- sufferin' to be scooped in? -- and all good, salable
- stuff, too."
-
- The duke he grumbled; said the bag of gold was
- enough, and he didn't want to go no deeper -- didn't
- want to rob a lot of orphans of EVERYTHING they had.
-
- "Why, how you talk!" says the king. "We
- sha'n't rob 'em of nothing at all but jest this money.
- The people that BUYS the property is the suff'rers;
- because as soon 's it's found out 'at we didn't own
- it -- which won't be long after we've slid -- the sale
- won't be valid, and it 'll all go back to the estate.
- These yer orphans 'll git their house back agin, and
- that's enough for THEM; they're young and spry, and
- k'n easy earn a livin'. THEY ain't a-goin to suffer.
- Why, jest think -- there's thous'n's and thous'n's that
- ain't nigh so well off. Bless you, THEY ain't got noth'n'
- to complain of."
-
- Well, the king he talked him blind; so at last he
- give in, and said all right, but said he believed it was
- blamed foolishness to stay, and that doctor hanging
- over them. But the king says:
-
- "Cuss the doctor! What do we k'yer for HIM?
- Hain't we got all the fools in town on our side? And
- ain't that a big enough majority in any town?"
-
- So they got ready to go down stairs again. The
- duke says:
-
- "I don't think we put that money in a good place."
-
- That cheered me up. I'd begun to think I warn't
- going to get a hint of no kind to help me. The king
- says:
-
- "Why?"
-
- "Because Mary Jane 'll be in mourning from this
- out; and first you know the nigger that does up the
- rooms will get an order to box these duds up and put
- 'em away; and do you reckon a nigger can run across
- money and not borrow some of it?"
-
- "Your head's level agin, duke," says the king; and
- he comes a-fumbling under the curtain two or three
- foot from where I was. I stuck tight to the wall and
- kept mighty still, though quivery; and I wondered
- what them fellows would say to me if they catched
- me; and I tried to think what I'd better do if they did
- catch me. But the king he got the bag before I could
- think more than about a half a thought, and he never
- suspicioned I was around. They took and shoved the
- bag through a rip in the straw tick that was under the
- feather-bed, and crammed it in a foot or two amongst
- the straw and said it was all right now, because a
- nigger only makes up the feather-bed, and don't turn
- over the straw tick only about twice a year, and so it
- warn't in no danger of getting stole now.
-
- But I knowed better. I had it out of there before
- they was half-way down stairs. I groped along up to
- my cubby, and hid it there till I could get a chance
- to do better. I judged I better hide it outside of the
- house somewheres, because if they missed it they would
- give the house a good ransacking: I knowed that very
- well. Then I turned in, with my clothes all on; but I
- couldn't a gone to sleep if I'd a wanted to, I was in
- such a sweat to get through with the business. By
- and by I heard the king and the duke come up; so I
- rolled off my pallet and laid with my chin at the top of
- my ladder, and waited to see if anything was going to
- happen. But nothing did.
-
- So I held on till all the late sounds had quit and the
- early ones hadn't begun yet; and then I slipped down
- the ladder.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII.
-
- I CREPT to their doors and listened; they was snor-
- ing. So I tiptoed along, and got down stairs all
- right. There warn't a sound anywheres. I peeped
- through a crack of the dining-room door, and see the
- men that was watching the corpse all sound asleep on
- their chairs. The door was open into the parlor, where
- the corpse was laying, and there was a candle in both
- rooms. I passed along, and the parlor door was open;
- but I see there warn't nobody in there but the re-
- mainders of Peter; so I shoved on by; but the front
- door was locked, and the key wasn't there. Just then
- I heard somebody coming down the stairs, back behind
- me. I run in the parlor and took a swift look around,
- and the only place I see to hide the bag was in the
- coffin. The lid was shoved along about a foot, show-
- ing the dead man's face down in there, with a wet
- cloth over it, and his shroud on. I tucked the money-
- bag in under the lid, just down beyond where his
- hands was crossed, which made me creep, they was so
- cold, and then I run back across the room and in
- behind the door.
-
- The person coming was Mary Jane. She went to
- the coffin, very soft, and kneeled down and looked in;
- then she put up her handkerchief, and I see she begun
- to cry, though I couldn't hear her, and her back was
- to me. I slid out, and as I passed the dining-room I
- thought I'd make sure them watchers hadn't seen me;
- so I looked through the crack, and everything was all
- right. They hadn't stirred.
-
- I slipped up to bed, feeling ruther blue, on accounts
- of the thing playing out that way after I had took so
- much trouble and run so much resk about it. Says I,
- if it could stay where it is, all right; because when we
- get down the river a hundred mile or two I could write
- back to Mary Jane, and she could dig him up again
- and get it; but that ain't the thing that's going to
- happen; the thing that's going to happen is, the
- money 'll be found when they come to screw on the
- lid. Then the king 'll get it again, and it 'll be a long
- day before he gives anybody another chance to smouch
- it from him. Of course I WANTED to slide down and
- get it out of there, but I dasn't try it. Every minute
- it was getting earlier now, and pretty soon some of
- them watchers would begin to stir, and I might get
- catched -- catched with six thousand dollars in my
- hands that nobody hadn't hired me to take care of. I
- don't wish to be mixed up in no such business as that,
- I says to myself.
-
- When I got down stairs in the morning the parlor
- was shut up, and the watchers was gone. There warn't
- nobody around but the family and the widow Bartley
- and our tribe. I watched their faces to see if anything
- had been happening, but I couldn't tell.
-
- Towards the middle of the day the undertaker come
- with his man, and they set the coffin in the middle of
- the room on a couple of chairs, and then set all our
- chairs in rows, and borrowed more from the neighbors
- till the hall and the parlor and the dining-room was
- full. I see the coffin lid was the way it was before,
- but I dasn't go to look in under it, with folks around.
-
- Then the people begun to flock in, and the beats
- and the girls took seats in the front row at the head of
- the coffin, and for a half an hour the people filed
- around slow, in single rank, and looked down at the
- dead man's face a minute, and some dropped in a tear,
- and it was all very still and solemn, only the girls and
- the beats holding handkerchiefs to their eyes and keep-
- ing their heads bent, and sobbing a little. There
- warn't no other sound but the scraping of the feet on
- the floor and blowing noses -- because people always
- blows them more at a funeral than they do at other
- places except church.
-
- When the place was packed full the undertaker he
- slid around in his black gloves with his softy soother-
- ing ways, putting on the last touches, and getting
- people and things all ship-shape and comfortable, and
- making no more sound than a cat. He never spoke;
- he moved people around, he squeezed in late ones, he
- opened up passageways, and done it with nods, and
- signs with his hands. Then he took his place over
- against the wall. He was the softest, glidingest,
- stealthiest man I ever see; and there warn't no more
- smile to him than there is to a ham.
-
- They had borrowed a melodeum -- a sick one; and
- when everything was ready a young woman set down
- and worked it, and it was pretty skreeky and colicky,
- and everybody joined in and sung, and Peter was the
- only one that had a good thing, according to my
- notion. Then the Reverend Hobson opened up, slow
- and solemn, and begun to talk; and straight off the
- most outrageous row busted out in the cellar a body
- ever heard; it was only one dog, but he made a most
- powerful racket, and he kept it up right along; the
- parson he had to stand there, over the coffin, and wait
- -- you couldn't hear yourself think. It was right
- down awkward, and nobody didn't seem to know what
- to do. But pretty soon they see that long-legged
- undertaker make a sign to the preacher as much as to
- say, "Don't you worry -- just depend on me." Then
- he stooped down and begun to glide along the wall,
- just his shoulders showing over the people's heads.
- So he glided along, and the powwow and racket get-
- ting more and more outrageous all the time; and at
- last, when he had gone around two sides of the room,
- he disappears down cellar. Then in about two seconds
- we heard a whack, and the dog he finished up with a
- most amazing howl or two, and then everything was
- dead still, and the parson begun his solemn talk where
- he left off. In a minute or two here comes this under-
- taker's back and shoulders gliding along the wall
- again; and so he glided and glided around three sides
- of the room, and then rose up, and shaded his mouth
- with his hands, and stretched his neck out towards the
- preacher, over the people's heads, and says, in a kind
- of a coarse whisper, "HE HAD A RAT!" Then he
- drooped down and glided along the wall again to his
- place. You could see it was a great satisfaction to the
- people, because naturally they wanted to know. A
- little thing like that don't cost nothing, and it's just the
- little things that makes a man to be looked up to and
- liked. There warn't no more popular man in town
- than what that undertaker was.
-
- Well, the funeral sermon was very good, but pison
- long and tiresome; and then the king he shoved in and
- got off some of his usual rubbage, and at last the job
- was through, and the undertaker begun to sneak up on
- the coffin with his screw-driver. I was in a sweat
- then, and watched him pretty keen. But he never
- meddled at all; just slid the lid along as soft as mush,
- and screwed it down tight and fast. So there I was!
- I didn't know whether the money was in there or not.
- So, says I, s'pose somebody has hogged that bag on
- the sly? -- now how do I know whether to write to
- Mary Jane or not? S'pose she dug him up and didn't
- find nothing, what would she think of me? Blame it,
- I says, I might get hunted up and jailed; I'd better
- lay low and keep dark, and not write at all; the thing's
- awful mixed now; trying to better it, I've worsened it
- a hundred times, and I wish to goodness I'd just let it
- alone, dad fetch the whole business!
-
- They buried him, and we come back home, and I
- went to watching faces again -- I couldn't help it, and
- I couldn't rest easy. But nothing come of it; the
- faces didn't tell me nothing.
-
- The king he visited around in the evening, and
- sweetened everybody up, and made himself ever so
- friendly; and he give out the idea that his congrega-
- tion over in England would be in a sweat about him,
- so he must hurry and settle up the estate right away
- and leave for home. He was very sorry he was so
- pushed, and so was everybody; they wished he could
- stay longer, but they said they could see it couldn't be
- done. And he said of course him and William would
- take the girls home with them; and that pleased every-
- body too, because then the girls would be well fixed and
- amongst their own relations; and it pleased the girls,
- too -- tickled them so they clean forgot they ever had
- a trouble in the world; and told him to sell out as
- quick as he wanted to, they would be ready. Them
- poor things was that glad and happy it made my heart
- ache to see them getting fooled and lied to so, but I
- didn't see no safe way for me to chip in and change
- the general tune.
-
- Well, blamed if the king didn't bill the house and
- the niggers and all the property for auction straight
- off -- sale two days after the funeral; but anybody
- could buy private beforehand if they wanted to.
-
- So the next day after the funeral, along about noon-
- time, the girls' joy got the first jolt. A couple of
- nigger traders come along, and the king sold them the
- niggers reasonable, for three-day drafts as they called
- it, and away they went, the two sons up the river to
- Memphis, and their mother down the river to Orleans.
- I thought them poor girls and them niggers would
- break their hearts for grief; they cried around each
- other, and took on so it most made me down sick to
- see it. The girls said they hadn't ever dreamed of
- seeing the family separated or sold away from the
- town. I can't ever get it out of my memory, the
- sight of them poor miserable girls and niggers hanging
- around each other's necks and crying; and I reckon I
- couldn't a stood it all, but would a had to bust out
- and tell on our gang if I hadn't knowed the sale warn't
- no account and the niggers would be back home in a
- week or two.
-
- The thing made a big stir in the town, too, and a
- good many come out flatfooted and said it was scandal-
- ous to separate the mother and the children that way.
- It injured the frauds some; but the old fool he bulled
- right along, spite of all the duke could say or do, and
- I tell you the duke was powerful uneasy.
-
- Next day was auction day. About broad day in the
- morning the king and the duke come up in the garret
- and woke me up, and I see by their look that there
- was trouble. The king says:
-
- "Was you in my room night before last?"
-
- "No, your majesty" -- which was the way I always
- called him when nobody but our gang warn't around.
-
- "Was you in there yisterday er last night?"
-
- "No, your majesty."
-
- "Honor bright, now -- no lies."
-
- "Honor bright, your majesty, I'm telling you the
- truth. I hain't been a-near your room since Miss Mary
- Jane took you and the duke and showed it to you."
-
- The duke says:
-
- "Have you seen anybody else go in there?"
-
- "No, your grace, not as I remember, I believe."
-
- "Stop and think."
-
- I studied awhile and see my chance; then I says:
-
- "Well, I see the niggers go in there several times."
-
- Both of them gave a little jump, and looked like
- they hadn't ever expected it, and then like they HAD.
- Then the duke says:
-
- "What, all of them?"
-
- "No -- leastways, not all at once -- that is, I don't
- think I ever see them all come OUT at once but just one
- time."
-
- "Hello! When was that?"
-
- "It was the day we had the funeral. In the morn-
- ing. It warn't early, because I overslept. I was just
- starting down the ladder, and I see them."
-
- "Well, go on, GO on! What did they do? How'd
- they act?"
-
- "They didn't do nothing. And they didn't act
- anyway much, as fur as I see. They tiptoed away;
- so I seen, easy enough, that they'd shoved in there to
- do up your majesty's room, or something, s'posing
- you was up; and found you WARN'T up, and so they
- was hoping to slide out of the way of trouble without
- waking you up, if they hadn't already waked you up."
-
- "Great guns, THIS is a go!" says the king; and
- both of them looked pretty sick and tolerable silly.
- They stood there a-thinking and scratching their heads
- a minute, and the duke he bust into a kind of a little
- raspy chuckle, and says:
-
- "It does beat all how neat the niggers played their
- hand. They let on to be SORRY they was going out of
- this region! And I believed they WAS sorry, and so
- did you, and so did everybody. Don't ever tell ME
- any more that a nigger ain't got any histrionic talent.
- Why, the way they played that thing it would fool
- ANYBODY. In my opinion, there's a fortune in 'em. If
- I had capital and a theater, I wouldn't want a better
- lay-out than that -- and here we've gone and sold 'em
- for a song. Yes, and ain't privileged to sing the song
- yet. Say, where IS that song -- that draft?"
-
- "In the bank for to be collected. Where WOULD it
- be?"
-
- "Well, THAT'S all right then, thank goodness."
-
- Says I, kind of timid-like:
-
- "Is something gone wrong?"
-
- The king whirls on me and rips out:
-
- "None o' your business! You keep your head
- shet, and mind y'r own affairs -- if you got any.
- Long as you're in this town don't you forgit THAT --
- you hear?" Then he says to the duke, "We got to
- jest swaller it and say noth'n': mum's the word for US."
-
- As they was starting down the ladder the duke he
- chuckles again, and says:
-
- "Quick sales AND small profits! It's a good busi-
- ness -- yes."
-
- The king snarls around on him and says:
-
- "I was trying to do for the best in sellin' 'em out
- so quick. If the profits has turned out to be none,
- lackin' considable, and none to carry, is it my fault
- any more'n it's yourn?"
-
- "Well, THEY'D be in this house yet and we WOULDN'T
- if I could a got my advice listened to."
-
- The king sassed back as much as was safe for him,
- and then swapped around and lit into ME again. He
- give me down the banks for not coming and TELLING
- him I see the niggers come out of his room acting that
- way -- said any fool would a KNOWED something was
- up. And then waltzed in and cussed HIMSELF awhile,
- and said it all come of him not laying late and taking
- his natural rest that morning, and he'd be blamed if he'd
- ever do it again. So they went off a-jawing; and I
- felt dreadful glad I'd worked it all off on to the niggers,
- and yet hadn't done the niggers no harm by it.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII.
-
- BY and by it was getting-up time. So I come down
- the ladder and started for down-stairs; but as I
- come to the girls' room the door was open, and I see
- Mary Jane setting by her old hair trunk, which was
- open and she'd been packing things in it -- getting
- ready to go to England. But she had stopped now
- with a folded gown in her lap, and had her face in her
- hands, crying. I felt awful bad to see it; of course
- anybody would. I went in there and says:
-
- "Miss Mary Jane, you can't a-bear to see people
- in trouble, and I can't -- most always. Tell me
- about it."
-
- So she done it. And it was the niggers -- I just
- expected it. She said the beautiful trip to England
- was most about spoiled for her; she didn't know HOW
- she was ever going to be happy there, knowing the
- mother and the children warn't ever going to see
- each other no more -- and then busted out bitterer
- than ever, and flung up her hands, and says:
-
- "Oh, dear, dear, to think they ain't EVER going to
- see each other any more!"
-
- "But they WILL -- and inside of two weeks -- and I
- KNOW it!" says I.
-
- Laws, it was out before I could think! And before
- I could budge she throws her arms around my neck
- and told me to say it AGAIN, say it AGAIN, say it AGAIN!
-
- I see I had spoke too sudden and said too much,
- and was in a close place. I asked her to let me think
- a minute; and she set there, very impatient and ex-
- cited and handsome, but looking kind of happy and
- eased-up, like a person that's had a tooth pulled out.
- So I went to studying it out. I says to myself, I
- reckon a body that ups and tells the truth when he is
- in a tight place is taking considerable many resks,
- though I ain't had no experience, and can't say for
- certain; but it looks so to me, anyway; and yet here's
- a case where I'm blest if it don't look to me like the
- truth is better and actuly SAFER than a lie. I must lay
- it by in my mind, and think it over some time or
- other, it's so kind of strange and unregular. I never
- see nothing like it. Well, I says to myself at last,
- I'm a-going to chance it; I'll up and tell the truth this
- time, though it does seem most like setting down on a
- kag of powder and touching it off just to see where
- you'll go to. Then I says:
-
- "Miss Mary Jane, is there any place out of town a
- little ways where you could go and stay three or four
- days?"
-
- "Yes; Mr. Lothrop's. Why?"
-
- "Never mind why yet. If I'll tell you how I know
- the niggers will see each other again inside of two
- weeks -- here in this house -- and PROVE how I know
- it -- will you go to Mr. Lothrop's and stay four days?"
-
- "Four days!" she says; "I'll stay a year!"
-
- "All right," I says, "I don't want nothing more
- out of YOU than just your word -- I druther have it than
- another man's kiss-the-Bible." She smiled and red-
- dened up very sweet, and I says, "If you don't mind
- it, I'll shut the door -- and bolt it."
-
- Then I come back and set down again, and says:
-
- "Don't you holler. Just set still and take it like a
- man. I got to tell the truth, and you want to brace
- up, Miss Mary, because it's a bad kind, and going to
- be hard to take, but there ain't no help for it. These
- uncles of yourn ain't no uncles at all; they're a couple
- of frauds -- regular dead-beats. There, now we're
- over the worst of it, you can stand the rest middling
- easy."
-
- It jolted her up like everything, of course; but I
- was over the shoal water now, so I went right along,
- her eyes a-blazing higher and higher all the time, and
- told her every blame thing, from where we first struck
- that young fool going up to the steamboat, clear
- through to where she flung herself on to the king's
- breast at the front door and he kissed her sixteen or
- seventeen times -- and then up she jumps, with her
- face afire like sunset, and says:
-
- "The brute! Come, don't waste a minute -- not a
- SECOND -- we'll have them tarred and feathered, and
- flung in the river!"
-
- Says I:
-
- "Cert'nly. But do you mean BEFORE you go to Mr.
- Lothrop's, or --"
-
- "Oh," she says, "what am I THINKING about!"
- she says, and set right down again. "Don't mind
- what I said -- please don't -- you WON'T, now, WILL
- you?" Laying her silky hand on mine in that kind
- of a way that I said I would die first. "I never
- thought, I was so stirred up," she says; "now go on,
- and I won't do so any more. You tell me what to do,
- and whatever you say I'll do it."
-
- "Well," I says, "it's a rough gang, them two
- frauds, and I'm fixed so I got to travel with them a
- while longer, whether I want to or not -- I druther not
- tell you why; and if you was to blow on them this
- town would get me out of their claws, and I'd be all
- right; but there'd be another person that you don't
- know about who'd be in big trouble. Well, we got
- to save HIM, hain't we? Of course. Well, then, we
- won't blow on them."
-
- Saying them words put a good idea in my head. I
- see how maybe I could get me and Jim rid of the
- frauds; get them jailed here, and then leave. But I
- didn't want to run the raft in the daytime without any-
- body aboard to answer questions but me; so I didn't
- want the plan to begin working till pretty late to-night.
- I says:
-
- "Miss Mary Jane, I'll tell you what we'll do, and
- you won't have to stay at Mr. Lothrop's so long,
- nuther. How fur is it?"
-
- "A little short of four miles -- right out in the
- country, back here."
-
- "Well, that 'll answer. Now you go along out there,
- and lay low till nine or half-past to-night, and then get
- them to fetch you home again -- tell them you've
- thought of something. If you get here before eleven
- put a candle in this window, and if I don't turn up
- wait TILL eleven, and THEN if I don't turn up it means
- I'm gone, and out of the way, and safe. Then you
- come out and spread the news around, and get these
- beats jailed."
-
- "Good," she says, "I'll do it."
-
- "And if it just happens so that I don't get away,
- but get took up along with them, you must up and say
- I told you the whole thing beforehand, and you must
- stand by me all you can."
-
- "Stand by you! indeed I will. They sha'n't touch
- a hair of your head!" she says, and I see her nostrils
- spread and her eyes snap when she said it, too.
-
- "If I get away I sha'n't be here," I says, "to
- prove these rapscallions ain't your uncles, and I
- couldn't do it if I WAS here. I could swear they was
- beats and bummers, that's all, though that's worth
- something. Well, there's others can do that better than
- what I can, and they're people that ain't going to be
- doubted as quick as I'd be. I'll tell you how to find
- them. Gimme a pencil and a piece of paper. There
- -- 'Royal Nonesuch, Bricksville.' Put it away, and
- don't lose it. When the court wants to find out some-
- thing about these two, let them send up to Bricksville
- and say they've got the men that played the Royal
- Nonesuch, and ask for some witnesses -- why, you'll
- have that entire town down here before you can hardly
- wink, Miss Mary. And they'll come a-biling, too."
-
- I judged we had got everything fixed about right
- now. So I says:
-
- "Just let the auction go right along, and don't
- worry. Nobody don't have to pay for the things they
- buy till a whole day after the auction on accounts of
- the short notice, and they ain't going out of this till
- they get that money; and the way we've fixed it the
- sale ain't going to count, and they ain't going to get
- no money. It's just like the way it was with the
- niggers -- it warn't no sale, and the niggers will be
- back before long. Why, they can't collect the money
- for the NIGGERS yet -- they're in the worst kind of a
- fix, Miss Mary."
-
- "Well," she says, "I'll run down to breakfast now,
- and then I'll start straight for Mr. Lothrop's."
-
- "'Deed, THAT ain't the ticket, Miss Mary Jane," I
- says, "by no manner of means; go BEFORE breakfast."
-
- "Why?"
-
- "What did you reckon I wanted you to go at all
- for, Miss Mary?"
-
- "Well, I never thought -- and come to think, I
- don't know. What was it?"
-
- "Why, it's because you ain't one of these leather-
- face people. I don't want no better book than what
- your face is. A body can set down and read it off
- like coarse print. Do you reckon you can go and
- face your uncles when they come to kiss you good-
- morning, and never --"
-
- "There, there, don't! Yes, I'll go before break-
- fast -- I'll be glad to. And leave my sisters with
- them?"
-
- "Yes; never mind about them. They've got to
- stand it yet a while. They might suspicion something
- if all of you was to go. I don't want you to see them,
- nor your sisters, nor nobody in this town; if a neigh-
- bor was to ask how is your uncles this morning your
- face would tell something. No, you go right along,
- Miss Mary Jane, and I'll fix it with all of them. I'll
- tell Miss Susan to give your love to your uncles and
- say you've went away for a few hours for to get a
- little rest and change, or to see a friend, and you'll be
- back to-night or early in the morning."
-
- "Gone to see a friend is all right, but I won't have
- my love given to them."
-
- "Well, then, it sha'n't be." It was well enough to
- tell HER so -- no harm in it. It was only a little thing
- to do, and no trouble; and it's the little things that
- smooths people's roads the most, down here below; it
- would make Mary Jane comfortable, and it wouldn't
- cost nothing. Then I says: "There's one more thing
- -- that bag of money."
-
- "Well, they've got that; and it makes me feel
- pretty silly to think HOW they got it."
-
- "No, you're out, there. They hain't got it."
-
- "Why, who's got it?"
-
- "I wish I knowed, but I don't. I HAD it, because I
- stole it from them; and I stole it to give to you; and
- I know where I hid it, but I'm afraid it ain't there no
- more. I'm awful sorry, Miss Mary Jane, I'm just as
- sorry as I can be; but I done the best I could; I did
- honest. I come nigh getting caught, and I had to
- shove it into the first place I come to, and run -- and
- it warn't a good place."
-
- "Oh, stop blaming yourself -- it's too bad to do it,
- and I won't allow it -- you couldn't help it; it wasn't
- your fault. Where did you hide it?"
-
- I didn't want to set her to thinking about her
- troubles again; and I couldn't seem to get my mouth
- to tell her what would make her see that corpse laying
- in the coffin with that bag of money on his stomach.
- So for a minute I didn't say nothing; then I says:
-
- "I'd ruther not TELL you where I put it, Miss Mary
- Jane, if you don't mind letting me off; but I'll write it
- for you on a piece of paper, and you can read it along
- the road to Mr. Lothrop's, if you want to. Do you
- reckon that 'll do?"
-
- "Oh, yes."
-
- So I wrote: "I put it in the coffin. It was in
- there when you was crying there, away in the night.
- I was behind the door, and I was mighty sorry for
- you, Miss Mary Jane."
-
- It made my eyes water a little to remember her cry-
- ing there all by herself in the night, and them devils
- laying there right under her own roof, shaming her
- and robbing her; and when I folded it up and give it
- to her I see the water come into her eyes, too; and
- she shook me by the hand, hard, and says:
-
- "GOOD-bye. I'm going to do everything just as
- you've told me; and if I don't ever see you again, I
- sha'n't ever forget you. and I'll think of you a many
- and a many a time, and I'll PRAY for you, too!" -- and
- she was gone.
-
- Pray for me! I reckoned if she knowed me she'd
- take a job that was more nearer her size. But I bet
- she done it, just the same -- she was just that kind.
- She had the grit to pray for Judus if she took the
- notion -- there warn't no back-down to her, I judge.
- You may say what you want to, but in my opinion
- she had more sand in her than any girl I ever see; in
- my opinion she was just full of sand. It sounds like
- flattery, but it ain't no flattery. And when it comes
- to beauty -- and goodness, too -- she lays over them
- all. I hain't ever seen her since that time that I see
- her go out of that door; no, I hain't ever seen her
- since, but I reckon I've thought of her a many and a
- many a million times, and of her saying she would
- pray for me; and if ever I'd a thought it would do
- any good for me to pray for HER, blamed if I wouldn't
- a done it or bust.
-
- Well, Mary Jane she lit out the back way, I reckon;
- because nobody see her go. When I struck Susan
- and the hare-lip, I says:
-
- "What's the name of them people over on t'other
- side of the river that you all goes to see sometimes?"
-
- They says:
-
- "There's several; but it's the Proctors, mainly."
-
- "That's the name," I says; "I most forgot it.
- Well, Miss Mary Jane she told me to tell you she's
- gone over there in a dreadful hurry -- one of them's
- sick."
-
- "Which one?"
-
- "I don't know; leastways, I kinder forget; but I
- thinks it's --"
-
- "Sakes alive, I hope it ain't HANNER?"
-
- "I'm sorry to say it," I says, "but Hanner's the
- very one."
-
- "My goodness, and she so well only last week! Is
- she took bad?"
-
- "It ain't no name for it. They set up with her all
- night, Miss Mary Jane said, and they don't think she'll
- last many hours."
-
- "Only think of that, now! What's the matter with
- her?"
-
- I couldn't think of anything reasonable, right off
- that way, so I says:
-
- "Mumps."
-
- "Mumps your granny! They don't set up with
- people that's got the mumps."
-
- "They don't, don't they? You better bet they do
- with THESE mumps. These mumps is different. It's a
- new kind, Miss Mary Jane said."
-
- "How's it a new kind?"
-
- "Because it's mixed up with other things."
-
- "What other things?"
-
- "Well, measles, and whooping-cough, and erysiplas,
- and consumption, and yaller janders, and brain-fever,
- and I don't know what all."
-
- "My land! And they call it the MUMPS?"
-
- "That's what Miss Mary Jane said."
-
- "Well, what in the nation do they call it the MUMPS
- for?"
-
- "Why, because it IS the mumps. That's what it
- starts with."
-
- "Well, ther' ain't no sense in it. A body might
- stump his toe, and take pison, and fall down the well,
- and break his neck, and bust his brains out, and some-
- body come along and ask what killed him, and some
- numskull up and say, 'Why, he stumped his TOE.'
- Would ther' be any sense in that? NO. And ther'
- ain't no sense in THIS, nuther. Is it ketching?"
-
- "Is it KETCHING? Why, how you talk. Is a HARROW
- catching -- in the dark? If you don't hitch on to one
- tooth, you're bound to on another, ain't you? And
- you can't get away with that tooth without fetching
- the whole harrow along, can you? Well, these kind
- of mumps is a kind of a harrow, as you may say -- and
- it ain't no slouch of a harrow, nuther, you come to
- get it hitched on good."
-
- "Well, it's awful, I think," says the hare-lip.
- "I'll go to Uncle Harvey and --"
-
- "Oh, yes," I says, "I WOULD. Of COURSE I would.
- I wouldn't lose no time."
-
- "Well, why wouldn't you?"
-
- "Just look at it a minute, and maybe you can see.
- Hain't your uncles obleegd to get along home to Eng-
- land as fast as they can? And do you reckon they'd
- be mean enough to go off and leave you to go all that
- journey by yourselves? YOU know they'll wait for
- you. So fur, so good. Your uncle Harvey's a
- preacher, ain't he? Very well, then; is a PREACHER
- going to deceive a steamboat clerk? is he going to
- deceive a SHIP CLERK? -- so as to get them to let Miss
- Mary Jane go aboard? Now YOU know he ain't.
- What WILL he do, then? Why, he'll say, 'It's a great
- pity, but my church matters has got to get along the
- best way they can; for my niece has been exposed to
- the dreadful pluribus-unum mumps, and so it's my
- bounden duty to set down here and wait the three
- months it takes to show on her if she's got it.' But
- never mind, if you think it's best to tell your uncle
- Harvey --"
-
- "Shucks, and stay fooling around here when we
- could all be having good times in England whilst we
- was waiting to find out whether Mary Jane's got it or
- not? Why, you talk like a muggins."
-
- "Well, anyway, maybe you'd better tell some of
- the neighbors."
-
- "Listen at that, now. You do beat all for natural
- stupidness. Can't you SEE that THEY'D go and tell?
- Ther' ain't no way but just to not tell anybody at ALL."
-
- "Well, maybe you're right -- yes, I judge you ARE
- right."
-
- "But I reckon we ought to tell Uncle Harvey she's
- gone out a while, anyway, so he won't be uneasy
- about her?"
-
- "Yes, Miss Mary Jane she wanted you to do that.
- She says, 'Tell them to give Uncle Harvey and
- William my love and a kiss, and say I've run over the
- river to see Mr.' -- Mr. -- what IS the name of that
- rich family your uncle Peter used to think so much
- of? -- I mean the one that --"
-
- "Why, you must mean the Apthorps, ain't it?"
-
- "Of course; bother them kind of names, a body
- can't ever seem to remember them, half the time,
- somehow. Yes, she said, say she has run over for to
- ask the Apthorps to be sure and come to the auction
- and buy this house, because she allowed her uncle
- Peter would ruther they had it than anybody else;
- and she's going to stick to them till they say they'll
- come, and then, if she ain't too tired, she's coming
- home; and if she is, she'll be home in the morning
- anyway. She said, don't say nothing about the Proc-
- tors, but only about the Apthorps -- which 'll be per-
- fectly true, because she is going there to speak about
- their buying the house; I know it, because she told
- me so herself."
-
- "All right," they said, and cleared out to lay for
- their uncles, and give them the love and the kisses,
- and tell them the message.
-
- Everything was all right now. The girls wouldn't
- say nothing because they wanted to go to England;
- and the king and the duke would ruther Mary Jane was
- off working for the auction than around in reach of
- Doctor Robinson. I felt very good; I judged I had
- done it pretty neat -- I reckoned Tom Sawyer couldn't
- a done it no neater himself. Of course he would a
- throwed more style into it, but I can't do that very
- handy, not being brung up to it.
-
- Well, they held the auction in the public square,
- along towards the end of the afternoon, and it strung
- along, and strung along, and the old man he was on
- hand and looking his level pisonest, up there longside
- of the auctioneer, and chipping in a little Scripture
- now and then, or a little goody-goody saying of some
- kind, and the duke he was around goo-gooing for sym-
- pathy all he knowed how, and just spreading himself
- generly.
-
- But by and by the thing dragged through, and
- everything was sold -- everything but a little old trifling
- lot in the graveyard. So they'd got to work that off
- -- I never see such a girafft as the king was for want-
- ing to swallow EVERYTHING. Well, whilst they was at it
- a steamboat landed, and in about two minutes up
- comes a crowd a-whooping and yelling and laughing
- and carrying on, and singing out:
-
- "HERE'S your opposition line! here's your two sets
- o' heirs to old Peter Wilks -- and you pays your
- money and you takes your choice!"
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX.
-
- THEY was fetching a very nice-looking old gentle-
- man along, and a nice-looking younger one, with
- his right arm in a sling. And, my souls, how the
- people yelled and laughed, and kept it up. But I didn't
- see no joke about it, and I judged it would strain the
- duke and the king some to see any. I reckoned
- they'd turn pale. But no, nary a pale did THEY turn.
- The duke he never let on he suspicioned what was
- up, but just went a goo-gooing around, happy and
- satisfied, like a jug that's googling out buttermilk;
- and as for the king, he just gazed and gazed down
- sorrowful on them new-comers like it give him the
- stomach-ache in his very heart to think there could be
- such frauds and rascals in the world. Oh, he done it
- admirable. Lots of the principal people gethered
- around the king, to let him see they was on his side.
- That old gentleman that had just come looked all puz-
- zled to death. Pretty soon he begun to speak, and I
- see straight off he pronounced LIKE an Englishman --
- not the king's way, though the king's WAS pretty good
- for an imitation. I can't give the old gent's words,
- nor I can't imitate him; but he turned around to the
- crowd, and says, about like this:
-
- "This is a surprise to me which I wasn't looking
- for; and I'll acknowledge, candid and frank, I ain't
- very well fixed to meet it and answer it; for my
- brother and me has had misfortunes; he's broke his
- arm, and our baggage got put off at a town above here
- last night in the night by a mistake. I am Peter
- Wilks' brother Harvey, and this is his brother William,
- which can't hear nor speak -- and can't even make
- signs to amount to much, now't he's only got one
- hand to work them with. We are who we say we are;
- and in a day or two, when I get the baggage, I can
- prove it. But up till then I won't say nothing more,
- but go to the hotel and wait."
-
- So him and the new dummy started off; and the king
- he laughs, and blethers out:
-
- "Broke his arm -- VERY likely, AIN'T it? -- and very
- convenient, too, for a fraud that's got to make signs,
- and ain't learnt how. Lost their baggage! That's
- MIGHTY good! -- and mighty ingenious -- under the
- CIRCUMSTANCES!
-
- So he laughed again; and so did everybody else,
- except three or four, or maybe half a dozen. One of
- these was that doctor; another one was a sharp-
- looking gentleman, with a carpet-bag of the old-
- fashioned kind made out of carpet-stuff, that had just
- come off of the steamboat and was talking to him in a
- low voice, and glancing towards the king now and then
- and nodding their heads -- it was Levi Bell, the lawyer
- that was gone up to Louisville; and another one was
- a big rough husky that come along and listened to
- all the old gentleman said, and was listening to the
- king now. And when the king got done this husky
- up and says:
-
- "Say, looky here; if you are Harvey Wilks, when'd
- you come to this town?"
-
- "The day before the funeral, friend," says the king.
-
- "But what time o' day?"
-
- "In the evenin' -- 'bout an hour er two before sun-
- down."
-
- "HOW'D you come?"
-
- "I come down on the Susan Powell from Cincin-
- nati."
-
- "Well, then, how'd you come to be up at the Pint
- in the MORNIN' -- in a canoe?"
-
- "I warn't up at the Pint in the mornin'."
-
- "It's a lie."
-
- Several of them jumped for him and begged him not
- to talk that way to an old man and a preacher.
-
- "Preacher be hanged, he's a fraud and a liar. He
- was up at the Pint that mornin'. I live up there, don't
- I? Well, I was up there, and he was up there. I see
- him there. He come in a canoe, along with Tim
- Collins and a boy."
-
- The doctor he up and says:
-
- "Would you know the boy again if you was to see
- him, Hines?"
-
- "I reckon I would, but I don't know. Why,
- yonder he is, now. I know him perfectly easy."
-
- It was me he pointed at. The doctor says:
-
- "Neighbors, I don't know whether the new couple
- is frauds or not; but if THESE two ain't frauds, I am an
- idiot, that's all. I think it's our duty to see that they
- don't get away from here till we've looked into this
- thing. Come along, Hines; come along, the rest of
- you. We'll take these fellows to the tavern and
- affront them with t'other couple, and I reckon we'll
- find out SOMETHING before we get through."
-
- It was nuts for the crowd, though maybe not for
- the king's friends; so we all started. It was about
- sundown. The doctor he led me along by the hand,
- and was plenty kind enough, but he never let go my
- hand.
-
- We all got in a big room in the hotel, and lit up
- some candles, and fetched in the new couple. First,
- the doctor says:
-
- "I don't wish to be too hard on these two men, but
- I think they're frauds, and they may have complices
- that we don't know nothing about. If they have,
- won't the complices get away with that bag of gold
- Peter Wilks left? It ain't unlikely. If these men
- ain't frauds, they won't object to sending for that
- money and letting us keep it till they prove they're
- all right -- ain't that so?"
-
- Everybody agreed to that. So I judged they had
- our gang in a pretty tight place right at the outstart.
- But the king he only looked sorrowful, and says:
-
- "Gentlemen, I wish the money was there, for I
- ain't got no disposition to throw anything in the way
- of a fair, open, out-and-out investigation o' this
- misable business; but, alas, the money ain't there;
- you k'n send and see, if you want to."
-
- "Where is it, then?"
-
- "Well, when my niece give it to me to keep for her
- I took and hid it inside o' the straw tick o' my bed,
- not wishin' to bank it for the few days we'd be here,
- and considerin' the bed a safe place, we not bein' used
- to niggers, and suppos'n' 'em honest, like servants in
- England. The niggers stole it the very next mornin'
- after I had went down stairs; and when I sold 'em I
- hadn't missed the money yit, so they got clean away
- with it. My servant here k'n tell you 'bout it, gentle-
- men."
-
- The doctor and several said "Shucks!" and I see
- nobody didn't altogether believe him. One man asked
- me if I see the niggers steal it. I said no, but I see
- them sneaking out of the room and hustling away, and
- I never thought nothing, only I reckoned they was
- afraid they had waked up my master and was trying to
- get away before he made trouble with them. That
- was all they asked me. Then the doctor whirls on me
- and says:
-
- "Are YOU English, too?"
-
- I says yes; and him and some others laughed, and
- said, "Stuff!"
-
- Well, then they sailed in on the general investiga-
- tion, and there we had it, up and down, hour in, hour
- out, and nobody never said a word about supper, nor
- ever seemed to think about it -- and so they kept it
- up, and kept it up; and it WAS the worst mixed-up
- thing you ever see. They made the king tell his yarn,
- and they made the old gentleman tell his'n; and any-
- body but a lot of prejudiced chuckleheads would a SEEN
- that the old gentleman was spinning truth and t'other
- one lies. And by and by they had me up to tell what
- I knowed. The king he give me a left-handed look
- out of the corner of his eye, and so I knowed enough
- to talk on the right side. I begun to tell about
- Sheffield, and how we lived there, and all about the
- English Wilkses, and so on; but I didn't get pretty
- fur till the doctor begun to laugh; and Levi Bell, the
- lawyer, says:
-
- "Set down, my boy; I wouldn't strain myself if I
- was you. I reckon you ain't used to lying, it don't
- seem to come handy; what you want is practice. You
- do it pretty awkward."
-
- I didn't care nothing for the compliment, but I was
- glad to be let off, anyway.
-
- The doctor he started to say something, and turns
- and says:
-
- "If you'd been in town at first, Levi Bell --
- "
- The king broke in and reached out his hand, and
- says:
-
- "Why, is this my poor dead brother's old friend
- that he's wrote so often about?"
-
- The lawyer and him shook hands, and the lawyer
- smiled and looked pleased, and they talked right along
- awhile, and then got to one side and talked low; and
- at last the lawyer speaks up and says:
-
- "That 'll fix it. I'll take the order and send it,
- along with your brother's, and then they'll know it's
- all right."
-
- So they got some paper and a pen, and the king he
- set down and twisted his head to one side, and chawed
- his tongue, and scrawled off something; and then they
- give the pen to the duke -- and then for the first time
- the duke looked sick. But he took the pen and wrote.
- So then the lawyer turns to the new old gentleman and
- says:
-
- "You and your brother please write a line or two
- and sign your names."
-
- The old gentleman wrote, but nobody couldn't read
- it. The lawyer looked powerful astonished, and says:
-
- "Well, it beats ME -- and snaked a lot of old letters
- out of his pocket, and examined them, and then ex-
- amined the old man's writing, and then THEM again;
- and then says: "These old letters is from Harvey
- Wilks; and here's THESE two handwritings, and any-
- body can see they didn't write them" (the king and
- the duke looked sold and foolish, I tell you, to see
- how the lawyer had took them in), "and here's THIS old
- gentleman's hand writing, and anybody can tell, easy
- enough, HE didn't write them -- fact is, the scratches
- he makes ain't properly WRITING at all. Now, here's
- some letters from --"
-
- The new old gentleman says:
-
- "If you please, let me explain. Nobody can read
- my hand but my brother there -- so he copies for me.
- It's HIS hand you've got there, not mine."
-
- "WELL!" says the lawyer, "this IS a state of
- things. I've got some of William's letters, too; so if
- you'll get him to write a line or so we can com --"
-
- "He CAN'T write with his left hand," says the old
- gentleman. "If he could use his right hand, you
- would see that he wrote his own letters and mine
- too. Look at both, please -- they're by the same
- hand."
-
- The lawyer done it, and says:
-
- "I believe it's so -- and if it ain't so, there's a heap
- stronger resemblance than I'd noticed before, anyway.
- Well, well, well! I thought we was right on the track
- of a slution, but it's gone to grass, partly. But any-
- way, one thing is proved -- THESE two ain't either of
- 'em Wilkses" -- and he wagged his head towards the
- king and the duke.
-
- Well, what do you think? That muleheaded old
- fool wouldn't give in THEN! Indeed he wouldn't.
- Said it warn't no fair test. Said his brother William
- was the cussedest joker in the world, and hadn't tried
- to write -- HE see William was going to play one of his
- jokes the minute he put the pen to paper. And so he
- warmed up and went warbling right along till he was
- actuly beginning to believe what he was saying HIM-
- SELF; but pretty soon the new gentleman broke in, and
- says:
-
- "I've thought of something. Is there anybody
- here that helped to lay out my br -- helped to lay out
- the late Peter Wilks for burying?"
-
- "Yes," says somebody, "me and Ab Turner done
- it. We're both here."
-
- Then the old man turns towards the king, and
- says:
-
- "Peraps this gentleman can tell me what was
- tattooed on his breast?"
-
- Blamed if the king didn't have to brace up mighty
- quick, or he'd a squshed down like a bluff bank that
- the river has cut under, it took him so sudden; and,
- mind you, it was a thing that was calculated to make
- most ANYBODY sqush to get fetched such a solid one as
- that without any notice, because how was HE going to
- know what was tattooed on the man? He whitened a
- little; he couldn't help it; and it was mighty still in
- there, and everybody bending a little forwards and
- gazing at him. Says I to myself, NOW he'll throw up
- the sponge -- there ain't no more use. Well, did he?
- A body can't hardly believe it, but he didn't. I
- reckon he thought he'd keep the thing up till he tired
- them people out, so they'd thin out, and him and the
- duke could break loose and get away. Anyway, he
- set there, and pretty soon he begun to smile, and says:
-
- "Mf! It's a VERY tough question, AIN'T it! YES,
- sir, I k'n tell you what's tattooed on his breast. It's
- jest a small, thin, blue arrow -- that's what it is; and
- if you don't look clost, you can't see it. NOW what
- do you say -- hey?"
-
- Well, I never see anything like that old blister for
- clean out-and-out cheek.
-
- The new old gentleman turns brisk towards Ab
- Turner and his pard, and his eye lights up like he
- judged he'd got the king THIS time, and says:
-
- "There -- you've heard what he said! Was there
- any such mark on Peter Wilks' breast?"
-
- Both of them spoke up and says:
-
- "We didn't see no such mark."
-
- "Good!" says the old gentleman. "Now, what
- you DID see on his breast was a small dim P, and a B
- (which is an initial he dropped when he was young),
- and a W, with dashes between them, so: P -- B --
- W" -- and he marked them that way on a piece of
- paper. "Come, ain't that what you saw?"
-
- Both of them spoke up again, and says:
-
- "No, we DIDN'T. We never seen any marks at all."
-
- Well, everybody WAS in a state of mind now, and
- they sings out:
-
- "The whole BILIN' of 'm 's frauds! Le's duck
- 'em! le's drown 'em! le's ride 'em on a rail!" and
- everybody was whooping at once, and there was a rat-
- tling powwow. But the lawyer he jumps on the table
- and yells, and says:
-
- "Gentlemen -- gentleMEN! Hear me just a word --
- just a SINGLE word -- if you PLEASE! There's one way
- yet -- let's go and dig up the corpse and look."
-
- That took them.
-
- "Hooray!" they all shouted, and was starting right
- off; but the lawyer and the doctor sung out:
-
- "Hold on, hold on! Collar all these four men and
- the boy, and fetch THEM along, too!"
-
- "We'll do it!" they all shouted; "and if we don't
- find them marks we'll lynch the whole gang!"
-
- I WAS scared, now, I tell you. But there warn't no
- getting away, you know. They gripped us all, and
- marched us right along, straight for the graveyard,
- which was a mile and a half down the river, and the
- whole town at our heels, for we made noise enough,
- and it was only nine in the evening.
-
- As we went by our house I wished I hadn't sent
- Mary Jane out of town; because now if I could tip her
- the wink she'd light out and save me, and blow on our
- dead-beats.
-
- Well, we swarmed along down the river road, just
- carrying on like wildcats; and to make it more scary
- the sky was darking up, and the lightning beginning to
- wink and flitter, and the wind to shiver amongst the
- leaves. This was the most awful trouble and most
- dangersome I ever was in; and I was kinder stunned;
- everything was going so different from what I had
- allowed for; stead of being fixed so I could take my
- own time if I wanted to, and see all the fun, and have
- Mary Jane at my back to save me and set me free
- when the close-fit come, here was nothing in the
- world betwixt me and sudden death but just them
- tattoo-marks. If they didn't find them --
-
- I couldn't bear to think about it; and yet, some-
- how, I couldn't think about nothing else. It got
- darker and darker, and it was a beautiful time to give
- the crowd the slip; but that big husky had me by the
- wrist -- Hines -- and a body might as well try to give
- Goliar the slip. He dragged me right along, he was so
- excited, and I had to run to keep up.
-
- When they got there they swarmed into the grave-
- yard and washed over it like an overflow. And when
- they got to the grave they found they had about a
- hundred times as many shovels as they wanted, but
- nobody hadn't thought to fetch a lantern. But they
- sailed into digging anyway by the flicker of the light-
- ning, and sent a man to the nearest house, a half a
- mile off, to borrow one.
-
- So they dug and dug like everything; and it got
- awful dark, and the rain started, and the wind swished
- and swushed along, and the lightning come brisker and
- brisker, and the thunder boomed; but them people
- never took no notice of it, they was so full of this
- business; and one minute you could see everything
- and every face in that big crowd, and the shovelfuls of
- dirt sailing up out of the grave, and the next second
- the dark wiped it all out, and you couldn't see nothing
- at all.
-
- At last they got out the coffin and begun to unscrew
- the lid, and then such another crowding and shoulder-
- ing and shoving as there was, to scrouge in and get a
- sight, you never see; and in the dark, that way, it was
- awful. Hines he hurt my wrist dreadful pulling and
- tugging so, and I reckon he clean forgot I was in the
- world, he was so excited and panting.
-
- All of a sudden the lightning let go a perfect sluice
- of white glare, and somebody sings out:
-
- "By the living jingo, here's the bag of gold on his
- breast!"
-
- Hines let out a whoop, like everybody else, and
- dropped my wrist and give a big surge to bust his way
- in and get a look, and the way I lit out and shinned
- for the road in the dark there ain't nobody can tell.
-
- I had the road all to myself, and I fairly flew --
- leastways, I had it all to myself except the solid dark,
- and the now-and-then glares, and the buzzing of the
- rain, and the thrashing of the wind, and the splitting
- of the thunder; and sure as you are born I did clip it
- along!
-
- When I struck the town I see there warn't nobody
- out in the storm, so I never hunted for no back streets,
- but humped it straight through the main one; and
- when I begun to get towards our house I aimed my
- eye and set it. No light there; the house all dark --
- which made me feel sorry and disappointed, I didn't
- know why. But at last, just as I was sailing by, FLASH
- comes the light in Mary Jane's window! and my heart
- swelled up sudden, like to bust; and the same second
- the house and all was behind me in the dark, and
- wasn't ever going to be before me no more in this
- world. She WAS the best girl I ever see, and had the
- most sand.
-
- The minute I was far enough above the town to see
- I could make the towhead, I begun to look sharp for
- a boat to borrow, and the first time the lightning
- showed me one that wasn't chained I snatched it and
- shoved. It was a canoe, and warn't fastened with
- nothing but a rope. The towhead was a rattling big
- distance off, away out there in the middle of the river,
- but I didn't lose no time; and when I struck the raft
- at last I was so fagged I would a just laid down to
- blow and gasp if I could afforded it. But I didn't.
- As I sprung aboard I sung out:
-
- "Out with you, Jim, and set her loose! Glory be
- to goodness, we're shut of them!"
-
- Jim lit out, and was a-coming for me with both arms
- spread, he was so full of joy; but when I glimpsed
- him in the lightning my heart shot up in my mouth
- and I went overboard backwards; for I forgot he was
- old King Lear and a drownded A-rab all in one, and it
- most scared the livers and lights out of me. But Jim
- fished me out, and was going to hug me and bless me,
- and so on, he was so glad I was back and we was shut
- of the king and the duke, but I says:
-
- "Not now; have it for breakfast, have it for break-
- fast! Cut loose and let her slide!"
-
- So in two seconds away we went a-sliding down the
- river, and it DID seem so good to be free again and all
- by ourselves on the big river, and nobody to bother
- us. I had to skip around a bit, and jump up and
- crack my heels a few times -- I couldn't help it; but
- about the third crack I noticed a sound that I knowed
- mighty well, and held my breath and listened and
- waited; and sure enough, when the next flash busted
- out over the water, here they come! -- and just a-
- laying to their oars and making their skiff hum! It
- was the king and the duke.
-
- So I wilted right down on to the planks then, and
- give up; and it was all I could do to keep from crying.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX.
-
- WHEN they got aboard the king went for me, and
- shook me by the collar, and says:
-
- "Tryin' to give us the slip, was ye, you pup!
- Tired of our company, hey?"
-
- I says:
-
- "No, your majesty, we warn't -- PLEASE don't, your
- majesty!"
-
- "Quick, then, and tell us what WAS your idea, or
- I'll shake the insides out o' you!"
-
- "Honest, I'll tell you everything just as it hap-
- pened, your majesty. The man that had a-holt of me
- was very good to me, and kept saying he had a boy
- about as big as me that died last year, and he was
- sorry to see a boy in such a dangerous fix; and when
- they was all took by surprise by finding the gold, and
- made a rush for the coffin, he lets go of me and whis-
- pers, 'Heel it now, or they'll hang ye, sure!' and I
- lit out. It didn't seem no good for ME to stay -- I
- couldn't do nothing, and I didn't want to be hung if
- I could get away. So I never stopped running till I
- found the canoe; and when I got here I told Jim to
- hurry, or they'd catch me and hang me yet, and said I
- was afeard you and the duke wasn't alive now, and
- I was awful sorry, and so was Jim, and was awful glad
- when we see you coming; you may ask Jim if I
- didn't."
-
- Jim said it was so; and the king told him to shut
- up, and said, "Oh, yes, it's MIGHTY likely!" and
- shook me up again, and said he reckoned he'd drownd
- me. But the duke says:
-
- "Leggo the boy, you old idiot! Would YOU a done
- any different? Did you inquire around for HIM when
- you got loose? I don't remember it."
-
- So the king let go of me, and begun to cuss that
- town and everybody in it. But the duke says:
-
- "You better a blame' sight give YOURSELF a good
- cussing, for you're the one that's entitled to it most.
- You hain't done a thing from the start that had any
- sense in it, except coming out so cool and cheeky with
- that imaginary blue-arrow mark. That WAS bright --
- it was right down bully; and it was the thing that
- saved us. For if it hadn't been for that they'd a jailed
- us till them Englishmen's baggage come -- and then --
- the penitentiary, you bet! But that trick took 'em to
- the graveyard, and the gold done us a still bigger
- kindness; for if the excited fools hadn't let go all
- holts and made that rush to get a look we'd a slept in
- our cravats to-night -- cravats warranted to WEAR, too
- -- longer than WE'D need 'em."
-
- They was still a minute -- thinking; then the king
- says, kind of absent-minded like:
-
- "Mf! And we reckoned the NIGGERS stole it!"
-
- That made me squirm!
-
- "Yes," says the duke, kinder slow and deliberate
- and sarcastic, "WE did."
-
- After about a half a minute the king drawls out:
-
- "Leastways, I did."
-
- The duke says, the same way:
-
- "On the contrary, I did."
-
- The king kind of ruffles up, and says:
-
- "Looky here, Bilgewater, what'r you referrin' to?"
-
- The duke says, pretty brisk:
-
- "When it comes to that, maybe you'll let me ask,
- what was YOU referring to?"
-
- "Shucks!" says the king, very sarcastic; "but I
- don't know -- maybe you was asleep, and didn't know
- what you was about."
-
- The duke bristles up now, and says:
-
- "Oh, let UP on this cussed nonsense; do you take
- me for a blame' fool? Don't you reckon I know who
- hid that money in that coffin?"
-
- "YES, sir! I know you DO know, because you done
- it yourself!"
-
- "It's a lie!" -- and the duke went for him. The
- king sings out:
-
- "Take y'r hands off! -- leggo my throat! -- I take it
- all back!"
-
- The duke says:
-
- "Well, you just own up, first, that you DID hide
- that money there, intending to give me the slip one of
- these days, and come back and dig it up, and have it
- all to yourself."
-
- "Wait jest a minute, duke -- answer me this one
- question, honest and fair; if you didn't put the money
- there, say it, and I'll b'lieve you, and take back every-
- thing I said."
-
- "You old scoundrel, I didn't, and you know I
- didn't. There, now!"
-
- "Well, then, I b'lieve you. But answer me only
- jest this one more -- now DON'T git mad; didn't you
- have it in your mind to hook the money and hide it?"
-
- The duke never said nothing for a little bit; then he
- says:
-
- "Well, I don't care if I DID, I didn't DO it, anyway.
- But you not only had it in mind to do it, but you
- DONE it."
-
- "I wisht I never die if I done it, duke, and that's
- honest. I won't say I warn't goin' to do it, because I
- WAS; but you -- I mean somebody -- got in ahead o'
- me."
-
- "It's a lie! You done it, and you got to SAY you
- done it, or --"
-
- The king began to gurgle, and then he gasps out:
-
- "'Nough! -- I OWN UP!"
-
- I was very glad to hear him say that; it made me
- feel much more easier than what I was feeling before.
- So the duke took his hands off and says:
-
- "If you ever deny it again I'll drown you. It's
- WELL for you to set there and blubber like a baby -- it's
- fitten for you, after the way you've acted. I never
- see such an old ostrich for wanting to gobble every-
- thing -- and I a-trusting you all the time, like you was
- my own father. You ought to been ashamed of your-
- self to stand by and hear it saddled on to a lot of poor
- niggers, and you never say a word for 'em. It makes
- me feel ridiculous to think I was soft enough to BELIEVE
- that rubbage. Cuss you, I can see now why you was
- so anxious to make up the deffisit -- you wanted to
- get what money I'd got out of the Nonesuch and one
- thing or another, and scoop it ALL!"
-
- The king says, timid, and still a-snuffling:
-
- "Why, duke, it was you that said make up the
- deffisit; it warn't me."
-
- "Dry up! I don't want to hear no more out of
- you!" says the duke. "And NOW you see what you
- GOT by it. They've got all their own money back, and
- all of OURN but a shekel or two BESIDES. G'long to bed,
- and don't you deffersit ME no more deffersits, long 's
- YOU live!"
-
- So the king sneaked into the wigwam and took to
- his bottle for comfort, and before long the duke tackled
- HIS bottle; and so in about a half an hour they was as
- thick as thieves again, and the tighter they got the
- lovinger they got, and went off a-snoring in each
- other's arms. They both got powerful mellow, but I
- noticed the king didn't get mellow enough to forget to
- remember to not deny about hiding the money-bag
- again. That made me feel easy and satisfied. Of
- course when they got to snoring we had a long gabble,
- and I told Jim everything.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI.
-
- WE dasn't stop again at any town for days and
- days; kept right along down the river. We
- was down south in the warm weather now, and a
- mighty long ways from home. We begun to come to
- trees with Spanish moss on them, hanging down from
- the limbs like long, gray beards. It was the first I
- ever see it growing, and it made the woods look solemn
- and dismal. So now the frauds reckoned they was out
- of danger, and they begun to work the villages again.
-
- First they done a lecture on temperance; but they
- didn't make enough for them both to get drunk on.
- Then in another village they started a dancing-school;
- but they didn't know no more how to dance than a
- kangaroo does; so the first prance they made the
- general public jumped in and pranced them out of
- town. Another time they tried to go at yellocution;
- but they didn't yellocute long till the audience got up
- and give them a solid good cussing, and made them
- skip out. They tackled missionarying, and mesmeriz-
- ing, and doctoring, and telling fortunes, and a little of
- everything; but they couldn't seem to have no luck.
- So at last they got just about dead broke, and laid
- around the raft as she floated along, thinking and
- thinking, and never saying nothing, by the half a day
- at a time, and dreadful blue and desperate.
-
- And at last they took a change and begun to lay
- their heads together in the wigwam and talk low and
- confidential two or three hours at a time. Jim and me
- got uneasy. We didn't like the look of it. We judged
- they was studying up some kind of worse deviltry than
- ever. We turned it over and over, and at last we made
- up our minds they was going to break into somebody's
- house or store, or was going into the counterfeit-
- money business, or something. So then we was pretty
- scared, and made up an agreement that we wouldn't
- have nothing in the world to do with such actions, and
- if we ever got the least show we would give them the
- cold shake and clear out and leave them behind.
- Well, early one morning we hid the raft in a good,
- safe place about two mile below a little bit of a shabby
- village named Pikesville, and the king he went ashore
- and told us all to stay hid whilst he went up to town
- and smelt around to see if anybody had got any wind
- of the Royal Nonesuch there yet. ("House to rob,
- you MEAN," says I to myself; "and when you get
- through robbing it you'll come back here and wonder
- what has become of me and Jim and the raft -- and
- you'll have to take it out in wondering.") And he
- said if he warn't back by midday the duke and me
- would know it was all right, and we was to come along.
-
- So we stayed where we was. The duke he fretted
- and sweated around, and was in a mighty sour way.
- He scolded us for everything, and we couldn't seem to
- do nothing right; he found fault with every little
- thing. Something was a-brewing, sure. I was good
- and glad when midday come and no king; we could
- have a change, anyway -- and maybe a chance for THE
- chance on top of it. So me and the duke went up to
- the village, and hunted around there for the king, and
- by and by we found him in the back room of a little
- low doggery, very tight, and a lot of loafers bullyrag-
- ging him for sport, and he a-cussing and a-threatening
- with all his might, and so tight he couldn't walk, and
- couldn't do nothing to them. The duke he begun to
- abuse him for an old fool, and the king begun to sass
- back, and the minute they was fairly at it I lit out and
- shook the reefs out of my hind legs, and spun down
- the river road like a deer, for I see our chance; and I
- made up my mind that it would be a long day before
- they ever see me and Jim again. I got down there all
- out of breath but loaded up with joy, and sung out:
-
- "Set her loose, Jim! we're all right now!"
-
- But there warn't no answer, and nobody come out
- of the wigwam. Jim was gone! I set up a shout --
- and then another -- and then another one; and run
- this way and that in the woods, whooping and screech-
- ing; but it warn't no use -- old Jim was gone. Then
- I set down and cried; I couldn't help it. But I
- couldn't set still long. Pretty soon I went out on the
- road, trying to think what I better do, and I run across
- a boy walking, and asked him if he'd seen a strange
- nigger dressed so and so, and he says:
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Whereabouts?" says I.
-
- "Down to Silas Phelps' place, two mile below
- here. He's a runaway nigger, and they've got him.
- Was you looking for him?"
-
- "You bet I ain't! I run across him in the woods
- about an hour or two ago, and he said if I hollered
- he'd cut my livers out -- and told me to lay down and
- stay where I was; and I done it. Been there ever
- since; afeard to come out."
-
- "Well," he says, "you needn't be afeard no more,
- becuz they've got him. He run off f'm down South,
- som'ers."
-
- "It's a good job they got him."
-
- "Well, I RECKON! There's two hunderd dollars re-
- ward on him. It's like picking up money out'n the
- road."
-
- "Yes, it is -- and I could a had it if I'd been big
- enough; I see him FIRST. Who nailed him?"
-
- "It was an old fellow -- a stranger -- and he sold
- out his chance in him for forty dollars, becuz he's got
- to go up the river and can't wait. Think o' that,
- now! You bet I'D wait, if it was seven year."
-
- "That's me, every time," says I. "But maybe his
- chance ain't worth no more than that, if he'll sell it so
- cheap. Maybe there's something ain't straight about
- it."
-
- "But it IS, though -- straight as a string. I see the
- handbill myself. It tells all about him, to a dot --
- paints him like a picture, and tells the plantation he's
- frum, below NewrLEANS. No-sirree-BOB, they ain't no
- trouble 'bout THAT speculation, you bet you. Say,
- gimme a chaw tobacker, won't ye?"
-
- I didn't have none, so he left. I went to the raft,
- and set down in the wigwam to think. But I couldn't
- come to nothing. I thought till I wore my head sore,
- but I couldn't see no way out of the trouble. After
- all this long journey, and after all we'd done for them
- scoundrels, here it was all come to nothing, everything
- all busted up and ruined, because they could have the
- heart to serve Jim such a trick as that, and make him
- a slave again all his life, and amongst strangers, too,
- for forty dirty dollars.
-
- Once I said to myself it would be a thousand times
- better for Jim to be a slave at home where his family
- was, as long as he'd GOT to be a slave, and so I'd better
- write a letter to Tom Sawyer and tell him to tell Miss
- Watson where he was. But I soon give up that notion
- for two things: she'd be mad and disgusted at his
- rascality and ungratefulness for leaving her, and so
- she'd sell him straight down the river again; and if
- she didn't, everybody naturally despises an ungrateful
- nigger, and they'd make Jim feel it all the time, and so
- he'd feel ornery and disgraced. And then think of
- ME! It would get all around that Huck Finn helped a
- nigger to get his freedom; and if I was ever to see
- anybody from that town again I'd be ready to get
- down and lick his boots for shame. That's just the
- way: a person does a low-down thing, and then he
- don't want to take no consequences of it. Thinks as
- long as he can hide, it ain't no disgrace. That was
- my fix exactly. The more I studied about this the
- more my conscience went to grinding me, and the
- more wicked and low-down and ornery I got to feel-
- ing. And at last, when it hit me all of a sudden that
- here was the plain hand of Providence slapping me in
- the face and letting me know my wickedness was being
- watched all the time from up there in heaven,whilst I
- was stealing a poor old woman's nigger that hadn't
- ever done me no harm, and now was showing me
- there's One that's always on the lookout, and ain't a-
- going to allow no such miserable doings to go only
- just so fur and no further, I most dropped in my
- tracks I was so scared. Well, I tried the best I could
- to kinder soften it up somehow for myself by saying I
- was brung up wicked, and so I warn't so much to
- blame; but something inside of me kept saying,
- "There was the Sunday-school, you could a gone to
- it; and if you'd a done it they'd a learnt you there
- that people that acts as I'd been acting about that
- nigger goes to everlasting fire."
-
- It made me shiver. And I about made up my mind
- to pray, and see if I couldn't try to quit being the kind
- of a boy I was and be better. So I kneeled down.
- But the words wouldn't come. Why wouldn't they?
- It warn't no use to try and hide it from Him. Nor
- from ME, neither. I knowed very well why they
- wouldn't come. It was because my heart warn't right;
- it was because I warn't square; it was because I was
- playing double. I was letting ON to give up sin, but
- away inside of me I was holding on to the biggest one
- of all. I was trying to make my mouth SAY I would
- do the right thing and the clean thing, and go and write
- to that nigger's owner and tell where he was; but deep
- down in me I knowed it was a lie, and He knowed it.
- You can't pray a lie -- I found that out.
-
- So I was full of trouble, full as I could be; and
- didn't know what to do. At last I had an idea; and I
- says, I'll go and write the letter -- and then see if I can
- pray. Why, it was astonishing, the way I felt as light
- as a feather right straight off, and my troubles all
- gone. So I got a piece of paper and a pencil, all
- glad and excited, and set down and wrote:
-
- Miss Watson, your runaway nigger Jim is down
- here two mile below Pikesville, and Mr. Phelps
- has got him and he will give him up for the
- reward if you send.
-
- HUCK FINN.
-
- I felt good and all washed clean of sin for the first
- time I had ever felt so in my life, and I knowed I
- could pray now. But I didn't do it straight off, but
- laid the paper down and set there thinking -- thinking
- how good it was all this happened so, and how near I
- come to being lost and going to hell. And went on
- thinking. And got to thinking over our trip down the
- river; and I see Jim before me all the time: in the
- day and in the night-time, sometimes moonlight, some-
- times storms, and we a-floating along, talking and
- singing and laughing. But somehow I couldn't seem
- to strike no places to harden me against him, but only
- the other kind. I'd see him standing my watch on top
- of his'n, 'stead of calling me, so I could go on sleep-
- ing; and see him how glad he was when I come back
- out of the fog; and when I come to him again in the
- swamp, up there where the feud was; and such-like
- times; and would always call me honey, and pet me
- and do everything he could think of for me, and how
- good he always was; and at last I struck the time I
- saved him by telling the men we had small-pox aboard,
- and he was so grateful, and said I was the best friend
- old Jim ever had in the world, and the ONLY one he's
- got now; and then I happened to look around and see
- that paper.
-
- It was a close place. I took it up, and held it in
- my hand. I was a-trembling, because I'd got to de-
- cide, forever, betwixt two things, and I knowed it. I
- studied a minute, sort of holding my breath, and then
- says to myself:
-
- "All right, then, I'll GO to hell" -- and tore it up.
-
- It was awful thoughts and awful words, but they was
- said. And I let them stay said; and never thought no
- more about reforming. I shoved the whole thing out
- of my head, and said I would take up wickedness
- again, which was in my line, being brung up to it, and
- the other warn't. And for a starter I would go to
- work and steal Jim out of slavery again; and if I could
- think up anything worse, I would do that, too; be-
- cause as long as I was in, and in for good, I might as
- well go the whole hog.
-
- Then I set to thinking over how to get at it, and
- turned over some considerable many ways in my mind;
- and at last fixed up a plan that suited me. So then I
- took the bearings of a woody island that was down
- the river a piece, and as soon as it was fairly dark I
- crept out with my raft and went for it, and hid it
- there, and then turned in. I slept the night through,
- and got up before it was light, and had my breakfast,
- and put on my store clothes, and tied up some others
- and one thing or another in a bundle, and took the
- canoe and cleared for shore. I landed below where I
- judged was Phelps's place, and hid my bundle in the
- woods, and then filled up the canoe with water, and
- loaded rocks into her and sunk her where I could find
- her again when I wanted her, about a quarter of a
- mile below a little steam sawmill that was on the bank.
-
- Then I struck up the road, and when I passed the
- mill I see a sign on it, "Phelps's Sawmill," and when
- I come to the farm-houses, two or three hundred yards
- further along, I kept my eyes peeled, but didn't see
- nobody around, though it was good daylight now.
- But I didn't mind, because I didn't want to see nobody
- just yet -- I only wanted to get the lay of the land.
- According to my plan, I was going to turn up there
- from the village, not from below. So I just took a
- look, and shoved along, straight for town. Well, the
- very first man I see when I got there was the duke.
- He was sticking up a bill for the Royal Nonesuch --
- three-night performance -- like that other time. They
- had the cheek, them frauds! I was right on him be-
- fore I could shirk. He looked astonished, and says:
-
- "Hel-LO! Where'd YOU come from?" Then he
- says, kind of glad and eager, "Where's the raft? --
- got her in a good place?"
-
- I says:
-
- "Why, that's just what I was going to ask your
- grace."
-
- Then he didn't look so joyful, and says:
-
- "What was your idea for asking ME?" he says.
-
- "Well," I says, "when I see the king in that dog-
- gery yesterday I says to myself, we can't get him
- home for hours, till he's soberer; so I went a-loafing
- around town to put in the time and wait. A man up
- and offered me ten cents to help him pull a skiff over
- the river and back to fetch a sheep, and so I went
- along; but when we was dragging him to the boat, and
- the man left me a-holt of the rope and went behind
- him to shove him along, he was too strong for me and
- jerked loose and run, and we after him. We didn't
- have no dog, and so we had to chase him all over the
- country till we tired him out. We never got him till
- dark; then we fetched him over, and I started down
- for the raft. When I got there and see it was gone, I
- says to myself, 'They've got into trouble and had to
- leave; and they've took my nigger, which is the only
- nigger I've got in the world, and now I'm in a strange
- country, and ain't got no property no more, nor noth-
- ing, and no way to make my living;' so I set down
- and cried. I slept in the woods all night. But what
- DID become of the raft, then? -- and Jim -- poor Jim!"
-
- "Blamed if I know -- that is, what's become of the
- raft. That old fool had made a trade and got forty
- dollars, and when we found him in the doggery the
- loafers had matched half-dollars with him and got
- every cent but what he'd spent for whisky; and when
- I got him home late last night and found the raft gone,
- we said, 'That little rascal has stole our raft and shook
- us, and run off down the river.'"
-
- "I wouldn't shake my NIGGER, would I? -- the only
- nigger I had in the world, and the only property."
-
- "We never thought of that. Fact is, I reckon we'd
- come to consider him OUR nigger; yes, we did consider
- him so -- goodness knows we had trouble enough for
- him. So when we see the raft was gone and we flat
- broke, there warn't anything for it but to try the
- Royal Nonesuch another shake. And I've pegged
- along ever since, dry as a powder-horn. Where's that
- ten cents? Give it here."
-
- I had considerable money, so I give him ten cents,
- but begged him to spend it for something to eat, and
- give me some, because it was all the money I had, and
- I hadn't had nothing to eat since yesterday. He never
- said nothing. The next minute he whirls on me and
- says:
-
- "Do you reckon that nigger would blow on us?
- We'd skin him if he done that!"
-
- "How can he blow? Hain't he run off?"
-
- "No! That old fool sold him, and never divided
- with me, and the money's gone."
-
- "SOLD him?" I says, and begun to cry; "why, he
- was MY nigger, and that was my money. Where is
- he? -- I want my nigger."
-
- "Well, you can't GET your nigger, that's all -- so
- dry up your blubbering. Looky here -- do you think
- YOU'D venture to blow on us? Blamed if I think I'd
- trust you. Why, if you WAS to blow on us --"
-
- He stopped, but I never see the duke look so ugly out
- of his eyes before. I went on a-whimpering, and says:
-
- "I don't want to blow on nobody; and I ain't got
- no time to blow, nohow. I got to turn out and find
- my nigger."
-
- He looked kinder bothered, and stood there with his
- bills fluttering on his arm, thinking, and wrinkling up
- his forehead. At last he says:
-
- "I'll tell you something. We got to be here three
- days. If you'll promise you won't blow, and won't
- let the nigger blow, I'll tell you where to find him."
-
- So I promised, and he says:
-
- "A farmer by the name of Silas Ph----" and then
- he stopped. You see, he started to tell me the truth;
- but when he stopped that way, and begun to study and
- think again, I reckoned he was changing his mind.
- And so he was. He wouldn't trust me; he wanted to
- make sure of having me out of the way the whole
- three days. So pretty soon he says:
-
- "The man that bought him is named Abram Foster
- -- Abram G. Foster -- and he lives forty mile back
- here in the country, on the road to Lafayette."
-
- "All right," I says, "I can walk it in three days.
- And I'll start this very afternoon."
-
- "No you wont, you'll start NOW; and don't you
- lose any time about it, neither, nor do any gabbling by
- the way. Just keep a tight tongue in your head and
- move right along, and then you won't get into trouble
- with US, d'ye hear?"
-
- That was the order I wanted, and that was the one I
- played for. I wanted to be left free to work my plans.
-
- "So clear out," he says; "and you can tell Mr.
- Foster whatever you want to. Maybe you can get
- him to believe that Jim IS your nigger -- some idiots
- don't require documents -- leastways I've heard there's
- such down South here. And when you tell him the
- handbill and the reward's bogus, maybe he'll believe
- you when you explain to him what the idea was for
- getting 'em out. Go 'long now, and tell him anything
- you want to; but mind you don't work your jaw any
- BETWEEN here and there."
-
- So I left, and struck for the back country. I didn't
- look around, but I kinder felt like he was watching me.
- But I knowed I could tire him out at that. I went
- straight out in the country as much as a mile before I
- stopped; then I doubled back through the woods
- towards Phelps'. I reckoned I better start in on my
- plan straight off without fooling around, because I
- wanted to stop Jim's mouth till these fellows could get
- away. I didn't want no trouble with their kind. I'd
- seen all I wanted to of them, and wanted to get entirely
- shut of them.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXII.
-
- WHEN I got there it was all still and Sunday-like,
- and hot and sunshiny; the hands was gone to
- the fields; and there was them kind of faint dronings
- of bugs and flies in the air that makes it seem so lone-
- some and like everybody's dead and gone; and if a
- breeze fans along and quivers the leaves it makes you
- feel mournful, because you feel like it's spirits whisper-
- ing -- spirits that's been dead ever so many years --
- and you always think they're talking about YOU. As a
- general thing it makes a body wish HE was dead, too,
- and done with it all.
-
- Phelps' was one of these little one-horse cotton plan-
- tations, and they all look alike. A rail fence round a
- two-acre yard; a stile made out of logs sawed off and
- up-ended in steps, like barrels of a different length, to
- climb over the fence with, and for the women to stand
- on when they are going to jump on to a horse; some
- sickly grass-patches in the big yard, but mostly it was
- bare and smooth, like an old hat with the nap rubbed
- off; big double log-house for the white folks -- hewed
- logs, with the chinks stopped up with mud or mortar,
- and these mud-stripes been whitewashed some time or
- another; round-log kitchen, with a big broad, open
- but roofed passage joining it to the house; log smoke-
- house back of the kitchen; three little log nigger-cabins
- in a row t'other side the smoke-house; one little hut
- all by itself away down against the back fence, and
- some outbuildings down a piece the other side; ash-
- hopper and big kettle to bile soap in by the little hut;
- bench by the kitchen door, with bucket of water and a
- gourd; hound asleep there in the sun; more hounds
- asleep round about; about three shade trees away off
- in a corner; some currant bushes and gooseberry
- bushes in one place by the fence; outside of the fence
- a garden and a watermelon patch; then the cotton
- fields begins, and after the fields the woods.
-
- I went around and clumb over the back stile by the
- ash-hopper, and started for the kitchen. When I got
- a little ways I heard the dim hum of a spinning-wheel
- wailing along up and sinking along down again; and
- then I knowed for certain I wished I was dead -- for
- that IS the lonesomest sound in the whole world.
-
- I went right along, not fixing up any particular plan,
- but just trusting to Providence to put the right words
- in my mouth when the time come; for I'd noticed that
- Providence always did put the right words in my mouth
- if I left it alone.
-
- When I got half-way, first one hound and then
- another got up and went for me, and of course I
- stopped and faced them, and kept still. And such
- another powwow as they made! In a quarter of a
- minute I was a kind of a hub of a wheel, as you may
- say -- spokes made out of dogs -- circle of fifteen
- of them packed together around me, with their necks
- and noses stretched up towards me, a-barking and
- howling; and more a-coming; you could see them sail-
- ing over fences and around corners from everywheres.
-
- A nigger woman come tearing out of the kitchen with
- a rolling-pin in her hand, singing out, "Begone YOU
- Tige! you Spot! begone sah!" and she fetched first
- one and then another of them a clip and sent them
- howling, and then the rest followed; and the next
- second half of them come back, wagging their tails
- around me, and making friends with me. There ain't
- no harm in a hound, nohow.
-
- And behind the woman comes a little nigger girl and
- two little nigger boys without anything on but tow-linen
- shirts, and they hung on to their mother's gown, and
- peeped out from behind her at me, bashful, the way
- they always do. And here comes the white woman
- running from the house, about forty-five or fifty year
- old, bareheaded, and her spinning-stick in her hand;
- and behind her comes her little white children, acting
- the same way the little niggers was going. She was
- smiling all over so she could hardly stand -- and says:
-
- "It's YOU, at last! -- AIN'T it?"
-
- I out with a "Yes'm" before I thought.
-
- She grabbed me and hugged me tight; and then
- gripped me by both hands and shook and shook; and
- the tears come in her eyes, and run down over; and
- she couldn't seem to hug and shake enough, and kept
- saying, "You don't look as much like your mother as
- I reckoned you would; but law sakes, I don't care for
- that, I'm so glad to see you! Dear, dear, it does seem
- like I could eat you up! Children, it's your cousin
- Tom! -- tell him howdy."
-
- But they ducked their heads, and put their fingers in
- their mouths, and hid behind her. So she run on:
-
- "Lize, hurry up and get him a hot breakfast right
- away -- or did you get your breakfast on the boat?"
-
- I said I had got it on the boat. So then she started
- for the house, leading me by the hand, and the children
- tagging after. When we got there she set me down in
- a split-bottomed chair, and set herself down on a little
- low stool in front of me, holding both of my hands,
- and says:
-
- "Now I can have a GOOD look at you; and, laws-a-
- me, I've been hungry for it a many and a many a time,
- all these long years, and it's come at last! We been
- expecting you a couple of days and more. What kep'
- you? -- boat get aground?"
-
- "Yes'm -- she --"
-
- "Don't say yes'm -- say Aunt Sally. Where'd she
- get aground?"
-
- I didn't rightly know what to say, because I didn't
- know whether the boat would be coming up the river
- or down. But I go a good deal on instinct; and my
- instinct said she would be coming up -- from down
- towards Orleans. That didn't help me much, though;
- for I didn't know the names of bars down that way. I
- see I'd got to invent a bar, or forget the name of the
- one we got aground on -- or -- Now I struck an idea,
- and fetched it out:
-
- "It warn't the grounding -- that didn't keep us back
- but a little. We blowed out a cylinder-head."
-
- "Good gracious! anybody hurt?"
-
- "No'm. Killed a nigger."
-
- "Well, it's lucky; because sometimes people do get
- hurt. Two years ago last Christmas your uncle Silas
- was coming up from Newrleans on the old Lally Rook,
- and she blowed out a cylinder-head and crippled a man.
- And I think he died afterwards. He was a Baptist.
- Your uncle Silas knowed a family in Baton Rouge
- that knowed his people very well. Yes, I remember
- now, he DID die. Mortification set in, and they had to
- amputate him. But it didn't save him. Yes, it was
- mortification -- that was it. He turned blue all over,
- and died in the hope of a glorious resurrection. They
- say he was a sight to look at. Your uncle's been up
- to the town every day to fetch you. And he's gone
- again, not more'n an hour ago; he'll be back any
- minute now. You must a met him on the road, didn't
- you? -- oldish man, with a --"
-
- "No, I didn't see nobody, Aunt Sally. The boat
- landed just at daylight, and I left my baggage on the
- wharf-boat and went looking around the town and out
- a piece in the country, to put in the time and not get
- here too soon; and so I come down the back way."
-
- "Who'd you give the baggage to?"
-
- "Nobody."
-
- "Why, child, it 'll be stole!"
-
- "Not where I hid it I reckon it won't," I says.
-
- "How'd you get your breakfast so early on the
- boat?"
-
- It was kinder thin ice, but I says:
-
- "The captain see me standing around, and told me
- I better have something to eat before I went ashore;
- so he took me in the texas to the officers' lunch, and
- give me all I wanted."
-
- I was getting so uneasy I couldn't listen good. I
- had my mind on the children all the time; I wanted to
- get them out to one side and pump them a little, and
- find out who I was. But I couldn't get no show, Mrs.
- Phelps kept it up and run on so. Pretty soon she made
- the cold chills streak all down my back, because she
- says:
-
- "But here we're a-running on this way, and you
- hain't told me a word about Sis, nor any of them.
- Now I'll rest my works a little, and you start up yourn;
- just tell me EVERYTHING -- tell me all about 'm all
- every one of 'm; and how they are, and what they're
- doing, and what they told you to tell me; and every
- last thing you can think of."
-
- Well, I see I was up a stump -- and up it good.
- Providence had stood by me this fur all right, but I
- was hard and tight aground now. I see it warn't a bit
- of use to try to go ahead -- I'd got to throw up my
- hand. So I says to myself, here's another place where
- I got to resk the truth. I opened my mouth to begin;
- but she grabbed me and hustled me in behind the bed,
- and says:
-
- "Here he comes! Stick your head down lower --
- there, that'll do; you can't be seen now. Don't you
- let on you're here. I'll play a joke on him. Children,
- don't you say a word."
-
- I see I was in a fix now. But it warn't no use to
- worry; there warn't nothing to do but just hold still,
- and try and be ready to stand from under when the
- lightning struck.
-
- I had just one little glimpse of the old gentleman
- when he come in; then the bed hid him. Mrs. Phelps
- she jumps for him, and says:
-
- "Has he come?"
-
- "No," says her husband.
-
- "Good-NESS gracious!" she says, "what in the
- warld can have become of him?"
-
- "I can't imagine," says the old gentleman; "and
- I must say it makes me dreadful uneasy."
-
- "Uneasy!" she says; "I'm ready to go distracted!
- He MUST a come; and you've missed him along the
- road. I KNOW it's so -- something tells me so."
-
- "Why, Sally, I COULDN'T miss him along the road --
- YOU know that."
-
- "But oh, dear, dear, what WILL Sis say! He must a
- come! You must a missed him. He --"
-
- "Oh, don't distress me any more'n I'm already dis-
- tressed. I don't know what in the world to make of it.
- I'm at my wit's end, and I don't mind acknowledging
- 't I'm right down scared. But there's no hope that
- he's come; for he COULDN'T come and me miss him.
- Sally, it's terrible -- just terrible -- something's hap-
- pened to the boat, sure!"
-
- "Why, Silas! Look yonder! -- up the road! -- ain't
- that somebody coming?"
-
- He sprung to the window at the head of the bed,
- and that give Mrs. Phelps the chance she wanted. She
- stooped down quick at the foot of the bed and give me
- a pull, and out I come; and when he turned back
- from the window there she stood, a-beaming and a-smil-
- ing like a house afire, and I standing pretty meek and
- sweaty alongside. The old gentleman stared, and
- says:
-
- "Why, who's that?"
-
- "Who do you reckon 't is?"
-
- "I hain't no idea. Who IS it?"
-
- "It's TOM SAWYER!"
-
- By jings, I most slumped through the floor! But
- there warn't no time to swap knives; the old man
- grabbed me by the hand and shook, and kept on shak-
- ing; and all the time how the woman did dance around
- and laugh and cry; and then how they both did fire off
- questions about Sid, and Mary, and the rest of the
- tribe.
-
- But if they was joyful, it warn't nothing to what I
- was; for it was like being born again, I was so glad to
- find out who I was. Well, they froze to me for two
- hours; and at last, when my chin was so tired it
- couldn't hardly go any more, I had told them more
- about my family -- I mean the Sawyer family -- than
- ever happened to any six Sawyer families. And I ex-
- plained all about how we blowed out a cylinder-head at
- the mouth of White River, and it took us three days to
- fix it. Which was all right, and worked first-rate; be-
- cause THEY didn't know but what it would take three
- days to fix it. If I'd a called it a bolthead it would a
- done just as well.
-
- Now I was feeling pretty comfortable all down one
- side, and pretty uncomfortable all up the other. Be-
- ing Tom Sawyer was easy and comfortable, and it
- stayed easy and comfortable till by and by I hear a
- steamboat coughing along down the river. Then I
- says to myself, s'pose Tom Sawyer comes down on that
- boat? And s'pose he steps in here any minute, and
- sings out my name before I can throw him a wink to
- keep quiet?
-
- Well, I couldn't HAVE it that way; it wouldn't do at
- all. I must go up the road and waylay him. So I
- told the folks I reckoned I would go up to the town
- and fetch down my baggage. The old gentleman was
- for going along with me, but I said no, I could drive
- the horse myself, and I druther he wouldn't take no
- trouble about me.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIII.
-
- SO I started for town in the wagon, and when I was
- half-way I see a wagon coming, and sure enough it
- was Tom Sawyer, and I stopped and waited till he come
- along. I says "Hold on!" and it stopped alongside,
- and his mouth opened up like a trunk, and stayed so;
- and he swallowed two or three times like a person that's
- got a dry throat, and then says:
-
- "I hain't ever done you no harm. You know that.
- So, then, what you want to come back and ha'nt ME
- for?"
-
- I says:
-
- "I hain't come back -- I hain't been GONE."
-
- When he heard my voice it righted him up some, but
- he warn't quite satisfied yet. He says:
-
- "Don't you play nothing on me, because I wouldn't
- on you. Honest injun, you ain't a ghost?"
-
- "Honest injun, I ain't," I says.
-
- "Well -- I -- I -- well, that ought to settle it, of
- course; but I can't somehow seem to understand it no
- way. Looky here, warn't you ever murdered AT ALL?"
-
- "No. I warn't ever murdered at all -- I played it
- on them. You come in here and feel of me if you
- don't believe me."
-
- So he done it; and it satisfied him; and he was that
- glad to see me again he didn't know what to do. And
- he wanted to know all about it right off, because it was
- a grand adventure, and mysterious, and so it hit him
- where he lived. But I said, leave it alone till by and
- by; and told his driver to wait, and we drove off a little
- piece, and I told him the kind of a fix I was in, and what
- did he reckon we better do? He said, let him alone a
- minute, and don't disturb him. So he thought and
- thought, and pretty soon he says:
-
- "It's all right; I've got it. Take my trunk in your
- wagon, and let on it's your'n; and you turn back and
- fool along slow, so as to get to the house about the
- time you ought to; and I'll go towards town a piece,
- and take a fresh start, and get there a quarter or a half
- an hour after you; and you needn't let on to know
- me at first."
-
- I says:
-
- "All right; but wait a minute. There's one more
- thing -- a thing that NOBODY don't know but me. And
- that is, there's a nigger here that I'm a-trying to steal
- out of slavery, and his name is JIM -- old Miss Wat-
- son's Jim."
-
- He says:
-
- " What ! Why, Jim is --"
-
- He stopped and went to studying. I says:
-
- "I know what you'll say. You'll say it's dirty, low-
- down business; but what if it is? I'm low down; and
- I'm a-going to steal him, and I want you keep mum
- and not let on. Will you?"
-
- His eye lit up, and he says:
-
- "I'll HELP you steal him!"
-
- Well, I let go all holts then, like I was shot. It
- was the most astonishing speech I ever heard -- and
- I'm bound to say Tom Sawyer fell considerable in my
- estimation. Only I couldn't believe it. Tom Sawyer a
- NIGGER-STEALER!
-
- "Oh, shucks!" I says; "you're joking."
-
- "I ain't joking, either."
-
- "Well, then," I says, "joking or no joking, if you
- hear anything said about a runaway nigger, don't for-
- get to remember that YOU don't know nothing about
- him, and I don't know nothing about him."
-
- Then we took the trunk and put it in my wagon, and
- he drove off his way and I drove mine. But of course
- I forgot all about driving slow on accounts of being glad
- and full of thinking; so I got home a heap too quick
- for that length of a trip. The old gentleman was at
- the door, and he says:
-
- "Why, this is wonderful! Whoever would a
- thought it was in that mare to do it? I wish we'd
- a timed her. And she hain't sweated a hair -- not a
- hair. It's wonderful. Why, I wouldn't take a hundred
- dollars for that horse now -- I wouldn't, honest; and
- yet I'd a sold her for fifteen before, and thought 'twas
- all she was worth."
-
- That's all he said. He was the innocentest, best old
- soul I ever see. But it warn't surprising; because he
- warn't only just a farmer, he was a preacher, too, and
- had a little one-horse log church down back of the
- plantation, which he built it himself at his own expense,
- for a church and schoolhouse, and never charged noth-
- ing for his preaching, and it was worth it, too. There
- was plenty other farmer-preachers like that, and done
- the same way, down South.
-
- In about half an hour Tom's wagon drove up to the
- front stile, and Aunt Sally she see it through the win-
- dow, because it was only about fifty yards, and says:
-
- "Why, there's somebody come! I wonder who
- 'tis? Why, I do believe it's a stranger. Jimmy "
- (that's one of the children)' "run and tell Lize to put
- on another plate for dinner."
-
- Everybody made a rush for the front door, because,
- of course, a stranger don't come EVERY year, and so he
- lays over the yaller-fever, for interest, when he does
- come. Tom was over the stile and starting for the
- house; the wagon was spinning up the road for the
- village, and we was all bunched in the front door. Tom
- had his store clothes on, and an audience -- and that
- was always nuts for Tom Sawyer. In them circum-
- stances it warn't no trouble to him to throw in an
- amount of style that was suitable. He warn't a boy to
- meeky along up that yard like a sheep; no, he come
- ca'm and important, like the ram. When he got a-front
- of us he lifts his hat ever so gracious and dainty, like it
- was the lid of a box that had butterflies asleep in it and
- he didn't want to disturb them, and says:
-
- "Mr. Archibald Nichols, I presume?"
-
- "No, my boy," says the old gentleman, "I'm sorry
- to say 't your driver has deceived you; Nichols's place
- is down a matter of three mile more. Come in, come
- in."
-
- Tom he took a look back over his shoulder, and says,
- "Too late -- he's out of sight."
-
- "Yes, he's gone, my son, and you must come in
- and eat your dinner with us; and then we'll hitch up
- and take you down to Nichols's."
-
- "Oh, I CAN'T make you so much trouble; I couldn't
- think of it. I'll walk -- I don't mind the distance."
-
- "But we won't LET you walk -- it wouldn't be South-
- ern hospitality to do it. Come right in."
-
- "Oh, DO," says Aunt Sally; "it ain't a bit of
- trouble to us, not a bit in the world. You must stay.
- It's a long, dusty three mile, and we can't let you walk.
- And, besides, I've already told 'em to put on another
- plate when I see you coming; so you mustn't disap-
- point us. Come right in and make yourself at home."
-
- So Tom he thanked them very hearty and handsome,
- and let himself be persuaded, and come in; and when
- he was in he said he was a stranger from Hicksville,
- Ohio, and his name was William Thompson -- and he
- made another bow.
-
- Well, he run on, and on, and on, making up stuff
- about Hicksville and everybody in it he could invent,
- and I getting a little nervious, and wondering how this
- was going to help me out of my scrape; and at last,
- still talking along, he reached over and kissed Aunt
- Sally right on the mouth, and then settled back again
- in his chair comfortable, and was going on talking; but
- she jumped up and wiped it off with the back of her
- hand, and says:
-
- "You owdacious puppy!"
-
- He looked kind of hurt, and says:
-
- "I'm surprised at you, m'am."
-
- "You're s'rp -- Why, what do you reckon I am?
- I've a good notion to take and -- Say, what do you
- mean by kissing me?"
-
- He looked kind of humble, and says:
-
- "I didn't mean nothing, m'am. I didn't mean no
- harm. I -- I -- thought you'd like it."
-
- "Why, you born fool!" She took up the spinning
- stick, and it looked like it was all she could do to keep
- from giving him a crack with it. "What made you
- think I'd like it?"
-
- "Well, I don't know. Only, they -- they -- told
- me you would."
-
- "THEY told you I would. Whoever told you's
- ANOTHER lunatic. I never heard the beat of it. Who's
- THEY?"
-
- "Why, everybody. They all said so, m'am."
-
- It was all she could do to hold in; and her eyes
- snapped, and her fingers worked like she wanted to
- scratch him; and she says:
-
- "Who's 'everybody'? Out with their names, or
- ther'll be an idiot short."
-
- He got up and looked distressed, and fumbled his
- hat, and says:
-
- "I'm sorry, and I warn't expecting it. They told
- me to. They all told me to. They all said, kiss her;
- and said she'd like it. They all said it -- every one of
- them. But I'm sorry, m'am, and I won't do it no
- more -- I won't, honest."
-
- "You won't, won't you? Well, I sh'd RECKON you
- won't!"
-
- "No'm, I'm honest about it; I won't ever do it
- again -- till you ask me."
-
- "Till I ASK you! Well, I never see the beat of it in
- my born days! I lay you'll be the Methusalem-num-
- skull of creation before ever I ask you -- or the likes of
- you."
-
- "Well," he says, "it does surprise me so. I can't
- make it out, somehow. They said you would, and I
- thought you would. But --" He stopped and looked
- around slow, like he wished he could run across a
- friendly eye somewheres, and fetched up on the old
- gentleman's, and says, "Didn't YOU think she'd like
- me to kiss her, sir?"
-
- "Why, no; I -- I -- well, no, I b'lieve I didn't."
-
- Then he looks on around the same way to me, and
- says:
-
- "Tom, didn't YOU think Aunt Sally 'd open out her
- arms and say, 'Sid Sawyer --'"
-
- "My land!" she says, breaking in and jumping for
- him, "you impudent young rascal, to fool a body
- so --" and was going to hug him, but he fended her
- off, and says:
-
- "No, not till you've asked me first."
-
- So she didn't lose no time, but asked him; and
- hugged him and kissed him over and over again, and
- then turned him over to the old man, and he took what
- was left. And after they got a little quiet again she says:
-
- "Why, dear me, I never see such a surprise. We
- warn't looking for YOU at all, but only Tom. Sis never
- wrote to me about anybody coming but him."
-
- "It's because it warn't INTENDED for any of us to
- come but Tom," he says; "but I begged and begged,
- and at the last minute she let me come, too; so, com-
- ing down the river, me and Tom thought it would be
- a first-rate surprise for him to come here to the house
- first, and for me to by and by tag along and drop in,
- and let on to be a stranger. But it was a mistake,
- Aunt Sally. This ain't no healthy place for a stranger
- to come."
-
- "No -- not impudent whelps, Sid. You ought to
- had your jaws boxed; I hain't been so put out since I
- don't know when. But I don't care, I don't mind
- the terms -- I'd be willing to stand a thousand such
- jokes to have you here. Well, to think of that per-
- formance! I don't deny it, I was most putrified with
- astonishment when you give me that smack."
-
- We had dinner out in that broad open passage be-
- twixt the house and the kitchen; and there was things
- enough on that table for seven families -- and all hot,
- too; none of your flabby, tough meat that's laid in a
- cupboard in a damp cellar all night and tastes like a
- hunk of old cold cannibal in the morning. Uncle
- Silas he asked a pretty long blessing over it, but it was
- worth it; and it didn't cool it a bit, neither, the way
- I've seen them kind of interruptions do lots of times.
- There was a considerable good deal of talk all the
- afternoon, and me and Tom was on the lookout all the
- time; but it warn't no use, they didn't happen to say
- nothing about any runaway nigger, and we was afraid
- to try to work up to it. But at supper, at night, one
- of the little boys says:
-
- "Pa, mayn't Tom and Sid and me go to the show?"
-
- "No," says the old man, "I reckon there ain't go-
- ing to be any; and you couldn't go if there was; be-
- cause the runaway nigger told Burton and me all about
- that scandalous show, and Burton said he would tell the
- people; so I reckon they've drove the owdacious loaf-
- ers out of town before this time."
-
- So there it was! -- but I couldn't help it. Tom and
- me was to sleep in the same room and bed; so, being
- tired, we bid good-night and went up to bed right after
- supper, and clumb out of the window and down the
- lightning-rod, and shoved for the town; for I didn't
- believe anybody was going to give the king and the
- duke a hint, and so if I didn't hurry up and give them
- one they'd get into trouble sure.
-
- On the road Tom he told me all about how it was
- reckoned I was murdered, and how pap disappeared
- pretty soon, and didn't come back no more, and what
- a stir there was when Jim run away; and I told Tom
- all about our Royal Nonesuch rapscallions, and as
- much of the raft voyage as I had time to; and as we
- struck into the town and up through the -- here comes a
- raging rush of people with torches, and an awful
- whooping and yelling, and banging tin pans and blow-
- ing horns; and we jumped to one side to let them go
- by; and as they went by I see they had the king and
- the duke astraddle of a rail -- that is, I knowed it WAS
- the king and the duke, though they was all over tar and
- feathers, and didn't look like nothing in the world that
- was human -- just looked like a couple of monstrous
- big soldier-plumes. Well, it made me sick to see it;
- and I was sorry for them poor pitiful rascals, it seemed
- like I couldn't ever feel any hardness against them any
- more in the world. It was a dreadful thing to see.
- Human beings CAN be awful cruel to one another.
-
- We see we was too late -- couldn't do no good. We
- asked some stragglers about it, and they said everybody
- went to the show looking very innocent; and laid
- low and kept dark till the poor old king was in the
- middle of his cavortings on the stage; then somebody
- give a signal, and the house rose up and went for
- them.
-
- So we poked along back home, and I warn't feeling
- so brash as I was before, but kind of ornery, and
- humble, and to blame, somehow -- though I hadn't
- done nothing. But that's always the way; it don't
- make no difference whether you do right or wrong, a
- person's conscience ain't got no sense, and just goes for
- him anyway. If I had a yaller dog that didn't know
- no more than a person's conscience does I would pison
- him. It takes up more room than all the rest of a
- person's insides, and yet ain't no good, nohow. Tom
- Sawyer he says the same.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIV.
-
- WE stopped talking, and got to thinking. By and by
- Tom says:
-
- "Looky here, Huck, what fools we are to not think
- of it before! I bet I know where Jim is."
-
- "No! Where?"
-
- "In that hut down by the ash-hopper. Why, looky
- here. When we was at dinner, didn't you see a nigger
- man go in there with some vittles?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "What did you think the vittles was for?"
-
- "For a dog."
-
- "So 'd I. Well, it wasn't for a dog."
-
- "Why?"
-
- "Because part of it was watermelon."
-
- "So it was -- I noticed it. Well, it does beat all
- that I never thought about a dog not eating water-
- melon. It shows how a body can see and don't see at
- the same time."
-
- "Well, the nigger unlocked the padlock when he
- went in, and he locked it again when he came out. He
- fetched uncle a key about the time we got up from
- table -- same key, I bet. Watermelon shows man,
- lock shows prisoner; and it ain't likely there's two
- prisoners on such a little plantation, and where the
- people's all so kind and good. Jim's the prisoner.
- All right -- I'm glad we found it out detective fashion;
- I wouldn't give shucks for any other way. Now you
- work your mind, and study out a plan to steal Jim, and
- I will study out one, too; and we'll take the one we
- like the best."
-
- What a head for just a boy to have! If I had Tom
- Sawyer's head I wouldn't trade it off to be a duke, nor
- mate of a steamboat, nor clown in a circus, nor nothing
- I can think of. I went to thinking out a plan, but only
- just to be doing something; I knowed very well where
- the right plan was going to come from. Pretty soon
- Tom says:
-
- "Ready?"
-
- "Yes," I says.
-
- "All right -- bring it out."
-
- "My plan is this," I says. "We can easy find out
- if it's Jim in there. Then get up my canoe to-morrow
- night, and fetch my raft over from the island. Then
- the first dark night that comes steal the key out of the
- old man's britches after he goes to bed, and shove off
- down the river on the raft with Jim, hiding daytimes
- and running nights, the way me and Jim used to do be-
- fore. Wouldn't that plan work?"
-
- "WORK? Why, cert'nly it would work, like rats
- a-fighting. But it's too blame' simple; there ain't
- nothing TO it. What's the good of a plan that ain't no
- more trouble than that? It's as mild as goose-milk.
- Why, Huck, it wouldn't make no more talk than break-
- ing into a soap factory."
-
- I never said nothing, because I warn't expecting noth-
- ing different; but I knowed mighty well that whenever
- he got HIS plan ready it wouldn't have none of them
- objections to it.
-
- And it didn't. He told me what it was, and I see in
- a minute it was worth fifteen of mine for style, and
- would make Jim just as free a man as mine would, and
- maybe get us all killed besides. So I was satisfied, and
- said we would waltz in on it. I needn't tell what it
- was here, because I knowed it wouldn't stay the way, it
- was. I knowed he would be changing it around every
- which way as we went along, and heaving in new bull-
- inesses wherever he got a chance. And that is what
- he done.
-
- Well, one thing was dead sure, and that was that Tom
- Sawyer was in earnest, and was actuly going to help
- steal that nigger out of slavery. That was the thing
- that was too many for me. Here was a boy that was
- respectable and well brung up; and had a character to
- lose; and folks at home that had characters; and he
- was bright and not leather-headed; and knowing and
- not ignorant; and not mean, but kind; and yet here
- he was, without any more pride, or rightness, or feel-
- ing, than to stoop to this business, and make himself a
- shame, and his family a shame, before everybody. I
- COULDN'T understand it no way at all. It was outra-
- geous, and I knowed I ought to just up and tell him so;
- and so be his true friend, and let him quit the thing
- right where he was and save himself. And I DID start
- to tell him; but he shut me up, and says:
-
- "Don't you reckon I know what I'm about? Don't
- I generly know what I'm about?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Didn't I SAY I was going to help steal the nigger?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "WELL, then."
-
- That's all he said, and that's all I said. It warn't no
- use to say any more; because when he said he'd do a
- thing, he always done it. But I couldn't make out
- how he was willing to go into this thing; so I just let it
- go, and never bothered no more about it. If he was
- bound to have it so, I couldn't help it.
-
- When we got home the house was all dark and still;
- so we went on down to the hut by the ash-hopper for
- to examine it. We went through the yard so as to see
- what the hounds would do. They knowed us, and
- didn't make no more noise than country dogs is always
- doing when anything comes by in the night. When
- we got to the cabin we took a look at the front and the
- two sides; and on the side I warn't acquainted with --
- which was the north side -- we found a square window-
- hole, up tolerable high, with just one stout board nailed
- across it. I says:
-
- "Here's the ticket. This hole's big enough for Jim
- to get through if we wrench off the board."
-
- Tom says:
-
- "It's as simple as tit-tat-toe, three-in-a-row, and as
- easy as playing hooky. I should HOPE we can find a
- way that's a little more complicated than THAT, Huck
- Finn."
-
- "Well, then," I says, "how 'll it do to saw him out,
- the way I done before I was murdered that time?"
-
- "That's more LIKE," he says. "It's real mysterious,
- and troublesome, and good," he says; "but I bet we
- can find a way that's twice as long. There ain't no
- hurry; le's keep on looking around."
-
- Betwixt the hut and the fence, on the back side, was
- a lean-to that joined the hut at the eaves, and was made
- out of plank. It was as long as the hut, but narrow
- -- only about six foot wide. The door to it was at the
- south end, and was padlocked. Tom he went to the
- soap-kettle and searched around, and fetched back the
- iron thing they lift the lid with; so he took it and
- prized out one of the staples. The chain fell down,
- and we opened the door and went in, and shut it, and
- struck a match, and see the shed was only built against
- a cabin and hadn't no connection with it; and there
- warn't no floor to the shed, nor nothing in it but some
- old rusty played-out hoes and spades and picks and
- a crippled plow. The match went out, and so did we,
- and shoved in the staple again, and the door was locked
- as good as ever. Tom was joyful. He says;
-
- "Now we're all right. We'll DIG him out. It 'll
- take about a week!"
-
- Then we started for the house, and I went in the
- back door -- you only have to pull a buckskin latch-
- string, they don't fasten the doors -- but that warn't
- romantical enough for Tom Sawyer; no way would do
- him but he must climb up the lightning-rod. But after
- he got up half way about three times, and missed fire
- and fell every time, and the last time most busted his
- brains out, he thought he'd got to give it up; but after
- he was rested he allowed he would give her one more
- turn for luck, and this time he made the trip.
-
- In the morning we was up at break of day, and down
- to the nigger cabins to pet the dogs and make friends
- with the nigger that fed Jim -- if it WAS Jim that was
- being fed. The niggers was just getting through break-
- fast and starting for the fields; and Jim's nigger was
- piling up a tin pan with bread and meat and things;
- and whilst the others was leaving, the key come from
- the house.
-
- This nigger had a good-natured, chuckle-headed face,
- and his wool was all tied up in little bunches with
- thread. That was to keep witches off. He said the
- witches was pestering him awful these nights, and mak-
- ing him see all kinds of strange things, and hear all kinds
- of strange words and noises, and he didn't believe he
- was ever witched so long before in his life. He got
- so worked up, and got to running on so about his
- troubles, he forgot all about what he'd been a-going to
- do. So Tom says:
-
- "What's the vittles for? Going to feed the dogs?"
-
- The nigger kind of smiled around graduly over his
- face, like when you heave a brickbat in a mud-puddle,
- and he says:
-
- "Yes, Mars Sid, A dog. Cur'us dog, too. Does
- you want to go en look at 'im?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- I hunched Tom, and whispers:
-
- "You going, right here in the daybreak? THAT
- warn't the plan."
-
- "No, it warn't; but it's the plan NOW."
-
- So, drat him, we went along, but I didn't like it
- much. When we got in we couldn't hardly see any-
- thing, it was so dark; but Jim was there, sure enough,
- and could see us; and he sings out:
-
- "Why, HUCK! En good LAN'! ain' dat Misto Tom?"
-
- I just knowed how it would be; I just expected it.
- I didn't know nothing to do; and if I had I couldn't
- a done it, because that nigger busted in and says:
-
- "Why, de gracious sakes! do he know you genl-
- men?"
-
- We could see pretty well now. Tom he looked at
- the nigger, steady and kind of wondering, and says:
-
- "Does WHO know us?"
-
- "Why, dis-yer runaway nigger."
-
- "I don't reckon he does; but what put that into
- your head?"
-
- "What PUT it dar? Didn' he jis' dis minute sing
- out like he knowed you?"
-
- Tom says, in a puzzled-up kind of way:
-
- "Well, that's mighty curious. WHO sung out?
- WHEN did he sing out? WHAT did he sing out?"
- And turns to me, perfectly ca'm, and says, "Did
- YOU hear anybody sing out?"
-
- Of course there warn't nothing to be said but the one
- thing; so I says:
-
- "No; I ain't heard nobody say nothing."
-
- Then he turns to Jim, and looks him over like he
- never see him before, and says:
-
- "Did you sing out?"
-
- "No, sah," says Jim; " I hain't said nothing, sah."
-
- "Not a word?"
-
- "No, sah, I hain't said a word."
-
- "Did you ever see us before?"
-
- "No, sah; not as I knows on."
-
- So Tom turns to the nigger, which was looking wild
- and distressed, and says, kind of severe:
-
- "What do you reckon's the matter with you, any-
- way? What made you think somebody sung out?"
-
- "Oh, it's de dad-blame' witches, sah, en I wisht I
- was dead, I do. Dey's awluz at it, sah, en dey do
- mos' kill me, dey sk'yers me so. Please to don't tell
- nobody 'bout it sah, er ole Mars Silas he'll scole me;
- 'kase he say dey AIN'T no witches. I jis' wish to good-
- ness he was heah now -- DEN what would he say! I
- jis' bet he couldn' fine no way to git aroun' it DIS time.
- But it's awluz jis' so; people dat's SOT, stays sot; dey
- won't look into noth'n'en fine it out f'r deyselves, en
- when YOU fine it out en tell um 'bout it, dey doan'
- b'lieve you."
-
- Tom give him a dime, and said we wouldn't tell no-
- body; and told him to buy some more thread to tie up
- his wool with; and then looks at Jim, and says:
-
- "I wonder if Uncle Silas is going to hang this nigger.
- If I was to catch a nigger that was ungrateful enough
- to run away, I wouldn't give him up, I'd hang him."
- And whilst the nigger stepped to the door to look at
- the dime and bite it to see if it was good, he whispers
- to Jim and says:
-
- "Don't ever let on to know us. And if you hear
- any digging going on nights, it's us; we're going to
- set you free."
-
- Jim only had time to grab us by the hand and squeeze
- it; then the nigger come back, and we said we'd
- come again some time if the nigger wanted us to; and
- he said he would, more particular if it was dark, be-
- cause the witches went for him mostly in the dark, and
- it was good to have folks around then.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXV.
-
- IT would be most an hour yet till breakfast, so we left
- and struck down into the woods; because Tom said
- we got to have SOME light to see how to dig by, and a
- lantern makes too much, and might get us into trouble;
- what we must have was a lot of them rotten chunks
- that's called fox-fire, and just makes a soft kind of a
- glow when you lay them in a dark place. We fetched
- an armful and hid it in the weeds, and set down to rest,
- and Tom says, kind of dissatisfied:
-
- "Blame it, this whole thing is just as easy and
- awkward as it can be. And so it makes it so rotten
- difficult to get up a difficult plan. There ain't no watch-
- man to be drugged -- now there OUGHT to be a watch-
- man. There ain't even a dog to give a sleeping-mix-
- ture to. And there's Jim chained by one leg, with a
- ten-foot chain, to the leg of his bed: why, all you got
- to do is to lift up the bedstead and slip off the chain.
- And Uncle Silas he trusts everybody; sends the key
- to the punkin-headed nigger, and don't send nobody to
- watch the nigger. Jim could a got out of that window-
- hole before this, only there wouldn't be no use trying
- to travel with a ten-foot chain on his leg. Why, drat
- it, Huck, it's the stupidest arrangement I ever see.
- You got to invent ALL the difficulties. Well, we can't
- help it; we got to do the best we can with the materials
- we've got. Anyhow, there's one thing -- there's more
- honor in getting him out through a lot of difficulties
- and dangers, where there warn't one of them furnished
- to you by the people who it was their duty to furnish
- them, and you had to contrive them all out of your
- own head. Now look at just that one thing of the
- lantern. When you come down to the cold facts, we
- simply got to LET ON that a lantern's resky. Why, we
- could work with a torchlight procession if we wanted
- to, I believe. Now, whilst I think of it, we got to
- hunt up something to make a saw out of the first
- chance we get."
-
- "What do we want of a saw?"
-
- "What do we WANT of a saw? Hain't we got to
- saw the leg of Jim's bed off, so as to get the chain
- loose?"
-
- "Why, you just said a body could lift up the bed-
- stead and slip the chain off."
-
- "Well, if that ain't just like you, Huck Finn. You
- CAN get up the infant-schooliest ways of going at a
- thing. Why, hain't you ever read any books at all?
- -- Baron Trenck, nor Casanova, nor Benvenuto Chel-
- leeny, nor Henri IV., nor none of them heroes? Who
- ever heard of getting a prisoner loose in such an old-
- maidy way as that? No; the way all the best authori-
- ties does is to saw the bed-leg in two, and leave it just
- so, and swallow the sawdust, so it can't be found, and
- put some dirt and grease around the sawed place so the
- very keenest seneskal can't see no sign of it's being
- sawed, and thinks the bed-leg is perfectly sound. Then,
- the night you're ready, fetch the leg a kick, down she
- goes; slip off your chain, and there you are. Nothing
- to do but hitch your rope ladder to the battlements, shin
- down it, break your leg in the moat -- because a rope
- ladder is nineteen foot too short, you know -- and there's
- your horses and your trusty vassles, and they scoop
- you up and fling you across a saddle, and away you go
- to your native Langudoc, or Navarre, or wherever it is.
- It's gaudy, Huck. I wish there was a moat to this
- cabin. If we get time, the night of the escape,
- we'll dig one."
-
- I says:
-
- "What do we want of a moat when we're going to
- snake him out from under the cabin?"
-
- But he never heard me. He had forgot me and
- everything else. He had his chin in his hand, thinking.
- Pretty soon he sighs and shakes his head; then sighs
- again, and says:
-
- "No, it wouldn't do -- there ain't necessity enough
- for it."
-
- "For what?" I says.
-
- "Why, to saw Jim's leg off," he says.
-
- "Good land!" I says; "why, there ain't NO neces-
- sity for it. And what would you want to saw his leg
- off for, anyway?"
-
- "Well, some of the best authorities has done it.
- They couldn't get the chain off, so they just cut their
- hand off and shoved. And a leg would be better still.
- But we got to let that go. There ain't necessity
- enough in this case; and, besides, Jim's a nigger, and
- wouldn't understand the reasons for it, and how it's the
- custom in Europe; so we'll let it go. But there's one
- thing -- he can have a rope ladder; we can tear up our
- sheets and make him a rope ladder easy enough. And
- we can send it to him in a pie; it's mostly done that
- way. And I've et worse pies."
-
- "Why, Tom Sawyer, how you talk," I says; "Jim
- ain't got no use for a rope ladder."
-
- "He HAS got use for it. How YOU talk, you better
- say; you don't know nothing about it. He's GOT to
- have a rope ladder; they all do."
-
- "What in the nation can he DO with it?"
-
- "DO with it? He can hide it in his bed, can't he?"
- That's what they all do; and HE'S got to, too.
- Huck, you don't ever seem to want to do anything
- that's regular; you want to be starting something fresh
- all the time. S'pose he DON'T do nothing with it? ain't
- it there in his bed, for a clew, after he's gone? and
- don't you reckon they'll want clews? Of course they
- will. And you wouldn't leave them any? That would
- be a PRETTY howdy-do, WOULDN'T it! I never heard of
- such a thing."
-
- "Well," I says, "if it's in the regulations, and he's
- got to have it, all right, let him have it; because I
- don't wish to go back on no regulations; but there's
- one thing, Tom Sawyer -- if we go to tearing up our
- sheets to make Jim a rope ladder, we're going to get
- into trouble with Aunt Sally, just as sure as you're
- born. Now, the way I look at it, a hickry-bark ladder
- don't cost nothing, and don't waste nothing, and is
- just as good to load up a pie with, and hide in a straw
- tick, as any rag ladder you can start; and as for Jim,
- he ain't had no experience, and so he don't care what
- kind of a --"
-
- "Oh, shucks, Huck Finn, if I was as ignorant as
- you I'd keep still -- that's what I'D do. Who ever
- heard of a state prisoner escaping by a hickry-bark
- ladder? Why, it's perfectly ridiculous."
-
- "Well, all right, Tom, fix it your own way; but if
- you'll take my advice, you'll let me borrow a sheet off
- of the clothesline."
-
- He said that would do. And that gave him another
- idea, and he says:
-
- "Borrow a shirt, too."
-
- "What do we want of a shirt, Tom?"
-
- "Want it for Jim to keep a journal on."
-
- "Journal your granny -- JIM can't write."
-
- "S'pose he CAN'T write -- he can make marks on
- the shirt, can't he, if we make him a pen out of
- an old pewter spoon or a piece of an old iron barrel-
- hoop?"
-
- "Why, Tom, we can pull a feather out of a goose
- and make him a better one; and quicker, too."
-
- "PRISONERS don't have geese running around the
- donjon-keep to pull pens out of, you muggins. They
- ALWAYS make their pens out of the hardest, toughest,
- troublesomest piece of old brass candlestick or some-
- thing like that they can get their hands on; and it
- takes them weeks and weeks and months and months
- to file it out, too, because they've got to do it by rub-
- bing it on the wall. THEY wouldn't use a goose-quill if
- they had it. It ain't regular."
-
- "Well, then, what'll we make him the ink out of?"
-
- "Many makes it out of iron-rust and tears; but
- that's the common sort and women; the best authori-
- ties uses their own blood. Jim can do that; and when
- he wants to send any little common ordinary mysterious
- message to let the world know where he's captivated,
- he can write it on the bottom of a tin plate with a fork
- and throw it out of the window. The Iron Mask
- always done that, and it's a blame' good way, too."
-
- "Jim ain't got no tin plates. They feed him in a
- pan."
-
- "That ain't nothing; we can get him some."
-
- "Can't nobody READ his plates."
-
- "That ain't got anything to DO with it, Huck Finn.
- All HE'S got to do is to write on the plate and throw
- it out. You don't HAVE to be able to read it. Why,
- half the time you can't read anything a prisoner writes
- on a tin plate, or anywhere else."
-
- "Well, then, what's the sense in wasting the plates?"
-
- "Why, blame it all, it ain't the PRISONER'S plates."
-
- "But it's SOMEBODY'S plates, ain't it?"
-
- "Well, spos'n it is? What does the PRISONER care
- whose --"
-
- He broke off there, because we heard the breakfast-
- horn blowing. So we cleared out for the house.
-
- Along during the morning I borrowed a sheet and a
- white shirt off of the clothes-line; and I found an old
- sack and put them in it, and we went down and got the
- fox-fire, and put that in too. I called it borrowing,
- because that was what pap always called it; but Tom
- said it warn't borrowing, it was stealing. He said we
- was representing prisoners; and prisoners don't care
- how they get a thing so they get it, and nobody don't
- blame them for it, either. It ain't no crime in a
- prisoner to steal the thing he needs to get away with,
- Tom said; it's his right; and so, as long as we was
- representing a prisoner, we had a perfect right to steal
- anything on this place we had the least use for to get
- ourselves out of prison with. He said if we warn't
- prisoners it would be a very different thing, and nobody
- but a mean, ornery person would steal when he warn't
- a prisoner. So we allowed we would steal every-
- thing there was that come handy. And yet he made
- a mighty fuss, one day, after that, when I stole a
- watermelon out of the nigger-patch and eat it; and he
- made me go and give the niggers a dime without telling
- them what it was for. Tom said that what he meant
- was, we could steal anything we NEEDED. Well, I says,
- I needed the watermelon. But he said I didn't need it
- to get out of prison with; there's where the difference
- was. He said if I'd a wanted it to hide a knife in, and
- smuggle it to Jim to kill the seneskal with, it would a
- been all right. So I let it go at that, though I couldn't
- see no advantage in my representing a prisoner if I got
- to set down and chaw over a lot of gold-leaf distinctions
- like that every time I see a chance to hog a watermelon.
-
- Well, as I was saying, we waited that morning till
- everybody was settled down to business, and nobody
- in sight around the yard; then Tom he carried the
- sack into the lean-to whilst I stood off a piece to keep
- watch. By and by he come out, and we went and set
- down on the woodpile to talk. He says:
-
- "Everything's all right now except tools; and that's
- easy fixed."
-
- "Tools?" I says.
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Tools for what?"
-
- "Why, to dig with. We ain't a-going to GNAW him
- out, are we?"
-
- "Ain't them old crippled picks and things in there
- good enough to dig a nigger out with?" I says.
-
- He turns on me, looking pitying enough to make a
- body cry, and says:
-
- "Huck Finn, did you EVER hear of a prisoner having
- picks and shovels, and all the modern conveniences in
- his wardrobe to dig himself out with? Now I want to
- ask you -- if you got any reasonableness in you at all
- -- what kind of a show would THAT give him to be a
- hero? Why, they might as well lend him the key and
- done with it. Picks and shovels -- why, they wouldn't
- furnish 'em to a king."
-
- "Well, then," I says, "if we don't want the picks
- and shovels, what do we want?"
-
- "A couple of case-knives."
-
- "To dig the foundations out from under that cabin
- with?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Confound it, it's foolish, Tom."
-
- "It don't make no difference how foolish it is, it's
- the RIGHT way -- and it's the regular way. And there
- ain't no OTHER way, that ever I heard of, and I've read
- all the books that gives any information about these
- things. They always dig out with a case-knife -- and
- not through dirt, mind you; generly it's through solid
- rock. And it takes them weeks and weeks and weeks,
- and for ever and ever. Why, look at one of them
- prisoners in the bottom dungeon of the Castle Deef, in
- the harbor of Marseilles, that dug himself out that way;
- how long was HE at it, you reckon?"
-
- "I don't know."
-
- "Well, guess."
-
- "I don't know. A month and a half."
-
- "THIRTY-SEVEN YEAR -- and he come out in China.
- THAT'S the kind. I wish the bottom of THIS fortress
- was solid rock."
-
- "JIM don't know nobody in China."
-
- "What's THAT got to do with it? Neither did that
- other fellow. But you're always a-wandering off on a
- side issue. Why can't you stick to the main point?"
-
- "All right -- I don't care where he comes out, so he
- COMES out; and Jim don't, either, I reckon. But
- there's one thing, anyway -- Jim's too old to be dug
- out with a case-knife. He won't last."
-
- "Yes he will LAST, too. You don't reckon it's going
- to take thirty-seven years to dig out through a DIRT
- foundation, do you?"
-
- "How long will it take, Tom?"
-
- "Well, we can't resk being as long as we ought to,
- because it mayn't take very long for Uncle Silas to hear
- from down there by New Orleans. He'll hear Jim ain't
- from there. Then his next move will be to advertise Jim,
- or something like that. So we can't resk being as long
- digging him out as we ought to. By rights I reckon
- we ought to be a couple of years; but we can't.
- Things being so uncertain, what I recommend is this:
- that we really dig right in, as quick as we can; and
- after that, we can LET ON, to ourselves, that we was at
- it thirty-seven years. Then we can snatch him out and
- rush him away the first time there's an alarm. Yes, I
- reckon that 'll be the best way."
-
- "Now, there's SENSE in that," I says. "Letting on
- don't cost nothing; letting on ain't no trouble; and if
- it's any object, I don't mind letting on we was at it a
- hundred and fifty year. It wouldn't strain me none,
- after I got my hand in. So I'll mosey along now, and
- smouch a couple of case-knives."
-
- "Smouch three," he says; "we want one to make
- a saw out of."
-
- "Tom, if it ain't unregular and irreligious to sejest
- it," I says, "there's an old rusty saw-blade around
- yonder sticking under the weather-boarding behind the
- smoke-house."
-
- He looked kind of weary and discouraged-like, and
- says:
-
- "It ain't no use to try to learn you nothing, Huck.
- Run along and smouch the knives -- three of them."
- So I done it.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVI.
-
- AS soon as we reckoned everybody was asleep that
- night we went down the lightning-rod, and shut
- ourselves up in the lean-to, and got out our pile of
- fox-fire, and went to work. We cleared everything
- out of the way, about four or five foot along the mid-
- dle of the bottom log. Tom said we was right behind
- Jim's bed now, and we'd dig in under it, and when we
- got through there couldn't nobody in the cabin ever
- know there was any hole there, because Jim's counter-
- pin hung down most to the ground, and you'd have to
- raise it up and look under to see the hole. So we dug
- and dug with the case-knives till most midnight; and
- then we was dog-tired, and our hands was blistered,
- and yet you couldn't see we'd done anything hardly.
- At last I says:
-
- "This ain't no thirty-seven year job; this is a
- thirty-eight year job, Tom Sawyer."
-
- He never said nothing. But he sighed, and pretty
- soon he stopped digging, and then for a good little
- while I knowed that he was thinking. Then he says:
-
- "It ain't no use, Huck, it ain't a-going to work. If
- we was prisoners it would, because then we'd have as
- many years as we wanted, and no hurry; and we
- wouldn't get but a few minutes to dig, every day,
- while they was changing watches, and so our hands
- wouldn't get blistered, and we could keep it up right
- along, year in and year out, and do it right, and the
- way it ought to be done. But WE can't fool along;
- we got to rush; we ain't got no time to spare. If we
- was to put in another night this way we'd have to
- knock off for a week to let our hands get well --
- couldn't touch a case-knife with them sooner."
-
- "Well, then, what we going to do, Tom?"
-
- "I'll tell you. It ain't right, and it ain't moral, .
- and I wouldn't like it to get out; but there ain't only
- just the one way: we got to dig him out with the
- picks, and LET ON it's case-knives."
-
- "NOW you're TALKING!" I says; "your head gets
- leveler and leveler all the time, Tom Sawyer," I
- says. "Picks is the thing, moral or no moral; and as
- for me, I don't care shucks for the morality of it,
- nohow. When I start in to steal a nigger, or a water-
- melon, or a Sunday-school book, I ain't no ways
- particular how it's done so it's done. What I want is
- my nigger; or what I want is my watermelon; or what
- I want is my Sunday-school book; and if a pick's the
- handiest thing, that's the thing I'm a-going to dig that
- nigger or that watermelon or that Sunday-school book
- out with; and I don't give a dead rat what the au-
- thorities thinks about it nuther."
-
- "Well," he says, "there's excuse for picks and
- letting-on in a case like this; if it warn't so, I wouldn't
- approve of it, nor I wouldn't stand by and see the
- rules broke -- because right is right, and wrong is
- wrong, and a body ain't got no business doing wrong
- when he ain't ignorant and knows better. It might
- answer for YOU to dig Jim out with a pick, WITHOUT any
- letting on, because you don't know no better; but it
- wouldn't for me, because I do know better. Gimme
- a case-knife."
-
- He had his own by him, but I handed him mine.
- He flung it down, and says:
-
- "Gimme a CASE-KNIFE."
-
- I didn't know just what to do -- but then I thought.
- I scratched around amongst the old tools, and got a
- pickaxe and give it to him, and he took it and went to
- work, and never said a word.
-
- He was always just that particular. Full of principle.
-
- So then I got a shovel, and then we picked and
- shoveled, turn about, and made the fur fly. We stuck
- to it about a half an hour, which was as long as we
- could stand up; but we had a good deal of a hole to
- show for it. When I got up stairs I looked out at the
- window and see Tom doing his level best with the
- lightning-rod, but he couldn't come it, his hands was
- so sore. At last he says:
-
- "It ain't no use, it can't be done. What you
- reckon I better do? Can't you think of no way?"
-
- "Yes," I says, "but I reckon it ain't regular.
- Come up the stairs, and let on it's a lightning-rod."
-
- So he done it.
-
- Next day Tom stole a pewter spoon and a brass
- candlestick in the house, for to make some pens for
- Jim out of, and six tallow candles; and I hung around
- the nigger cabins and laid for a chance, and stole three
- tin plates. Tom says it wasn't enough; but I said
- nobody wouldn't ever see the plates that Jim throwed
- out, because they'd fall in the dog-fennel and jimpson
- weeds under the window-hole -- then we could tote
- them back and he could use them over again. So
- Tom was satisfied. Then he says:
-
- "Now, the thing to study out is, how to get the
- things to Jim."
-
- "Take them in through the hole," I says, "when
- we get it done."
-
- He only just looked scornful, and said something
- about nobody ever heard of such an idiotic idea, and
- then he went to studying. By and by he said he had
- ciphered out two or three ways, but there warn't no
- need to decide on any of them yet. Said we'd got to
- post Jim first.
-
- That night we went down the lightning-rod a little
- after ten, and took one of the candles along, and
- listened under the window-hole, and heard Jim snoring;
- so we pitched it in, and it didn't wake him. Then we
- whirled in with the pick and shovel, and in about two
- hours and a half the job was done. We crept in under
- Jim's bed and into the cabin, and pawed around and
- found the candle and lit it, and stood over Jim awhile,
- and found him looking hearty and healthy, and then
- we woke him up gentle and gradual. He was so glad to
- see us he most cried; and called us honey, and all the
- pet names he could think of; and was for having us
- hunt up a cold-chisel to cut the chain off of his leg
- with right away, and clearing out without losing any
- time. But Tom he showed him how unregular it
- would be, and set down and told him all about our
- plans, and how we could alter them in a minute any
- time there was an alarm; and not to be the least afraid,
- because we would see he got away, SURE. So Jim he
- said it was all right, and we set there and talked over
- old times awhile, and then Tom asked a lot of ques-
- tions, and when Jim told him Uncle Silas come in
- every day or two to pray with him, and Aunt Sally
- come in to see if he was comfortable and had plenty to
- eat, and both of them was kind as they could be, Tom
- says:
-
- "NOW I know how to fix it. We'll send you some
- things by them."
-
- I said, "Don't do nothing of the kind; it's one of
- the most jackass ideas I ever struck;" but he never
- paid no attention to me; went right on. It was his
- way when he'd got his plans set.
-
- So he told Jim how we'd have to smuggle in the
- rope-ladder pie and other large things by Nat, the
- nigger that fed him, and he must be on the lookout,
- and not be surprised, and not let Nat see him open
- them; and we would put small things in uncle's coat-
- pockets and he must steal them out; and we would tie
- things to aunt's apron-strings or put them in her
- apron-pocket, if we got a chance; and told him what
- they would be and what they was for. And told him
- how to keep a journal on the shirt with his blood, and
- all that. He told him everything. Jim he couldn't
- see no sense in the most of it, but he allowed we was
- white folks and knowed better than him; so he was
- satisfied, and said he would do it all just as Tom said.
-
- Jim had plenty corn-cob pipes and tobacco; so
- we had a right down good sociable time; then we
- crawled out through the hole, and so home to bed,
- with hands that looked like they'd been chawed. Tom
- was in high spirits. He said it was the best fun he
- ever had in his life, and the most intellectural; and
- said if he only could see his way to it we would keep it
- up all the rest of our lives and leave Jim to our children
- to get out; for he believed Jim would come to like it
- better and better the more he got used to it. He said
- that in that way it could be strung out to as much as
- eighty year, and would be the best time on record.
- And he said it would make us all celebrated that had a
- hand in it.
-
- In the morning we went out to the woodpile and
- chopped up the brass candlestick into handy sizes, and
- Tom put them and the pewter spoon in his pocket.
- Then we went to the nigger cabins, and while I got
- Nat's notice off, Tom shoved a piece of candlestick
- into the middle of a corn-pone that was in Jim's pan,
- and we went along with Nat to see how it would work,
- and it just worked noble; when Jim bit into it it most
- mashed all his teeth out; and there warn't ever any-
- thing could a worked better. Tom said so himself.
- Jim he never let on but what it was only just a piece of
- rock or something like that that's always getting into
- bread, you know; but after that he never bit into
- nothing but what he jabbed his fork into it in three or
- four places first.
-
- And whilst we was a-standing there in the dimmish
- light, here comes a couple of the hounds bulging in
- from under Jim's bed; and they kept on piling in till
- there was eleven of them, and there warn't hardly
- room in there to get your breath. By jings, we forgot
- to fasten that lean-to door! The nigger Nat he only
- just hollered "Witches" once, and keeled over on to
- the floor amongst the dogs, and begun to groan like
- he was dying. Tom jerked the door open and flung
- out a slab of Jim's meat, and the dogs went for it, and
- in two seconds he was out himself and back again and
- shut the door, and I knowed he'd fixed the other door
- too. Then he went to work on the nigger, coaxing
- him and petting him, and asking him if he'd been
- imagining he saw something again. He raised up, and
- blinked his eyes around, and says:
-
- "Mars Sid, you'll say I's a fool, but if I didn't
- b'lieve I see most a million dogs, er devils, er some'n,
- I wisht I may die right heah in dese tracks. I did,
- mos' sholy. Mars Sid, I FELT um -- I FELT um, sah;
- dey was all over me. Dad fetch it, I jis' wisht I
- could git my han's on one er dem witches jis' wunst --
- on'y jis' wunst -- it's all I'd ast. But mos'ly I wisht
- dey'd lemme 'lone, I does."
-
- Tom says:
-
- "Well, I tell you what I think. What makes them
- come here just at this runaway nigger's breakfast-time?
- It's because they're hungry; that's the reason. You
- make them a witch pie; that's the thing for YOU to
- do."
-
- "But my lan', Mars Sid, how's I gwyne to make
- 'm a witch pie? I doan' know how to make it. I
- hain't ever hearn er sich a thing b'fo'."
-
- "Well, then, I'll have to make it myself."
-
- "Will you do it, honey? -- Qwill you? I'll wusshup
- de groun' und' yo' foot, I will!"
-
- "All right, I'll do it, seeing it's you, and you've
- been good to us and showed us the runaway nigger.
- But you got to be mighty careful. When we come
- around, you turn your back; and then whatever we've
- put in the pan, don't you let on you see it at all. And
- don't you look when Jim unloads the pan -- something
- might happen, I don't know what. And above all,
- don't you HANDLE the witch-things."
-
- "HANNEL 'm, Mars Sid? What IS you a-talkin'
- 'bout? I wouldn' lay de weight er my finger on
- um, not f'r ten hund'd thous'n billion dollars, I
- wouldn't."
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVII.
-
- THAT was all fixed. So then we went away and
- went to the rubbage-pile in the back yard, where
- they keep the old boots, and rags, and pieces of
- bottles, and wore-out tin things, and all such truck,
- and scratched around and found an old tin washpan,
- and stopped up the holes as well as we could, to bake
- the pie in, and took it down cellar and stole it full of
- flour and started for breakfast, and found a couple of
- shingle-nails that Tom said would be handy for a
- prisoner to scrabble his name and sorrows on the
- dungeon walls with, and dropped one of them in Aunt
- Sally's apron-pocket which was hanging on a chair,
- and t'other we stuck in the band of Uncle Silas's hat,
- which was on the bureau, because we heard the chil-
- dren say their pa and ma was going to the runaway
- nigger's house this morning, and then went to break-
- fast, and Tom dropped the pewter spoon in Uncle
- Silas's coat-pocket, and Aunt Sally wasn't come yet,
- so we had to wait a little while.
-
- And when she come she was hot and red and cross,
- and couldn't hardly wait for the blessing; and then
- she went to sluicing out coffee with one hand and
- cracking the handiest child's head with her thimble
- with the other, and says:
-
- "I've hunted high and I've hunted low, and it does
- beat all what HAS become of your other shirt."
-
- My heart fell down amongst my lungs and livers
- and things, and a hard piece of corn-crust started down
- my throat after it and got met on the road with a
- cough, and was shot across the table, and took one
- of the children in the eye and curled him up like a
- fishing-worm, and let a cry out of him the size of a
- warwhoop, and Tom he turned kinder blue around the
- gills, and it all amounted to a considerable state of
- things for about a quarter of a minute or as much as
- that, and I would a sold out for half price if there was
- a bidder. But after that we was all right again -- it
- was the sudden surprise of it that knocked us so kind
- of cold. Uncle Silas he says:
-
- "It's most uncommon curious, I can't understand
- it. I know perfectly well I took it OFF, because --"
-
- "Because you hain't got but one ON. Just LISTEN at
- the man! I know you took it off, and know it by a
- better way than your wool-gethering memory, too,
- because it was on the clo's-line yesterday -- I see it
- there myself. But it's gone, that's the long and the
- short of it, and you'll just have to change to a red
- flann'l one till I can get time to make a new one.
- And it 'll be the third I've made in two years. It just
- keeps a body on the jump to keep you in shirts; and
- whatever you do manage to DO with 'm all is more'n I
- can make out. A body 'd think you WOULD learn to
- take some sort of care of 'em at your time of life."
-
- "I know it, Sally, and I do try all I can. But it
- oughtn't to be altogether my fault, because, you know,
- I don't see them nor have nothing to do with them
- except when they're on me; and I don't believe I've
- ever lost one of them OFF of me."
-
- "Well, it ain't YOUR fault if you haven't, Silas;
- you'd a done it if you could, I reckon. And the shirt
- ain't all that's gone, nuther. Ther's a spoon gone;
- and THAT ain't all. There was ten, and now ther's only
- nine. The calf got the shirt, I reckon, but the calf
- never took the spoon, THAT'S certain."
-
- "Why, what else is gone, Sally?"
-
- "Ther's six CANDLES gone -- that's what. The rats
- could a got the candles, and I reckon they did; I
- wonder they don't walk off with the whole place, the
- way you're always going to stop their holes and don't
- do it; and if they warn't fools they'd sleep in your
- hair, Silas -- YOU'D never find it out; but you can't lay
- the SPOON on the rats, and that I know."
-
- "Well, Sally, I'm in fault, and I acknowledge it;
- I've been remiss; but I won't let to-morrow go by
- without stopping up them holes."
-
- "Oh, I wouldn't hurry; next year 'll do. Matilda
- Angelina Araminta PHELPS!"
-
- Whack comes the thimble, and the child snatches
- her claws out of the sugar-bowl without fooling around
- any. Just then the nigger woman steps on to the
- passage, and says:
-
- "Missus, dey's a sheet gone."
-
- "A SHEET gone! Well, for the land's sake!"
-
- "I'll stop up them holes to-day," says Uncle Silas,
- looking sorrowful.
-
- "Oh, DO shet up! -- s'pose the rats took the SHEET?
- WHERE'S it gone, Lize?"
-
- "Clah to goodness I hain't no notion, Miss' Sally.
- She wuz on de clo'sline yistiddy, but she done gone:
- she ain' dah no mo' now."
-
- "I reckon the world IS coming to an end. I NEVER
- see the beat of it in all my born days. A shirt, and a
- sheet, and a spoon, and six can --"
-
- "Missus," comes a young yaller wench, "dey's a
- brass cannelstick miss'n."
-
- "Cler out from here, you hussy, er I'll take a skillet
- to ye!"
-
- Well, she was just a-biling. I begun to lay for a
- chance; I reckoned I would sneak out and go for the
- woods till the weather moderated. She kept a-raging
- right along, running her insurrection all by herself,
- and everybody else mighty meek and quiet; and at
- last Uncle Silas, looking kind of foolish, fishes up that
- spoon out of his pocket. She stopped, with her mouth
- open and her hands up; and as for me, I wished I was
- in Jeruslem or somewheres. But not long, because
- she says:
-
- "It's JUST as I expected. So you had it in your
- pocket all the time; and like as not you've got the
- other things there, too. How'd it get there?"
-
- "I reely don't know, Sally," he says, kind of
- apologizing, "or you know I would tell. I was a-
- studying over my text in Acts Seventeen before break-
- fast, and I reckon I put it in there, not noticing,
- meaning to put my Testament in, and it must be so,
- because my Testament ain't in; but I'll go and see;
- and if the Testament is where I had it, I'll know I
- didn't put it in, and that will show that I laid the
- Testament down and took up the spoon, and --"
-
- "Oh, for the land's sake! Give a body a rest!
- Go 'long now, the whole kit and biling of ye; and
- don't come nigh me again till I've got back my peace
- of mind."
-
- I'D a heard her if she'd a said it to herself, let alone
- speaking it out; and I'd a got up and obeyed her if
- I'd a been dead. As we was passing through the
- setting-room the old man he took up his hat, and the
- shingle-nail fell out on the floor, and he just merely
- picked it up and laid it on the mantel-shelf, and never
- said nothing, and went out. Tom see him do it, and
- remembered about the spoon, and says:
-
- "Well, it ain't no use to send things by HIM no
- more, he ain't reliable." Then he says: "But he
- done us a good turn with the spoon, anyway, without
- knowing it, and so we'll go and do him one without
- HIM knowing it -- stop up his rat-holes."
-
- There was a noble good lot of them down cellar, and
- it took us a whole hour, but we done the job tight and
- good and shipshape. Then we heard steps on the
- stairs, and blowed out our light and hid; and here
- comes the old man, with a candle in one hand and a
- bundle of stuff in t'other, looking as absent-minded as
- year before last. He went a mooning around, first to
- one rat-hole and then another, till he'd been to them
- all. Then he stood about five minutes, picking tallow-
- drip off of his candle and thinking. Then he turns off
- slow and dreamy towards the stairs, saying:
-
- "Well, for the life of me I can't remember when I
- done it. I could show her now that I warn't to blame
- on account of the rats. But never mind -- let it go. I
- reckon it wouldn't do no good."
-
- And so he went on a-mumbling up stairs, and then
- we left. He was a mighty nice old man. And
- always is.
-
- Tom was a good deal bothered about what to do for
- a spoon, but he said we'd got to have it; so he took a
- think. When he had ciphered it out he told me how
- we was to do; then we went and waited around the
- spoon-basket till we see Aunt Sally coming, and then
- Tom went to counting the spoons and laying them out
- to one side, and I slid one of them up my sleeve, and
- Tom says:
-
- "Why, Aunt Sally, there ain't but nine spoons
- YET."
-
- She says:
-
- "Go 'long to your play, and don't bother me. I
- know better, I counted 'm myself."
-
- "Well, I've counted them twice, Aunty, and I can't
- make but nine."
-
- She looked out of all patience, but of course she
- come to count -- anybody would.
-
- "I declare to gracious ther' AIN'T but nine!" she
- says. "Why, what in the world -- plague TAKE the
- things, I'll count 'm again."
-
- So I slipped back the one I had, and when she got
- done counting, she says:
-
- "Hang the troublesome rubbage, ther's TEN now!"
- and she looked huffy and bothered both. But Tom
- says:
-
- "Why, Aunty, I don't think there's ten."
-
- "You numskull, didn't you see me COUNT 'm?"
-
- "I know, but --"
-
- "Well, I'll count 'm AGAIN."
-
- So I smouched one, and they come out nine, same
- as the other time. Well, she WAS in a tearing way --
- just a-trembling all over, she was so mad. But she
- counted and counted till she got that addled she'd start
- to count in the basket for a spoon sometimes; and so,
- three times they come out right, and three times they
- come out wrong. Then she grabbed up the basket
- and slammed it across the house and knocked the cat
- galley-west; and she said cle'r out and let her have
- some peace, and if we come bothering around her
- again betwixt that and dinner she'd skin us. So we
- had the odd spoon, and dropped it in her apron-pocket
- whilst she was a-giving us our sailing orders, and Jim
- got it all right, along with her shingle nail, before
- noon. We was very well satisfied with this business,
- and Tom allowed it was worth twice the trouble it
- took, because he said NOW she couldn't ever count
- them spoons twice alike again to save her life; and
- wouldn't believe she'd counted them right if she DID;
- and said that after she'd about counted her head off
- for the next three days he judged she'd give it up and
- offer to kill anybody that wanted her to ever count
- them any more.
-
- So we put the sheet back on the line that night, and
- stole one out of her closet; and kept on putting it
- back and stealing it again for a couple of days till she
- didn't know how many sheets she had any more, and
- she didn't CARE, and warn't a-going to bullyrag the rest
- of her soul out about it, and wouldn't count them
- again not to save her life; she druther die first.
-
- So we was all right now, as to the shirt and the
- sheet and the spoon and the candles, by the help of
- the calf and the rats and the mixed-up counting; and
- as to the candlestick, it warn't no consequence, it
- would blow over by and by.
-
- But that pie was a job; we had no end of trouble
- with that pie. We fixed it up away down in the
- woods, and cooked it there; and we got it done at
- last, and very satisfactory, too; but not all in one
- day; and we had to use up three wash-pans full of
- flour before we got through, and we got burnt pretty
- much all over, in places, and eyes put out with the
- smoke; because, you see, we didn't want nothing but
- a crust, and we couldn't prop it up right, and she
- would always cave in. But of course we thought of
- the right way at last -- which was to cook the ladder,
- too, in the pie. So then we laid in with Jim the
- second night, and tore up the sheet all in little strings
- and twisted them together, and long before daylight we
- had a lovely rope that you could a hung a person with.
- We let on it took nine months to make it.
-
- And in the forenoon we took it down to the woods,
- but it wouldn't go into the pie. Being made of a
- whole sheet, that way, there was rope enough for forty
- pies if we'd a wanted them, and plenty left over for
- soup, or sausage, or anything you choose. We could
- a had a whole dinner.
-
- But we didn't need it. All we needed was just
- enough for the pie, and so we throwed the rest away.
- We didn't cook none of the pies in the wash-pan --
- afraid the solder would melt; but Uncle Silas he had a
- noble brass warming-pan which he thought consider-
- able of, because it belonged to one of his ancesters
- with a long wooden handle that come over from Eng-
- land with William the Conqueror in the Mayflower or
- one of them early ships and was hid away up garret
- with a lot of other old pots and things that was
- valuable, not on account of being any account, be-
- cause they warn't, but on account of them being
- relicts, you know, and we snaked her out, private, and
- took her down there, but she failed on the first pies,
- because we didn't know how, but she come up smiling
- on the last one. We took and lined her with dough,
- and set her in the coals, and loaded her up with rag
- rope, and put on a dough roof, and shut down the lid,
- and put hot embers on top, and stood off five foot,
- with the long handle, cool and comfortable, and in
- fifteen minutes she turned out a pie that was a satisfac-
- tion to look at. But the person that et it would want
- to fetch a couple of kags of toothpicks along, for if
- that rope ladder wouldn't cramp him down to business
- I don't know nothing what I'm talking about, and lay
- him in enough stomach-ache to last him till next time,
- too.
-
- Nat didn't look when we put the witch pie in Jim's
- pan; and we put the three tin plates in the bottom of
- the pan under the vittles; and so Jim got everything
- all right, and as soon as he was by himself he busted
- into the pie and hid the rope ladder inside of his straw
- tick, and scratched some marks on a tin plate and
- throwed it out of the window-hole.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVIII.
-
- MAKING them pens was a distressid tough job,
- and so was the saw; and Jim allowed the in-
- scription was going to be the toughest of all. That's
- the one which the prisoner has to scrabble on the wall.
- But he had to have it; Tom said he'd GOT to; there
- warn't no case of a state prisoner not scrabbling his
- inscription to leave behind, and his coat of arms.
-
- "Look at Lady Jane Grey," he says; "look at
- Gilford Dudley; look at old Northumberland! Why,
- Huck, s'pose it IS considerble trouble? -- what you
- going to do? -- how you going to get around it?
- Jim's GOT to do his inscription and coat of arms. They
- all do."
-
- Jim says:
-
- "Why, Mars Tom, I hain't got no coat o' arm; I
- hain't got nuffn but dish yer ole shirt, en you knows
- I got to keep de journal on dat."
-
- "Oh, you don't understand, Jim; a coat of arms is
- very different."
-
- "Well," I says, "Jim's right, anyway, when he
- says he ain't got no coat of arms, because he hain't."
-
- "I reckon I knowed that," Tom says, "but you
- bet he'll have one before he goes out of this -- because
- he's going out RIGHT, and there ain't going to be no
- flaws in his record."
-
- So whilst me and Jim filed away at the pens on a
- brickbat apiece, Jim a-making his'n out of the brass
- and I making mine out of the spoon, Tom set to work
- to think out the coat of arms. By and by he said he'd
- struck so many good ones he didn't hardly know
- which to take, but there was one which he reckoned
- he'd decide on. He says:
-
- "On the scutcheon we'll have a bend OR in the
- dexter base, a saltire MURREY in the fess, with a dog,
- couchant, for common charge, and under his foot a
- chain embattled, for slavery, with a chevron VERT in a
- chief engrailed, and three invected lines on a field
- AZURE, with the nombril points rampant on a dancette
- indented; crest, a runaway nigger, SABLE, with his
- bundle over his shoulder on a bar sinister; and a
- couple of gules for supporters, which is you and me;
- motto, MAGGIORE FRETTA, MINORE OTTO. Got it out of a
- book -- means the more haste the less speed."
-
- "Geewhillikins," I says, "but what does the rest of
- it mean?"
-
- "We ain't got no time to bother over that," he
- says; "we got to dig in like all git-out."
-
- "Well, anyway," I says, "what's SOME of it?
- What's a fess?"
-
- "A fess -- a fess is -- YOU don't need to know what
- a fess is. I'll show him how to make it when he gets
- to it."
-
- "Shucks, Tom," I says, "I think you might tell a
- person. What's a bar sinister?"
-
- "Oh, I don't know. But he's got to have it. All
- the nobility does."
-
- That was just his way. If it didn't suit him to ex-
- plain a thing to you, he wouldn't do it. You might
- pump at him a week, it wouldn't make no difference.
-
- He'd got all that coat of arms business fixed, so
- now he started in to finish up the rest of that part of
- the work, which was to plan out a mournful inscrip-
- tion -- said Jim got to have one, like they all done.
- He made up a lot, and wrote them out on a paper, and
- read them off, so:
-
- 1. Here a captive heart busted.
- 2. Here a poor prisoner, forsook by the world
- and friends, fretted his sorrowful life.
- 3. Here a lonely heart broke, and a worn spirit
- went to its rest, after thirty-seven years
- of solitary captivity.
- 4. Here, homeless and friendless, after
- thirty-seven years of bitter captivity,
- perished a noble stranger, natural son of
- Louis XIV.
-
- Tom's voice trembled whilst he was reading them,
- and he most broke down. When he got done he
- couldn't no way make up his mind which one for Jim
- to scrabble on to the wall, they was all so good; but
- at last he allowed he would let him scrabble them all
- on. Jim said it would take him a year to scrabble
- such a lot of truck on to the logs with a nail, and he
- didn't know how to make letters, besides; but Tom
- said he would block them out for him, and then he
- wouldn't have nothing to do but just follow the lines.
- Then pretty soon he says:
-
- "Come to think, the logs ain't a-going to do; they
- don't have log walls in a dungeon: we got to dig the
- inscriptions into a rock. We'll fetch a rock."
-
- Jim said the rock was worse than the logs; he said
- it would take him such a pison long time to dig them
- into a rock he wouldn't ever get out. But Tom said
- he would let me help him do it. Then he took a look
- to see how me and Jim was getting along with the
- pens. It was most pesky tedious hard work and slow,
- and didn't give my hands no show to get well of the
- sores, and we didn't seem to make no headway, hardly;
- so Tom says:
-
- "I know how to fix it. We got to have a rock for
- the coat of arms and mournful inscriptions, and we can
- kill two birds with that same rock. There's a gaudy
- big grindstone down at the mill, and we'll smouch it,
- and carve the things on it, and file out the pens and
- the saw on it, too."
-
- It warn't no slouch of an idea; and it warn't no
- slouch of a grindstone nuther; but we allowed we'd
- tackle it. It warn't quite midnight yet, so we cleared
- out for the mill, leaving Jim at work. We smouched
- the grindstone, and set out to roll her home, but it
- was a most nation tough job. Sometimes, do what we
- could, we couldn't keep her from falling over, and she
- come mighty near mashing us every time. Tom said
- she was going to get one of us, sure, before we got
- through. We got her half way; and then we was
- plumb played out, and most drownded with sweat.
- We see it warn't no use; we got to go and fetch Jim
- So he raised up his bed and slid the chain off of the
- bed-leg, and wrapt it round and round his neck, and
- we crawled out through our hole and down there, and
- Jim and me laid into that grindstone and walked
- her along like nothing; and Tom superintended.
- He could out-superintend any boy I ever see. He
- knowed how to do everything.
-
- Our hole was pretty big, but it warn't big enough to
- get the grindstone through; but Jim he took the pick
- and soon made it big enough. Then Tom marked out
- them things on it with the nail, and set Jim to work on
- them, with the nail for a chisel and an iron bolt from
- the rubbage in the lean-to for a hammer, and told him
- to work till the rest of his candle quit on him, and then
- he could go to bed, and hide the grindstone under his
- straw tick and sleep on it. Then we helped him fix
- his chain back on the bed-leg, and was ready for bed
- ourselves. But Tom thought of something, and says:
-
- "You got any spiders in here, Jim?"
-
- "No, sah, thanks to goodness I hain't, Mars Tom."
-
- "All right, we'll get you some."
-
- "But bless you, honey, I doan' WANT none. I's
- afeard un um. I jis' 's soon have rattlesnakes aroun'."
-
- Tom thought a minute or two, and says:
-
- "It's a good idea. And I reckon it's been done.
- It MUST a been done; it stands to reason. Yes, it's a
- prime good idea. Where could you keep it?"
-
- "Keep what, Mars Tom?"
-
- "Why, a rattlesnake."
-
- "De goodness gracious alive, Mars Tom! Why, if
- dey was a rattlesnake to come in heah I'd take en bust
- right out thoo dat log wall, I would, wid my head."
-
- Why, Jim, you wouldn't be afraid of it after a
- little. You could tame it."
-
- "TAME it!"
-
- "Yes -- easy enough. Every animal is grateful for
- kindness and petting, and they wouldn't THINK of hurt-
- ing a person that pets them. Any book will tell you
- that. You try -- that's all I ask; just try for two or
- three days. Why, you can get him so in a little while
- that he'll love you; and sleep with you; and won't
- stay away from you a minute; and will let you wrap
- him round your neck and put his head in your mouth."
-
- "PLEASE, Mars Tom -- DOAN' talk so! I can't STAN'
- it! He'd LET me shove his head in my mouf -- fer a
- favor, hain't it? I lay he'd wait a pow'ful long time
- 'fo' I AST him. En mo' en dat, I doan' WANT him to
- sleep wid me."
-
- "Jim, don't act so foolish. A prisoner's GOT to
- have some kind of a dumb pet, and if a rattlesnake
- hain't ever been tried, why, there's more glory to be
- gained in your being the first to ever try it than any
- other way you could ever think of to save your life."
-
- "Why, Mars Tom, I doan' WANT no sich glory.
- Snake take 'n bite Jim's chin off, den WHAH is de
- glory? No, sah, I doan' want no sich doin's."
-
- "Blame it, can't you TRY? I only WANT you to try
- -- you needn't keep it up if it don't work."
-
- "But de trouble all DONE ef de snake bite me while
- I's a tryin' him. Mars Tom, I's willin' to tackle mos'
- anything 'at ain't onreasonable, but ef you en Huck
- fetches a rattlesnake in heah for me to tame, I's
- gwyne to LEAVE, dat's SHORE."
-
- "Well, then, let it go, let it go, if you're so bull-
- headed about it. We can get you some garter-snakes,
- and you can tie some buttons on their tails, and let on
- they're rattlesnakes, and I reckon that 'll have to do."
-
- "I k'n stan' DEM, Mars Tom, but blame' 'f I
- couldn' get along widout um, I tell you dat. I never
- knowed b'fo' 't was so much bother and trouble to be
- a prisoner."
-
- "Well, it ALWAYS is when it's done right. You got
- any rats around here?"
-
- "No, sah, I hain't seed none."
-
- "Well, we'll get you some rats."
-
- "Why, Mars Tom, I doan' WANT no rats. Dey's
- de dadblamedest creturs to 'sturb a body, en rustle
- roun' over 'im, en bite his feet, when he's tryin' to
- sleep, I ever see. No, sah, gimme g'yarter-snakes, 'f
- I's got to have 'm, but doan' gimme no rats; I hain'
- got no use f'r um, skasely."
-
- "But, Jim, you GOT to have 'em -- they all do. So
- don't make no more fuss about it. Prisoners ain't
- ever without rats. There ain't no instance of it. And
- they train them, and pet them, and learn them tricks,
- and they get to be as sociable as flies. But you got to
- play music to them. You got anything to play music
- on?"
-
- "I ain' got nuffn but a coase comb en a piece o'
- paper, en a juice-harp; but I reck'n dey wouldn' take
- no stock in a juice-harp."
-
- "Yes they would. THEY don't care what kind of
- music 'tis. A jews-harp's plenty good enough for a
- rat. All animals like music -- in a prison they dote
- on it. Specially, painful music; and you can't get no
- other kind out of a jews-harp. It always interests
- them; they come out to see what's the matter with
- you. Yes, you're all right; you're fixed very well.
- You want to set on your bed nights before you go to
- sleep, and early in the mornings, and play your jews-
- harp; play 'The Last Link is Broken' -- that's the
- thing that 'll scoop a rat quicker 'n anything else; and
- when you've played about two minutes you'll see all
- the rats, and the snakes, and spiders, and things begin
- to feel worried about you, and come. And they'll
- just fairly swarm over you, and have a noble good
- time."
-
- "Yes, DEY will, I reck'n, Mars Tom, but what kine
- er time is JIM havin'? Blest if I kin see de pint. But
- I'll do it ef I got to. I reck'n I better keep de animals
- satisfied, en not have no trouble in de house."
-
- Tom waited to think it over, and see if there wasn't
- nothing else; and pretty soon he says:
-
- "Oh, there's one thing I forgot. Could you raise
- a flower here, do you reckon?"
-
- "I doan know but maybe I could, Mars Tom; but
- it's tolable dark in heah, en I ain' got no use f'r no
- flower, nohow, en she'd be a pow'ful sight o' trouble."
-
- "Well, you try it, anyway. Some other prisoners
- has done it."
-
- "One er dem big cat-tail-lookin' mullen-stalks would
- grow in heah, Mars Tom, I reck'n, but she wouldn't
- be wuth half de trouble she'd coss."
-
- "Don't you believe it. We'll fetch you a little one
- and you plant it in the corner over there, and raise it.
- And don't call it mullen, call it Pitchiola -- that's its
- right name when it's in a prison. And you want to
- water it with your tears."
-
- "Why, I got plenty spring water, Mars Tom."
-
- "You don't WANT spring water; you want to water
- it with your tears. It's the way they always do."
-
- "Why, Mars Tom, I lay I kin raise one er dem
- mullen-stalks twyste wid spring water whiles another
- man's a START'N one wid tears."
-
- "That ain't the idea. You GOT to do it with tears."
-
- "She'll die on my han's, Mars Tom, she sholy
- will; kase I doan' skasely ever cry."
-
- So Tom was stumped. But he studied it over, and
- then said Jim would have to worry along the best he
- could with an onion. He promised he would go to the
- nigger cabins and drop one, private, in Jim's coffee-
- pot, in the morning. Jim said he would "jis' 's soon
- have tobacker in his coffee;" and found so much fault
- with it, and with the work and bother of raising the
- mullen, and jews-harping the rats, and petting and
- flattering up the snakes and spiders and things, on top
- of all the other work he had to do on pens, and in-
- scriptions, and journals, and things, which made it
- more trouble and worry and responsibility to be a
- prisoner than anything he ever undertook, that Tom
- most lost all patience with him; and said he was just
- loadened down with more gaudier chances than a
- prisoner ever had in the world to make a name for
- himself, and yet he didn't know enough to appreciate
- them, and they was just about wasted on him. So
- Jim he was sorry, and said he wouldn't behave so no
- more, and then me and Tom shoved for bed.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIX.
-
- IN the morning we went up to the village and bought
- a wire rat-trap and fetched it down, and unstopped
- the best rat-hole, and in about an hour we had fifteen
- of the bulliest kind of ones; and then we took it and
- put it in a safe place under Aunt Sally's bed. But
- while we was gone for spiders little Thomas Franklin
- Benjamin Jefferson Elexander Phelps found it there,
- and opened the door of it to see if the rats would come
- out, and they did; and Aunt Sally she come in, and
- when we got back she was a-standing on top of the bed
- raising Cain, and the rats was doing what they could to
- keep off the dull times for her. So she took and
- dusted us both with the hickry, and we was as much
- as two hours catching another fifteen or sixteen, drat
- that meddlesome cub, and they warn't the likeliest,
- nuther, because the first haul was the pick of the flock.
- I never see a likelier lot of rats than what that first
- haul was.
-
- We got a splendid stock of sorted spiders, and bugs,
- and frogs, and caterpillars, and one thing or another;
- and we like to got a hornet's nest, but we didn't. The
- family was at home. We didn't give it right up, but
- stayed with them as long as we could; because we
- allowed we'd tire them out or they'd got to tire us
- out, and they done it. Then we got allycumpain and
- rubbed on the places, and was pretty near all right
- again, but couldn't set down convenient. And so we
- went for the snakes, and grabbed a couple of dozen
- garters and house-snakes, and put them in a bag, and
- put it in our room, and by that time it was supper-
- time, and a rattling good honest day's work: and
- hungry? -- oh, no, I reckon not! And there warn't a
- blessed snake up there when we went back -- we didn't
- half tie the sack, and they worked out somehow, and
- left. But it didn't matter much, because they was
- still on the premises somewheres. So we judged we
- could get some of them again. No, there warn't no
- real scarcity of snakes about the house for a consider-
- able spell. You'd see them dripping from the rafters
- and places every now and then; and they generly
- landed in your plate, or down the back of your neck,
- and most of the time where you didn't want them.
- Well, they was handsome and striped, and there warn't
- no harm in a million of them; but that never made no
- difference to Aunt Sally; she despised snakes, be the
- breed what they might, and she couldn't stand them
- no way you could fix it; and every time one of them
- flopped down on her, it didn't make no difference what
- she was doing, she would just lay that work down and
- light out. I never see such a woman. And you could
- hear her whoop to Jericho. You couldn't get her to
- take a-holt of one of them with the tongs. And if she
- turned over and found one in bed she would scramble
- out and lift a howl that you would think the house was
- afire. She disturbed the old man so that he said he
- could most wish there hadn't ever been no snakes
- created. Why, after every last snake had been gone
- clear out of the house for as much as a week Aunt
- Sally warn't over it yet; she warn't near over it; when
- she was setting thinking about something you could
- touch her on the back of her neck with a feather and
- she would jump right out of her stockings. It was
- very curious. But Tom said all women was just so.
- He said they was made that way for some reason or
- other.
-
- We got a licking every time one of our snakes come
- in her way, and she allowed these lickings warn't noth-
- ing to what she would do if we ever loaded up the
- place again with them. I didn't mind the lickings,
- because they didn't amount to nothing; but I minded
- the trouble we had to lay in another lot. But we got
- them laid in, and all the other things; and you never
- see a cabin as blithesome as Jim's was when they'd all
- swarm out for music and go for him. Jim didn't like
- the spiders, and the spiders didn't like Jim; and so
- they'd lay for him, and make it mighty warm for him.
- And he said that between the rats and the snakes and
- the grindstone there warn't no room in bed for him,
- skasely; and when there was, a body couldn't sleep, it
- was so lively, and it was always lively, he said, because
- THEY never all slept at one time, but took turn about,
- so when the snakes was asleep the rats was on deck,
- and when the rats turned in the snakes come on watch,
- so he always had one gang under him, in his way, and
- t'other gang having a circus over him, and if he got
- up to hunt a new place the spiders would take a chance
- at him as he crossed over. He said if he ever got out
- this time he wouldn't ever be a prisoner again, not for
- a salary.
-
- Well, by the end of three weeks everything was in
- pretty good shape. The shirt was sent in early, in a
- pie, and every time a rat bit Jim he would get up and
- write a little in his journal whilst the ink was fresh; the
- pens was made, the inscriptions and so on was all
- carved on the grindstone; the bed-leg was sawed in
- two, and we had et up the sawdust, and it give us a
- most amazing stomach-ache. We reckoned we was all
- going to die, but didn't. It was the most undigestible
- sawdust I ever see; and Tom said the same. But as I
- was saying, we'd got all the work done now, at last;
- and we was all pretty much fagged out, too, but mainly
- Jim. The old man had wrote a couple of times to the
- plantation below Orleans to come and get their run-
- away nigger, but hadn't got no answer, because there
- warn't no such plantation; so he allowed he would ad-
- vertise Jim in the St. Louis and New Orleans papers;
- and when he mentioned the St. Louis ones it give me
- the cold shivers, and I see we hadn't no time to lose.
- So Tom said, now for the nonnamous letters.
-
- "What's them?" I says.
-
- "Warnings to the people that something is up.
- Sometimes it's done one way, sometimes another.
- But there's always somebody spying around that gives
- notice to the governor of the castle. When Louis
- XVI. was going to light out of the Tooleries a servant-
- girl done it. It's a very good way, and so is the
- nonnamous letters. We'll use them both. And it's
- usual for the prisoner's mother to change clothes with
- him, and she stays in, and he slides out in her clothes.
- We'll do that, too."
-
- "But looky here, Tom, what do we want to WARN
- anybody for that something's up? Let them find it
- out for themselves -- it's their lookout."
-
- "Yes, I know; but you can't depend on them.
- It's the way they've acted from the very start -- left
- us to do EVERYTHING. They're so confiding and mullet-
- headed they don't take notice of nothing at all. So if
- we don't GIVE them notice there won't be nobody nor
- nothing to interfere with us, and so after all our hard
- work and trouble this escape 'll go off perfectly flat;
- won't amount to nothing -- won't be nothing TO it."
-
- "Well, as for me, Tom, that's the way I'd like."
-
- "Shucks!" he says, and looked disgusted. So I
- says:
-
- "But I ain't going to make no complaint. Any
- way that suits you suits me. What you going to do
- about the servant-girl?"
-
- "You'll be her. You slide in, in the middle of the
- night, and hook that yaller girl's frock."
-
- "Why, Tom, that 'll make trouble next morning;
- because, of course, she prob'bly hain't got any but
- that one."
-
- "I know; but you don't want it but fifteen minutes,
- to carry the nonnamous letter and shove it under the
- front door."
-
- "All right, then, I'll do it; but I could carry it just
- as handy in my own togs."
-
- "You wouldn't look like a servant-girl THEN, would
- you?"
-
- "No, but there won't be nobody to see what I look
- like, ANYWAY."
-
- "That ain't got nothing to do with it. The thing
- for us to do is just to do our DUTY, and not worry
- about whether anybody SEES us do it or not. Hain't
- you got no principle at all?"
-
- "All right, I ain't saying nothing; I'm the servant-
- girl. Who's Jim's mother?"
-
- "I'm his mother. I'll hook a gown from Aunt
- Sally."
-
- "Well, then, you'll have to stay in the cabin when
- me and Jim leaves."
-
- "Not much. I'll stuff Jim's clothes full of straw
- and lay it on his bed to represent his mother in dis-
- guise, and Jim 'll take the nigger woman's gown off of
- me and wear it, and we'll all evade together. When a
- prisoner of style escapes it's called an evasion. It's
- always called so when a king escapes, f'rinstance.
- And the same with a king's son; it don't make no differ-
- ence whether he's a natural one or an unnatural one."
-
- So Tom he wrote the nonnamous letter, and I
- smouched the yaller wench's frock that night, and put
- it on, and shoved it under the front door, the way Tom
- told me to. It said:
-
- Beware. Trouble is brewing. Keep a sharp lookout.
- UNKNOWN FRIEND.
-
- Next night we stuck a picture, which Tom drawed
- in blood, of a skull and crossbones on the front door;
- and next night another one of a coffin on the back
- door. I never see a family in such a sweat. They
- couldn't a been worse scared if the place had a been
- full of ghosts laying for them behind everything and
- under the beds and shivering through the air. If a
- door banged, Aunt Sally she jumped and said
- "ouch!" if anything fell, she jumped and said
- "ouch!" if you happened to touch her, when she
- warn't noticing, she done the same; she couldn't face
- noway and be satisfied, because she allowed there was
- something behind her every time -- so she was always
- a-whirling around sudden, and saying "ouch," and
- before she'd got two-thirds around she'd whirl back
- again, and say it again; and she was afraid to go to bed,
- but she dasn't set up. So the thing was working
- very well, Tom said; he said he never see a thing
- work more satisfactory. He said it showed it was
- done right.
-
- So he said, now for the grand bulge! So the very
- next morning at the streak of dawn we got another
- letter ready, and was wondering what we better do with
- it, because we heard them say at supper they was
- going to have a nigger on watch at both doors all
- night. Tom he went down the lightning-rod to spy
- around; and the nigger at the back door was asleep,
- and he stuck it in the back of his neck and come back.
- This letter said:
-
-
- Don't betray me, I wish to be your friend. There
- is a desprate gang of cut-throats from over in the
- Indian Territory going to steal your runaway
- nigger to-night, and they have been trying to scare
- you so as you will stay in the house and not bother
- them. I am one of the gang, but have got religgion
- and wish to quit it and lead an honest life again,
- and will betray the helish design. They will sneak
- down from northards, along the fence, at midnight
- exact, with a false key, and go in the nigger's
- cabin to get him. I am to be off a piece and blow
- a tin horn if I see any danger; but stead of that I
- will BA like a sheep soon as they get in and not
- blow at all; then whilst they are getting his chains
- loose, you slip there and lock them in, and can
- kill them at your leasure. Don't do anything but
- just the way I am telling you; if you do they will
- suspicion something and raise whoop-jamboreehoo. I
- do not wish any reward but to know I have done the
- right thing.
- UNKNOWN FRIEND.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XL.
-
- WE was feeling pretty good after breakfast, and
- took my canoe and went over the river a-fishing,
- with a lunch, and had a good time, and took a look at
- the raft and found her all right, and got home late to
- supper, and found them in such a sweat and worry
- they didn't know which end they was standing on, and
- made us go right off to bed the minute we was done
- supper, and wouldn't tell us what the trouble was, and
- never let on a word about the new letter, but didn't
- need to, because we knowed as much about it as
- anybody did, and as soon as we was half up stairs and
- her back was turned we slid for the cellar cubboard
- and loaded up a good lunch and took it up to our
- room and went to bed, and got up about half-past
- eleven, and Tom put on Aunt Sally's dress that he
- stole and was going to start with the lunch, but says:
-
- "Where's the butter?"
-
- "I laid out a hunk of it," I says, "on a piece of a
- corn-pone."
-
- "Well, you LEFT it laid out, then -- it ain't here."
-
- "We can get along without it," I says.
-
- "We can get along WITH it, too," he says; "just
- you slide down cellar and fetch it. And then mosey
- right down the lightning-rod and come along. I'll go
- and stuff the straw into Jim's clothes to represent his
- mother in disguise, and be ready to BA like a sheep
- and shove soon as you get there."
-
- So out he went, and down cellar went I. The hunk
- of butter, big as a person's fist, was where I had left
- it, so I took up the slab of corn-pone with it on, and
- blowed out my light, and started up stairs very
- stealthy, and got up to the main floor all right, but
- here comes Aunt Sally with a candle, and I clapped
- the truck in my hat, and clapped my hat on my head,
- and the next second she see me; and she says:
-
- "You been down cellar?"
-
- "Yes'm."
-
- "What you been doing down there?"
-
- "Noth'n."
-
- "NOTH'N!"
-
- "No'm."
-
- "Well, then, what possessed you to go down there
- this time of night?"
-
- "I don't know 'm."
-
- "You don't KNOW? Don't answer me that way.
- Tom, I want to know what you been DOING down
- there."
-
- "I hain't been doing a single thing, Aunt Sally, I
- hope to gracious if I have."
-
- I reckoned she'd let me go now, and as a generl
- thing she would; but I s'pose there was so many
- strange things going on she was just in a sweat about
- every little thing that warn't yard-stick straight; so she
- says, very decided:
-
- "You just march into that setting-room and stay
- there till I come. You been up to something you no
- business to, and I lay I'll find out what it is before I'M
- done with you."
-
- So she went away as I opened the door and walked
- into the setting-room. My, but there was a crowd
- there! Fifteen farmers, and every one of them had a
- gun. I was most powerful sick, and slunk to a chair
- and set down. They was setting around, some of them
- talking a little, in a low voice, and all of them fidgety
- and uneasy, but trying to look like they warn't; but I
- knowed they was, because they was always taking off
- their hats, and putting them on, and scratching their
- heads, and changing their seats, and fumbling with
- their buttons. I warn't easy myself, but I didn't take
- my hat off, all the same.
-
- I did wish Aunt Sally would come, and get done
- with me, and lick me, if she wanted to, and let me get
- away and tell Tom how we'd overdone this thing, and
- what a thundering hornet's-nest we'd got ourselves
- into, so we could stop fooling around straight off, and
- clear out with Jim before these rips got out of patience
- and come for us.
-
- At last she come and begun to ask me questions,
- but I COULDN'T answer them straight, I didn't know
- which end of me was up; because these men was in
- such a fidget now that some was wanting to start right
- NOW and lay for them desperadoes, and saying it warn't
- but a few minutes to midnight; and others was trying
- to get them to hold on and wait for the sheep-signal;
- and here was Aunty pegging away at the questions,
- and me a-shaking all over and ready to sink down in
- my tracks I was that scared; and the place getting
- hotter and hotter, and the butter beginning to melt and
- run down my neck and behind my ears; and pretty
- soon, when one of them says, "I'M for going and
- getting in the cabin FIRST and right NOW, and catching
- them when they come," I most dropped; and a streak
- of butter come a-trickling down my forehead, and
- Aunt Sally she see it, and turns white as a sheet, and
- says:
-
- "For the land's sake, what IS the matter with the
- child? He's got the brain-fever as shore as you're
- born, and they're oozing out!"
-
- And everybody runs to see, and she snatches off my
- hat, and out comes the bread and what was left of the
- butter, and she grabbed me, and hugged me, and
- says:
-
- "Oh, what a turn you did give me! and how glad
- and grateful I am it ain't no worse; for luck's against
- us, and it never rains but it pours, and when I see that
- truck I thought we'd lost you, for I knowed by the
- color and all it was just like your brains would be if --
- Dear, dear, whyd'nt you TELL me that was what you'd
- been down there for, I wouldn't a cared. Now cler
- out to bed, and don't lemme see no more of you till
- morning!"
-
- I was up stairs in a second, and down the lightning-
- rod in another one, and shinning through the dark for
- the lean-to. I couldn't hardly get my words out, I
- was so anxious; but I told Tom as quick as I could
- we must jump for it now, and not a minute to lose --
- the house full of men, yonder, with guns!
-
- His eyes just blazed; and he says:
-
- "No! -- is that so? AIN'T it bully! Why, Huck,
- if it was to do over again, I bet I could fetch two hun-
- dred! If we could put it off till --"
-
- "Hurry! HURRY!" I says. "Where's Jim?"
-
- "Right at your elbow; if you reach out your arm
- you can touch him. He's dressed, and everything's
- ready. Now we'll slide out and give the sheep-
- signal."
-
- But then we heard the tramp of men coming to the
- door, and heard them begin to fumble with the pad-
- lock, and heard a man say:
-
- "I TOLD you we'd be too soon; they haven't come
- -- the door is locked. Here, I'll lock some of you
- into the cabin, and you lay for 'em in the dark and kill
- 'em when they come; and the rest scatter around a
- piece, and listen if you can hear 'em coming."
-
- So in they come, but couldn't see us in the dark, and
- most trod on us whilst we was hustling to get under
- the bed. But we got under all right, and out through
- the hole, swift but soft -- Jim first, me next, and Tom
- last, which was according to Tom's orders. Now we
- was in the lean-to, and heard trampings close by out-
- side. So we crept to the door, and Tom stopped us
- there and put his eye to the crack, but couldn't make
- out nothing, it was so dark; and whispered and said
- he would listen for the steps to get further, and when
- he nudged us Jim must glide out first, and him last.
- So he set his ear to the crack and listened, and
- listened, and listened, and the steps a-scraping around
- out there all the time; and at last he nudged us, and
- we slid out, and stooped down, not breathing, and not
- making the least noise, and slipped stealthy towards the
- fence in Injun file, and got to it all right, and me and
- Jim over it; but Tom's britches catched fast on a splinter
- on the top rail, and then he hear the steps coming, so he
- had to pull loose, which snapped the splinter and made
- a noise; and as he dropped in our tracks and started
- somebody sings out:
-
- "Who's that? Answer, or I'll shoot!"
-
- But we didn't answer; we just unfurled our heels
- and shoved. Then there was a rush, and a BANG, BANG,
- BANG! and the bullets fairly whizzed around us! We
- heard them sing out:
-
- "Here they are! They've broke for the river!
- After 'em, boys, and turn loose the dogs!"
-
- So here they come, full tilt. We could hear them
- because they wore boots and yelled, but we didn't wear
- no boots and didn't yell. We was in the path to the
- mill; and when they got pretty close on to us we
- dodged into the bush and let them go by, and then
- dropped in behind them. They'd had all the dogs
- shut up, so they wouldn't scare off the robbers; but
- by this time somebody had let them loose, and here
- they come, making powwow enough for a million; but
- they was our dogs; so we stopped in our tracks till
- they catched up; and when they see it warn't nobody
- but us, and no excitement to offer them, they only just
- said howdy, and tore right ahead towards the shouting
- and clattering; and then we up-steam again, and
- whizzed along after them till we was nearly to the
- mill, and then struck up through the bush to where
- my canoe was tied, and hopped in and pulled for dear
- life towards the middle of the river, but didn't make
- no more noise than we was obleeged to. Then we
- struck out, easy and comfortable, for the island where
- my raft was; and we could hear them yelling and
- barking at each other all up and down the bank, till we
- was so far away the sounds got dim and died out.
- And when we stepped on to the raft I says:
-
- "NOW, old Jim, you're a free man again, and I bet
- you won't ever be a slave no more."
-
- "En a mighty good job it wuz, too, Huck. It 'uz
- planned beautiful, en it 'uz done beautiful; en dey
- ain't NOBODY kin git up a plan dat's mo' mixed-up en
- splendid den what dat one wuz."
-
- We was all glad as we could be, but Tom was the
- gladdest of all because he had a bullet in the calf of
- his leg.
-
- When me and Jim heard that we didn't feel so brash
- as what we did before. It was hurting him consider-
- able, and bleeding; so we laid him in the wigwam and
- tore up one of the duke's shirts for to bandage him,
- but he says:
-
- "Gimme the rags; I can do it myself. Don't stop
- now; don't fool around here, and the evasion booming
- along so handsome; man the sweeps, and set her
- loose! Boys, we done it elegant! -- 'deed we did. I
- wish WE'D a had the handling of Louis XVI., there
- wouldn't a been no 'Son of Saint Louis, ascend to
- heaven!' wrote down in HIS biography; no, sir, we'd
- a whooped him over the BORDER -- that's what we'd a
- done with HIM -- and done it just as slick as nothing
- at all, too. Man the sweeps -- man the sweeps!"
-
- But me and Jim was consulting -- and thinking.
- And after we'd thought a minute, I says:
-
- "Say it, Jim."
-
- So he says:
-
- "Well, den, dis is de way it look to me, Huck. Ef
- it wuz HIM dat 'uz bein' sot free, en one er de boys
- wuz to git shot, would he say, 'Go on en save me,
- nemmine 'bout a doctor f'r to save dis one?' Is dat
- like Mars Tom Sawyer? Would he say dat? You BET
- he wouldn't! WELL, den, is JIM gywne to say it?
- No, sah -- I doan' budge a step out'n dis place 'dout
- a DOCTOR, not if it's forty year!"
-
- I knowed he was white inside, and I reckoned he'd
- say what he did say -- so it was all right now, and I
- told Tom I was a-going for a doctor. He raised con-
- siderable row about it, but me and Jim stuck to it and
- wouldn't budge; so he was for crawling out and set-
- ting the raft loose himself; but we wouldn't let him.
- Then he give us a piece of his mind, but it didn't do
- no good.
-
- So when he sees me getting the canoe ready, he
- says:
-
- "Well, then, if you re bound to go, I'll tell you the
- way to do when you get to the village. Shut the door
- and blindfold the doctor tight and fast, and make him
- swear to be silent as the grave, and put a purse full of
- gold in his hand, and then take and lead him all around
- the back alleys and everywheres in the dark, and then
- fetch him here in the canoe, in a roundabout way
- amongst the islands, and search him and take his chalk
- away from him, and don't give it back to him till
- you get him back to the village, or else he will chalk
- this raft so he can find it again. It's the way they
- all do."
-
- So I said I would, and left, and Jim was to hide in
- the woods when he see the doctor coming till he was
- gone again.
-
-
- CHAPTER XLI.
-
- THE doctor was an old man; a very nice, kind-look-
- ing old man when I got him up. I told him
- me and my brother was over on Spanish Island hunt-
- ing yesterday afternoon, and camped on a piece of a
- raft we found, and about midnight he must a kicked his
- gun in his dreams, for it went off and shot him in the
- leg, and we wanted him to go over there and fix it and
- not say nothing about it, nor let anybody know, be-
- cause we wanted to come home this evening and sur-
- prise the folks.
-
- "Who is your folks?" he says.
-
- "The Phelpses, down yonder."
-
- "Oh," he says. And after a minute, he says:
-
- "How'd you say he got shot?"
-
- "He had a dream," I says, "and it shot him."
-
- "Singular dream," he says.
-
- So he lit up his lantern, and got his saddle-bags, and
- we started. But when he sees the canoe he didn't like
- the look of her -- said she was big enough for one, but
- didn't look pretty safe for two. I says:
-
- "Oh, you needn't be afeard, sir, she carried the
- three of us easy enough."
-
- "What three?"
-
- "Why, me and Sid, and -- and -- and THE GUNS;
- that's what I mean."
-
- "Oh," he says.
-
- But he put his foot on the gunnel and rocked her,
- and shook his head, and said he reckoned he'd look
- around for a bigger one. But they was all locked and
- chained; so he took my canoe, and said for me to wait
- till he come back, or I could hunt around further, or
- maybe I better go down home and get them ready for
- the surprise if I wanted to. But I said I didn't; so
- I told him just how to find the raft, and then he started.
-
- I struck an idea pretty soon. I says to myself,
- spos'n he can't fix that leg just in three shakes of a
- sheep's tail, as the saying is? spos'n it takes him three
- or four days? What are we going to do? -- lay around
- there till he lets the cat out of the bag? No, sir; I
- know what I'LL do. I'll wait, and when he comes back
- if he says he's got to go any more I'll get down there,
- too, if I swim; and we'll take and tie him, and keep
- him, and shove out down the river; and when Tom's
- done with him we'll give him what it's worth, or all
- we got, and then let him get ashore.
-
- So then I crept into a lumber-pile to get some sleep;
- and next time I waked up the sun was away up over
- my head! I shot out and went for the doctor's
- house, but they told me he'd gone away in the night
- some time or other, and warn't back yet. Well, thinks
- I, that looks powerful bad for Tom, and I'll dig out
- for the island right off. So away I shoved, and turned
- the corner, and nearly rammed my head into Uncle
- Silas's stomach! He says:
-
- "Why, TOM! Where you been all this time, you
- rascal?"
-
- "I hain't been nowheres," I says, "only just hunt-
- ing for the runaway nigger -- me and Sid."
-
- "Why, where ever did you go?" he says. "Your
- aunt's been mighty uneasy."
-
- "She needn't," I says, "because we was all right.
- We followed the men and the dogs, but they outrun us,
- and we lost them; but we thought we heard them on
- the water, so we got a canoe and took out after them
- and crossed over, but couldn't find nothing of them;
- so we cruised along up-shore till we got kind of tired
- and beat out; and tied up the canoe and went to sleep,
- and never waked up till about an hour ago; then we
- paddled over here to hear the news, and Sid's at the
- post-office to see what he can hear, and I'm a-branch-
- ing out to get something to eat for us, and then we're
- going home."
-
- So then we went to the post-office to get "Sid"; but
- just as I suspicioned, he warn't there; so the old man
- he got a letter out of the office, and we waited awhile
- longer, but Sid didn't come; so the old man said,
- come along, let Sid foot it home, or canoe it, when he
- got done fooling around -- but we would ride. I
- couldn't get him to let me stay and wait for Sid; and
- he said there warn't no use in it, and I must come
- along, and let Aunt Sally see we was all right.
-
- When we got home Aunt Sally was that glad to see
- me she laughed and cried both, and hugged me, and
- give me one of them lickings of hern that don't amount
- to shucks, and said she'd serve Sid the same when he
- come.
-
- And the place was plum full of farmers and farmers'
- wives, to dinner; and such another clack a body never
- heard. Old Mrs. Hotchkiss was the worst; her tongue
- was a-going all the time. She says:
-
- "Well, Sister Phelps, I've ransacked that-air cabin
- over, an' I b'lieve the nigger was crazy. I says to
- Sister Damrell -- didn't I, Sister Damrell? -- s'I, he's
- crazy, s'I -- them's the very words I said. You all
- hearn me: he's crazy, s'I; everything shows it, s'I.
- Look at that-air grindstone, s'I; want to tell ME't any
- cretur 't's in his right mind 's a goin' to scrabble all
- them crazy things onto a grindstone, s'I? Here sich 'n'
- sich a person busted his heart; 'n' here so 'n' so
- pegged along for thirty-seven year, 'n' all that --
- natcherl son o' Louis somebody, 'n' sich everlast'n
- rubbage. He's plumb crazy, s'I; it's what I says in
- the fust place, it's what I says in the middle, 'n' it's
- what I says last 'n' all the time -- the nigger's crazy --
- crazy 's Nebokoodneezer, s'I."
-
- "An' look at that-air ladder made out'n rags, Sister
- Hotchkiss," says old Mrs. Damrell; "what in the
- name o' goodness COULD he ever want of --"
-
- "The very words I was a-sayin' no longer ago th'n
- this minute to Sister Utterback, 'n' she'll tell you so
- herself. Sh-she, look at that-air rag ladder, sh-she;
- 'n' s'I, yes, LOOK at it, s'I -- what COULD he a-wanted
- of it, s'I. Sh-she, Sister Hotchkiss, sh-she --"
-
- "But how in the nation'd they ever GIT that grind-
- stone IN there, ANYWAY? 'n' who dug that-air HOLE? 'n'
- who --"
-
- "My very WORDS, Brer Penrod! I was a-sayin' --
- pass that-air sasser o' m'lasses, won't ye? -- I was
- a-sayin' to Sister Dunlap, jist this minute, how DID they
- git that grindstone in there, s'I. Without HELP, mind
- you -- 'thout HELP! THAT'S wher 'tis. Don't tell ME,
- s'I; there WUZ help, s'I; 'n' ther' wuz a PLENTY help,
- too, s'I; ther's ben a DOZEN a-helpin' that nigger, 'n' I
- lay I'd skin every last nigger on this place but I'D find
- out who done it, s'I; 'n' moreover, s'I --"
-
- "A DOZEN says you! -- FORTY couldn't a done every
- thing that's been done. Look at them case-knife saws
- and things, how tedious they've been made; look at
- that bed-leg sawed off with 'm, a week's work for six
- men; look at that nigger made out'n straw on the bed;
- and look at --"
-
- "You may WELL say it, Brer Hightower! It's jist as
- I was a-sayin' to Brer Phelps, his own self. S'e, what
- do YOU think of it, Sister Hotchkiss, s'e? Think o'
- what, Brer Phelps, s'I? Think o' that bed-leg sawed
- off that a way, s'e? THINK of it, s'I? I lay it never
- sawed ITSELF off, s'I -- somebody SAWED it, s'I; that's
- my opinion, take it or leave it, it mayn't be no 'count,
- s'I, but sich as 't is, it's my opinion, s'I, 'n' if any
- body k'n start a better one, s'I, let him DO it, s'I,
- that's all. I says to Sister Dunlap, s'I --"
-
- "Why, dog my cats, they must a ben a house-full o'
- niggers in there every night for four weeks to a done
- all that work, Sister Phelps. Look at that shirt --
- every last inch of it kivered over with secret African
- writ'n done with blood! Must a ben a raft uv 'm at it
- right along, all the time, amost. Why, I'd give two
- dollars to have it read to me; 'n' as for the niggers
- that wrote it, I 'low I'd take 'n' lash 'm t'll --"
-
- "People to HELP him, Brother Marples! Well, I
- reckon you'd THINK so if you'd a been in this house for
- a while back. Why, they've stole everything they
- could lay their hands on -- and we a-watching all the
- time, mind you. They stole that shirt right off o' the
- line! and as for that sheet they made the rag ladder out
- of, ther' ain't no telling how many times they DIDN'T
- steal that; and flour, and candles, and candlesticks,
- and spoons, and the old warming-pan, and most a
- thousand things that I disremember now, and my new
- calico dress; and me and Silas and my Sid and Tom
- on the constant watch day AND night, as I was a-telling
- you, and not a one of us could catch hide nor hair nor
- sight nor sound of them; and here at the last minute,
- lo and behold you, they slides right in under our noses
- and fools us, and not only fools US but the Injun Terri-
- tory robbers too, and actuly gets AWAY with that nigger
- safe and sound, and that with sixteen men and twenty-
- two dogs right on their very heels at that very time!
- I tell you, it just bangs anything I ever HEARD of.
- Why, SPERITS couldn't a done better and been no
- smarter. And I reckon they must a BEEN sperits -- be-
- cause, YOU know our dogs, and ther' ain't no better;
- well, them dogs never even got on the TRACK of 'm
- once! You explain THAT to me if you can! -- ANY of
- you!"
-
- "Well, it does beat --"
-
- "Laws alive, I never --"
-
- "So help me, I wouldn't a be --"
-
- "HOUSE-thieves as well as --"
-
- "Goodnessgracioussakes, I'd a ben afeard to live in
- sich a --"
-
- "'Fraid to LIVE! -- why, I was that scared I dasn't
- hardly go to bed, or get up, or lay down, or SET down,
- Sister Ridgeway. Why, they'd steal the very -- why,
- goodness sakes, you can guess what kind of a fluster I
- was in by the time midnight come last night. I hope
- to gracious if I warn't afraid they'd steal some o' the
- family! I was just to that pass I didn't have no reason-
- ing faculties no more. It looks foolish enough NOW, in
- the daytime; but I says to myself, there's my two poor
- boys asleep, 'way up stairs in that lonesome room, and
- I declare to goodness I was that uneasy 't I crep' up
- there and locked 'em in! I DID. And anybody would.
- Because, you know, when you get scared that way,
- and it keeps running on, and getting worse and worse
- all the time, and your wits gets to addling, and you get
- to doing all sorts o' wild things, and by and by you
- think to yourself, spos'n I was a boy, and was away up
- there, and the door ain't locked, and you --" She
- stopped, looking kind of wondering, and then she
- turned her head around slow, and when her eye lit on
- me -- I got up and took a walk.
-
- Says I to myself, I can explain better how we come
- to not be in that room this morning if I go out to one
- side and study over it a little. So I done it. But I
- dasn't go fur, or she'd a sent for me. And when it
- was late in the day the people all went, and then I
- come in and told her the noise and shooting waked up
- me and "Sid," and the door was locked, and we
- wanted to see the fun, so we went down the lightning-
- rod, and both of us got hurt a little, and we didn't never
- want to try THAT no more. And then I went on and
- told her all what I told Uncle Silas before; and then
- she said she'd forgive us, and maybe it was all right
- enough anyway, and about what a body might expect
- of boys, for all boys was a pretty harum-scarum lot as
- fur as she could see; and so, as long as no harm hadn't
- come of it, she judged she better put in her time being
- grateful we was alive and well and she had us still, stead
- of fretting over what was past and done. So then she
- kissed me, and patted me on the head, and dropped
- into a kind of a brown study; and pretty soon jumps
- up, and says:
-
- "Why, lawsamercy, it's most night, and Sid not
- come yet! What HAS become of that boy?"
-
- I see my chance; so I skips up and says:
-
- "I'll run right up to town and get him," I says.
-
- "No you won't," she says. "You'll stay right
- wher' you are; ONE'S enough to be lost at a time. If
- he ain't here to supper, your uncle 'll go."
-
- Well, he warn't there to supper; so right after
- supper uncle went.
-
- He come back about ten a little bit uneasy; hadn't
- run across Tom's track. Aunt Sally was a good DEAL
- uneasy; but Uncle Silas he said there warn't no occa-
- sion to be -- boys will be boys, he said, and you'll see
- this one turn up in the morning all sound and right.
- So she had to be satisfied. But she said she'd set up
- for him a while anyway, and keep a light burning so he
- could see it.
-
- And then when I went up to bed she come up with
- me and fetched her candle, and tucked me in, and
- mothered me so good I felt mean, and like I couldn't
- look her in the face; and she set down on the bed and
- talked with me a long time, and said what a splendid
- boy Sid was, and didn't seem to want to ever stop
- talking about him; and kept asking me every now and
- then if I reckoned he could a got lost, or hurt, or
- maybe drownded, and might be laying at this minute
- somewheres suffering or dead, and she not by him to
- help him, and so the tears would drip down silent, and
- I would tell her that Sid was all right, and would be
- home in the morning, sure; and she would squeeze my
- hand, or maybe kiss me, and tell me to say it again,
- and keep on saying it, because it done her good, and
- she was in so much trouble. And when she was going
- away she looked down in my eyes so steady and gentle,
- and says:
-
- "The door ain't going to be locked, Tom, and
- there's the window and the rod; but you'll be good,
- WON'T you? And you won't go? For MY sake."
-
- Laws knows I WANTED to go bad enough to see about
- Tom, and was all intending to go; but after that I
- wouldn't a went, not for kingdoms.
-
- But she was on my mind and Tom was on my mind,
- so I slept very restless. And twice I went down the
- rod away in the night, and slipped around front, and
- see her setting there by her candle in the window with
- her eyes towards the road and the tears in them; and
- I wished I could do something for her, but I couldn't,
- only to swear that I wouldn't never do nothing to
- grieve her any more. And the third time I waked up
- at dawn, and slid down, and she was there yet, and
- her candle was most out, and her old gray head was
- resting on her hand, and she was asleep.
-
-
- CHAPTER XLII.
-
- THE old man was uptown again before breakfast, but
- couldn't get no track of Tom; and both of them
- set at the table thinking, and not saying nothing, and
- looking mournful, and their coffee getting cold, and
- not eating anything. And by and by the old man
- says:
-
- "Did I give you the letter?"
-
- "What letter?"
-
- "The one I got yesterday out of the post-office."
-
- "No, you didn't give me no letter."
-
- "Well, I must a forgot it."
-
- So he rummaged his pockets, and then went off some-
- wheres where he had laid it down, and fetched it, and
- give it to her. She says:
-
- "Why, it's from St. Petersburg -- it's from Sis."
-
- I allowed another walk would do me good; but I
- couldn't stir. But before she could break it open she
- dropped it and run -- for she see something. And so
- did I. It was Tom Sawyer on a mattress; and that old
- doctor; and Jim, in HER calico dress, with his hands
- tied behind him; and a lot of people. I hid the letter
- behind the first thing that come handy, and rushed.
- She flung herself at Tom, crying, and says:
-
- "Oh, he's dead, he's dead, I know he's dead!"
-
- And Tom he turned his head a little, and muttered
- something or other, which showed he warn't in his
- right mind; then she flung up her hands, and says:
-
- "He's alive, thank God! And that's enough!"
- and she snatched a kiss of him, and flew for the house
- to get the bed ready, and scattering orders right and left
- at the niggers and everybody else, as fast as her tongue
- could go, every jump of the way.
-
- I followed the men to see what they was going to do
- with Jim; and the old doctor and Uncle Silas followed
- after Tom into the house. The men was very huffy,
- and some of them wanted to hang Jim for an example
- to all the other niggers around there, so they wouldn't
- be trying to run away like Jim done, and making such
- a raft of trouble, and keeping a whole family scared
- most to death for days and nights. But the others said,
- don't do it, it wouldn't answer at all; he ain't our
- nigger, and his owner would turn up and make us pay
- for him, sure. So that cooled them down a little, be-
- cause the people that's always the most anxious for to
- hang a nigger that hain't done just right is always the
- very ones that ain't the most anxious to pay for him
- when they've got their satisfaction out of him.
-
- They cussed Jim considerble, though, and give him
- a cuff or two side the head once in a while, but Jim
- never said nothing, and he never let on to know me,
- and they took him to the same cabin, and put his own
- clothes on him, and chained him again, and not to no
- bed-leg this time, but to a big staple drove into the bot-
- tom log, and chained his hands, too, and both legs, and
- said he warn't to have nothing but bread and water to
- eat after this till his owner come, or he was sold at auc-
- tion because he didn't come in a certain length of time,
- and filled up our hole, and said a couple of farmers
- with guns must stand watch around about the cabin
- every night, and a bulldog tied to the door in the day-
- time; and about this time they was through with the
- job and was tapering off with a kind of generl good-bye
- cussing, and then the old doctor comes and takes a
- look, and says:
-
- "Don't be no rougher on him than you're obleeged
- to, because he ain't a bad nigger. When I got to
- where I found the boy I see I couldn't cut the bullet
- out without some help, and he warn't in no condition
- for me to leave to go and get help; and he got a little
- worse and a little worse, and after a long time he went
- out of his head, and wouldn't let me come a-nigh him
- any more, and said if I chalked his raft he'd kill me,
- and no end of wild foolishness like that, and I see I
- couldn't do anything at all with him; so I says, I got
- to have HELP somehow; and the minute I says it out
- crawls this nigger from somewheres and says he'll help,
- and he done it, too, and done it very well. Of course
- I judged he must be a runaway nigger, and there I WAS!
- and there I had to stick right straight along all the rest
- of the day and all night. It was a fix, I tell you! I
- had a couple of patients with the chills, and of course
- I'd of liked to run up to town and see them, but I
- dasn't, because the nigger might get away, and then I'd
- be to blame; and yet never a skiff come close enough
- for me to hail. So there I had to stick plumb until
- daylight this morning; and I never see a nigger that
- was a better nuss or faithfuller, and yet he was risking
- his freedom to do it, and was all tired out, too, and I
- see plain enough he'd been worked main hard lately.
- I liked the nigger for that; I tell you, gentlemen, a
- nigger like that is worth a thousand dollars -- and kind
- treatment, too. I had everything I needed, and the
- boy was doing as well there as he would a done at
- home -- better, maybe, because it was so quiet; but
- there I WAS, with both of 'm on my hands, and there
- I had to stick till about dawn this morning; then some
- men in a skiff come by, and as good luck would have
- it the nigger was setting by the pallet with his head
- propped on his knees sound asleep; so I motioned
- them in quiet, and they slipped up on him and grabbed
- him and tied him before he knowed what he was
- about, and we never had no trouble. And the boy
- being in a kind of a flighty sleep, too, we muffled the
- oars and hitched the raft on, and towed her over very
- nice and quiet, and the nigger never made the least
- row nor said a word from the start. He ain't no bad
- nigger, gentlemen; that's what I think about him."
-
- Somebody says:
-
- "Well, it sounds very good, doctor, I'm obleeged to
- say."
-
- Then the others softened up a little, too, and I was
- mighty thankful to that old doctor for doing Jim that
- good turn; and I was glad it was according to my judg-
- ment of him, too; because I thought he had a good
- heart in him and was a good man the first time I see
- him. Then they all agreed that Jim had acted very
- well, and was deserving to have some notice took of
- it, and reward. So every one of them promised, right
- out and hearty, that they wouldn't cuss him no more.
-
- Then they come out and locked him up. I hoped
- they was going to say he could have one or two of the
- chains took off, because they was rotten heavy, or could
- have meat and greens with his bread and water; but
- they didn't think of it, and I reckoned it warn't best
- for me to mix in, but I judged I'd get the doctor's yarn
- to Aunt Sally somehow or other as soon as I'd got
- through the breakers that was laying just ahead of me --
- explanations, I mean, of how I forgot to mention about
- Sid being shot when I was telling how him and me put
- in that dratted night paddling around hunting the run-
- away nigger.
-
- But I had plenty time. Aunt Sally she stuck to the
- sick-room all day and all night, and every time I see
- Uncle Silas mooning around I dodged him.
-
- Next morning I heard Tom was a good deal better,
- and they said Aunt Sally was gone to get a nap. So
- I slips to the sick-room, and if I found him awake I
- reckoned we could put up a yarn for the family that
- would wash. But he was sleeping, and sleeping very
- peaceful, too; and pale, not fire-faced the way he was
- when he come. So I set down and laid for him to
- wake. In about half an hour Aunt Sally comes gliding
- in, and there I was, up a stump again! She motioned
- me to be still, and set down by me, and begun to
- whisper, and said we could all be joyful now, because
- all the symptoms was first-rate, and he'd been sleeping
- like that for ever so long, and looking better and peace-
- fuller all the time, and ten to one he'd wake up in his
- right mind.
-
- So we set there watching, and by and by he stirs a
- bit, and opened his eyes very natural, and takes a look,
- and says:
-
- "Hello! -- why, I'm at HOME! How's that?
- Where's the raft?"
-
- "It's all right," I says.
-
- "And JIM?"
-
- "The same," I says, but couldn't say it pretty
- brash. But he never noticed, but says:
-
- "Good! Splendid! NOW we're all right and safe!
- Did you tell Aunty?"
-
- I was going to say yes; but she chipped in and says:
- "About what, Sid?"
-
- "Why, about the way the whole thing was done."
-
- "What whole thing?"
-
- "Why, THE whole thing. There ain't but one; how
- we set the runaway nigger free -- me and Tom."
-
- "Good land! Set the run -- What IS the child
- talking about! Dear, dear, out of his head again!"
-
- "NO, I ain't out of my HEAD; I know all what I'm
- talking about. We DID set him free -- me and Tom.
- We laid out to do it, and we DONE it. And we done
- it elegant, too." He'd got a start, and she never
- checked him up, just set and stared and stared, and let
- him clip along, and I see it warn't no use for ME to put
- in. "Why, Aunty, it cost us a power of work --
- weeks of it -- hours and hours, every night, whilst you
- was all asleep. And we had to steal candles, and the
- sheet, and the shirt, and your dress, and spoons, and
- tin plates, and case-knives, and the warming-pan, and
- the grindstone, and flour, and just no end of things, and
- you can't think what work it was to make the saws, and
- pens, and inscriptions, and one thing or another, and
- you can't think HALF the fun it was. And we had to
- make up the pictures of coffins and things, and non-
- namous letters from the robbers, and get up and down
- the lightning-rod, and dig the hole into the cabin, and
- made the rope ladder and send it in cooked up in a pie,
- and send in spoons and things to work with in your
- apron pocket --"
-
- "Mercy sakes!"
-
- "-- and load up the cabin with rats and snakes and
- so on, for company for Jim; and then you kept Tom
- here so long with the butter in his hat that you come
- near spiling the whole business, because the men come
- before we was out of the cabin, and we had to rush,
- and they heard us and let drive at us, and I got my
- share, and we dodged out of the path and let them go
- by, and when the dogs come they warn't interested in
- us, but went for the most noise, and we got our canoe,
- and made for the raft, and was all safe, and Jim was
- a free man, and we done it all by ourselves, and WASN'T
- it bully, Aunty!"
-
- "Well, I never heard the likes of it in all my born
- days! So it was YOU, you little rapscallions, that's been
- making all this trouble, and turned everybody's wits
- clean inside out and scared us all most to death. I've as
- good a notion as ever I had in my life to take it out o'
- you this very minute. To think, here I've been, night
- after night, a -- YOU just get well once, you young
- scamp, and I lay I'll tan the Old Harry out o' both o'
- ye!"
-
- But Tom, he WAS so proud and joyful, he just COULDN'T
- hold in, and his tongue just WENT it -- she a-chipping
- in, and spitting fire all along, and both of them going
- it at once, like a cat convention; and she says:
-
- "WELL, you get all the enjoyment you can out of it
- NOW, for mind I tell you if I catch you meddling with
- him again --"
-
- "Meddling with WHO?" Tom says, dropping his
- smile and looking surprised.
-
- "With WHO? Why, the runaway nigger, of course.
- Who'd you reckon?"
-
- Tom looks at me very grave, and says:
-
- "Tom, didn't you just tell me he was all right?
- Hasn't he got away?"
-
- "HIM?" says Aunt Sally; "the runaway nigger?
- 'Deed he hasn't. They've got him back, safe and
- sound, and he's in that cabin again, on bread and
- water, and loaded down with chains, till he's claimed
- or sold!"
-
- Tom rose square up in bed, with his eye hot, and
- his nostrils opening and shutting like gills, and sings
- out to me:
-
- "They hain't no RIGHT to shut him up! SHOVE! --
- and don't you lose a minute. Turn him loose! he
- ain't no slave; he's as free as any cretur that walks
- this earth!"
-
- "What DOES the child mean?"
-
- "I mean every word I SAY, Aunt Sally, and if some-
- body don't go, I'LL go. I've knowed him all his life,
- and so has Tom, there. Old Miss Watson died two
- months ago, and she was ashamed she ever was going
- to sell him down the river, and SAID so; and she set
- him free in her will."
-
- "Then what on earth did YOU want to set him free
- for, seeing he was already free?"
-
- "Well, that IS a question, I must say; and just like
- women! Why, I wanted the ADVENTURE of it; and I'd
- a waded neck-deep in blood to -- goodness alive, AUNT
- POLLY!"
-
- If she warn't standing right there, just inside the
- door, looking as sweet and contented as an angel half
- full of pie, I wish I may never!
-
- Aunt Sally jumped for her, and most hugged the
- head off of her, and cried over her, and I found a
- good enough place for me under the bed, for it was
- getting pretty sultry for us, seemed to me. And I
- peeped out, and in a little while Tom's Aunt Polly
- shook herself loose and stood there looking across at
- Tom over her spectacles -- kind of grinding him into
- the earth, you know. And then she says:
-
- "Yes, you BETTER turn y'r head away -- I would if I
- was you, Tom."
-
- "Oh, deary me!" says Aunt Sally; "IS he changed
- so? Why, that ain't TOM, it's Sid; Tom's -- Tom's
- -- why, where is Tom? He was here a minute ago."
-
- "You mean where's Huck FINN -- that's what you
- mean! I reckon I hain't raised such a scamp as my
- Tom all these years not to know him when I SEE him.
- That WOULD be a pretty howdy-do. Come out from
- under that bed, Huck Finn."
-
- So I done it. But not feeling brash.
-
- Aunt Sally she was one of the mixed-upest-looking
- persons I ever see -- except one, and that was Uncle
- Silas, when he come in and they told it all to him. It
- kind of made him drunk, as you may say, and he
- didn't know nothing at all the rest of the day, and
- preached a prayer-meeting sermon that night that gave
- him a rattling ruputation, because the oldest man in
- the world couldn't a understood it. So Tom's Aunt
- Polly, she told all about who I was, and what; and I
- had to up and tell how I was in such a tight place that
- when Mrs. Phelps took me for Tom Sawyer -- she
- chipped in and says, "Oh, go on and call me Aunt
- Sally, I'm used to it now, and 'tain't no need to
- change" -- that when Aunt Sally took me for Tom
- Sawyer I had to stand it -- there warn't no other way,
- and I knowed he wouldn't mind, because it would be
- nuts for him, being a mystery, and he'd make an ad-
- venture out of it, and be perfectly satisfied. And so
- it turned out, and he let on to be Sid, and made things
- as soft as he could for me.
-
- And his Aunt Polly she said Tom was right about
- old Miss Watson setting Jim free in her will; and so,
- sure enough, Tom Sawyer had gone and took all that
- trouble and bother to set a free nigger free! and I
- couldn't ever understand before, until that minute and
- that talk, how he COULD help a body set a nigger free
- with his bringing-up.
-
- Well, Aunt Polly she said that when Aunt Sally
- wrote to her that Tom and SID had come all right and
- safe, she says to herself:
-
- "Look at that, now! I might have expected it,
- letting him go off that way without anybody to watch
- him. So now I got to go and trapse all the way down
- the river, eleven hundred mile, and find out what that
- creetur's up to THIS time, as long as I couldn't seem to
- get any answer out of you about it."
-
- "Why, I never heard nothing from you," says
- Aunt Sally.
-
- "Well, I wonder! Why, I wrote you twice to ask
- you what you could mean by Sid being here."
-
- "Well, I never got 'em, Sis."
-
- Aunt Polly she turns around slow and severe, and
- says:
-
- "You, Tom!"
-
- "Well -- WHAT?" he says, kind of pettish.
-
- "Don t you what ME, you impudent thing -- hand
- out them letters."
-
- "What letters?"
-
- "THEM letters. I be bound, if I have to take a-
- holt of you I'll --"
-
- "They're in the trunk. There, now. And they're
- just the same as they was when I got them out of the
- office. I hain't looked into them, I hain't touched
- them. But I knowed they'd make trouble, and I
- thought if you warn't in no hurry, I'd --"
-
- "Well, you DO need skinning, there ain't no mistake
- about it. And I wrote another one to tell you I was
- coming; and I s'pose he --"
-
- "No, it come yesterday; I hain't read it yet, but
- IT'S all right, I've got that one."
-
- I wanted to offer to bet two dollars she hadn't, but I
- reckoned maybe it was just as safe to not to. So I
- never said nothing.
-
-
- CHAPTER THE LAST
-
- THE first time I catched Tom private I asked him
- what was his idea, time of the evasion? -- what it
- was he'd planned to do if the evasion worked all right
- and he managed to set a nigger free that was already
- free before? And he said, what he had planned in his
- head from the start, if we got Jim out all safe, was for
- us to run him down the river on the raft, and have
- adventures plumb to the mouth of the river, and then
- tell him about his being free, and take him back up
- home on a steamboat, in style, and pay him for his
- lost time, and write word ahead and get out all the
- niggers around, and have them waltz him into town
- with a torchlight procession and a brass-band, and then
- he would be a hero, and so would we. But I reckoned
- it was about as well the way it was.
-
- We had Jim out of the chains in no time, and when
- Aunt Polly and Uncle Silas and Aunt Sally found out
- how good he helped the doctor nurse Tom, they made
- a heap of fuss over him, and fixed him up prime, and
- give him all he wanted to eat, and a good time, and
- nothing to do. And we had him up to the sick-room,
- and had a high talk; and Tom give Jim forty dollars
- for being prisoner for us so patient, and doing it up so
- good, and Jim was pleased most to death, and busted
- out, and says:
-
- "DAH, now, Huck, what I tell you? -- what I tell
- you up dah on Jackson islan'? I TOLE you I got a
- hairy breas', en what's de sign un it; en I TOLE you I
- ben rich wunst, en gwineter to be rich AGIN; en it's
- come true; en heah she is! DAH, now! doan' talk
- to ME -- signs is SIGNS, mine I tell you; en I knowed
- jis' 's well 'at I 'uz gwineter be rich agin as I's a-
- stannin' heah dis minute!"
-
- And then Tom he talked along and talked along,
- and says, le's all three slide out of here one of these
- nights and get an outfit, and go for howling adventures
- amongst the Injuns, over in the Territory, for a couple
- of weeks or two; and I says, all right, that suits me,
- but I ain't got no money for to buy the outfit, and I
- reckon I couldn't get none from home, because it's
- likely pap's been back before now, and got it all away
- from Judge Thatcher and drunk it up.
-
- "No, he hain't," Tom says; "it's all there yet --
- six thousand dollars and more; and your pap hain't
- ever been back since. Hadn't when I come away,
- anyhow."
-
- Jim says, kind of solemn:
-
- "He ain't a-comin' back no mo', Huck."
-
- I says:
-
- "Why, Jim?"
-
- "Nemmine why, Huck -- but he ain't comin' back
- no mo."
-
- But I kept at him; so at last he says:
-
- "Doan' you 'member de house dat was float'n down
- de river, en dey wuz a man in dah, kivered up, en I
- went in en unkivered him and didn' let you come in?
- Well, den, you kin git yo' money when you wants it,
- kase dat wuz him."
-
- Tom's most well now, and got his bullet around his
- neck on a watch-guard for a watch, and is always
- seeing what time it is, and so there ain't nothing more
- to write about, and I am rotten glad of it, because if
- I'd a knowed what a trouble it was to make a book I
- wouldn't a tackled it, and ain't a-going to no more.
- But I reckon I got to light out for the Territory ahead
- of the rest, because Aunt Sally she's going to adopt
- me and sivilize me, and I can't stand it. I been there
- before.
-
- THE END
-
-
-